JENNIFER
ROBERSON'S monumental
CHRONICLES
OF THE CHEYSULI:
SHAPECHANGERS
THE
SONG OF HOMANA
LEGACY
OF THE SWORD
TRACK
OF THE WHITE WOLF
A PRIDE
OF PRINCES
DAUGHTER
OF THE LION
FLIGHT
OF THE RAVEN
A
TAPESTRY OF LIONS*
and
THE
NOVELS OF TIGER AND DEL:
SWORD-DANCER
SWORD-SINGER
SWORD-MAKER
*
forthcoming from DAW Books
THE
SONG
OF
HOMANA
Book
Two
of the
Chronicles
of the
Cheysuli
Jennifer
Roberson
DAW
BOOKS, INC.
DONALD
A. WOLLHEIM, PUBLISHER
375
Hudson Street, New York, NY 10014
Copyright
© 1985 by Jennifer Bobt,^o:i O'^'-fc
Al!
Rights Resei vec1
Cover
art by fulek Heller
DAW
Book Collectors No-635.
To
Marion Zimmer Bradley,
for
daydreams and realities
and
Betsy
Wollheim,
for
making mine better
First
Printing, July 1985
6789
PRINTED
IN THE U.S.A.
PART I
ONE
I
peered through the storm, trying to see Finn. He rode
ahead
on a small Steppes pony much like my own, though
brown
instead of dun, little more than an indistinct lump
of
darkness in the blowing snow. The wind beat against
my
face; Finn would not hear me unless I shouted against
it. I
pulled the muffling wraps of woo! away from my face,
grimacing
as the bitter wind blew ice crystals into my
beard,
and shouted my question to him.
'
"Do you see anything?"
The
indistinct lump became more distinct as Finn turned
back in
the saddle. Like me, he wore leather and wool and
furs,
hooded and wrapped, hardly a man underneath all
the
layers. But then Finn was not what most men would
name a
man at all, being Cheysuli.
He
pulled wrappings from his face. Unlike me, he wore
no
beard in an attempt at anonymity; the Cheysuli cannot
grow
them. Something in the blood, Finn had said once,
kept
them from it. But what he did not have on his face
was
made up for on his head, Finn's hair, of late infre-
quently
cut, was thick and black. It blew in the wind,
baring
a sun-bronzed predator's face.
"1
have sent Storr ahead to seek shelter," he called back
to me.
"Is there such a place in all this snow, he will find
it."
Instantly
my eyes went to the side of the narrow forest
track.
There, parallelling the hoolprints of our horses—
I 11 I
12
Jennifer Robarson
though
glimpsed only briefly in the blowing snow and
wind—were
the pawprints of a wolf. Large prints, well-
spaced,
little more than holes until the wind and snow
filled
them in. But it marked the path of Finn's lir none-
theless;
it marked Finn a man apart, for what manner of
man
rides with a wolf at his side? Better yet, it marked
me, for
what manner of man rides with a shapechanger at
his
side?
Finn
did not go on at once. He waited, saying nothing
more.
His face was still bared to the wind. As I rode up I
saw how
he slitted his eyes, the pupils swollen black
against
the blinding whiteness. But the irises were a clear,
eerie
yellow. Not amber or gold or honey. Yellow.
Beast-eyes,
men called them. I had reason to know
why.
I
shivered, then cursed, trying to strip my beard of ice.
Of late
we had spent our time in the warmth of eastern
lands,
it felt odd to be nearly home again, and suffering
because
of the winter. I had forgotten what it was to go so
encumbered
by furs and wool and leather
And yet
I had forgotten nothing. Especially who I was.
Finn,
seeing my shiver, grinned, baring his teeth in a
silent
laugh. "Weary of it already? And will you spend
your
time shivering and bemoaning the storms when you
walk
the halls and corridors of Homana-Mujhar again?"
"We
are not even to Homana yet," I reminded him,
disliking
his easy assurance, "let alone my uncle's palace."
"Your
palace." For a moment he studied me solemnly,
reminding
me of someone else: his brother. "Do you
doubt
yourself? Still? I thought you had resolved all that
when
you decided it was time for us to turn our backs on
exile."
"I
did." I scraped at my beard with gloved fingers,
stripping
it again of the cold crystals. "Five years is long
enough
for any man to spend in exile, it is too long for a
prince.
It is time we took my throne back from that
Solindish
usurper."
Finn
shrugged. "You will. The prophecy of the First-
born is
quite definite. You will win back the Lion Throne
from
Bellam and his Ihlini sorcerer, and take your place as
Mujhar."
He put out his gloved right hand and made an
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 13
eloquent
gesture: fingers spread, palm turned upward.
Tahlmorra.
The Cheysuli philosophy that each man's fate
rested
in the hands of the gods.
Well.
so be it. So long as the gods made me a Idng in
place
of Bellam.
The
arrow sliced through the storm and struck deeply
into
the ribs of Finn's horse. The animal screamed and
bolted
sideways in a twisting lunge. Deep snowdrifts fouled
die
gelding's legs and belly almost immediately and he
went
down, floundering. Blood ran out of his nostrils, it
spilled
from the wound and splashed against the snow,
staining
it brilliant crimson.
I
unsheathed my sword instantly, jerking it free of the
scabbard
on my saddle. I spun my horse, cursing, and saw
Finn's
outthrust arm as he leaped free of his failing mount.
'Three
of them . . . now!"
The
first man reached me. We engaged. He carried a
sword
as 1 did, swinging it like a scythe as he sought to cut
off my
head. I heard the familiar sounds: the keening of
the
blade as it slashed through the air, the laboring of his
'
mount, the hissing of breath between his teeth as he
grunted
with the effort. I heard also my own grinding
teeth
as I swung my heavy broadsword. I felt the satisfac-
tory
jar of blade against body, though his winter furs
,
muffled most of the impact. Still, it was enough to double
him in
the saddle and weaken his counterthrust. My own
blade
went in through leathers and into flesh, slowed by
~ the
leathers, then quickened by the flesh. A thrust with
my
shoulder behind it, and the man was dead.
I
jerked the sword free instantly and spun my horse yet
again,
cursing his small size and wishing for a Homanan
warhorse
as he faltered. He had been chosen for anonymi-
ty's
sake, not for his war-sense- And now I must pay for it.
I
looked for Finn. I saw instead the wolf. I saw also the
dead
man, gape-mouthed and bleeding in the snow; the
third
and final man was still ahorse, staring blankly at the
wolf.
It was no wonder. He had witnessed the shapechange,
which
was enough to make a grown man cry out in fear; I
' did
not only because I had seen it so many times. And yet
^ I
feared it stilL
14
Jennifer Roberson
The
wolf was large and ruddy. It leaped even as the
attacker
cried out and tried to flee. Swept out of the
saddle
and thrown down against the snow, the man lay
sprawled,
crying out, arms thrust upward to protect his
throat.
But the teeth were already there.
"Finn!"
I slapped my horse's rump with the flat of my
bloodied
blade, forcing him through the deep drifts. "Finn,"
I said
more quietly, "it is somewhat difficult to question a
dead
man."
The
wolf, standing over the quivering form, turned his
head to
stare directly at me. The unwavering gaze was
unnerving,
for it was a man's eyes set into the ruddy,
snow-dusted
head. A man's eyes that stared out of the
wolfs
head.
Then
came the blurring of the wolf-shape. It coalesced
into a
void, a nothingness that hurt the eyes and head and
made my
belly lurch upward against my ribs. Only the
eyes
remained the same, fixed on me: bestial and yellow
and
strange. The eyes of a madman, or the eyes of a
Cheysuli
warrior.
I felt
the prickling down my spine even as I sought to
suppress
it. The blurring came back as the void dissipated,
but
this time the faint outline was that of a man. No more
the
wolf but a two-legged, dark-skinned man. Not human;
never
that. Something else. Something more.
I
shifted forward in the saddle, urging my horse closer.
The
little gelding was chary of it, smelling death on Finn's
mount
as well as on the first two men, but he went closer
at
last. I reined him in beside the prisoner who lay on his
back in
deep snow, staring wide-eyed up at the man who
had
been a wolf.
"You,"
I said, and saw the eyes twitch and shift over to
me. He
wanted to rise; I could see it. He was frightened
and
helpless as he lay sprawled in the snow, and I meant
him to
acknowledge it. "Speak," I told him, "who is your
master?"
He said
nothing. Finn took a single step toward him,
saying
nothing at all. The man began to speak.
I
suppressed my twitch of surprise. Homanan, not
Ellasian.
I had not heard the tongue for five years, except
from
Finn's mouth; even now we kept ourselves to
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 15
Caledonese
and Ellasian almost always. And yet, here in
Ellas,
we heard Homanan again.
- He
did not look at Finn. He looked at me. I saw the
fear,
and then I saw the shame and anger. "What choice
did I
have?" he asked from his back in the snow. "I have a
wife
and daughter and no way to support them. No way to
clothe
them, feed them, keep them warm in winter. My
croft
is gone because I could not pay the rents. My money
was
spent in the war. My son was lost with Prince Fergus.
Do I
let my wife and daughter starve because I cannot
provide?
Do I lose my daughter to the depravity of Bellam's
court?"
He glared at me from malignant brown eyes. As
he
spoke the anger grew. and the shame faded. All that
was left
was hostility and desperation. "I had no choice! It
was
good gold that was offered—"
The
knife twisted in my belly, though the blade did not
exist.
"Bloodied gold," I interrupted, knowing what he
would
say.
"Aye!"
he shouted. "But worth it! Shaine's war got me
nothing
but a dead son, the loss of my croft and the
beggaring
of my family. What else am I to do? Bellam
ofiers
gold—bloodied gold\—and I will take it. So will we
all!"
"All?"
I echoed, liking little of what I heard. Was all of
Homana
desiring to give me over to my enemy for his
Solindish
gold, my life was forfeit before the task was
begun.
"Aye!"
he shouted. "All! And why not? They are de-
mons.
Abominations. Beasts\"
The
wind shifted. iLthrew ice into my face again, but I
made no
move to rid myself of it. I could not. I could only
stare
at the man in the snow, struck dumb by his admission.
And
then I looked at Finn.
Like
me, he was quite still. Silent. Staring. But then,
slowly,
he lifted his head and looked directly at me. 1 saw
the
shrinking of his pupils so that the yellow of his eyes
- stood
out like a beacon against the storm. Yellow eyes.
Black
hair. The gold that hung at his left ear, bared by the
'wind
that blew the hair from his face- His alien, predator's
face.
I
looked at him with new eyes, as I had not looked at
16
Jennifer Roberson
him for
five years, and realized again what he was. Cheysuli.
Shapechanger.
A man who took on the form of a wolf at
wiU.
And the
reason for the attack,
Not me.
Not me at all. I was insignificant. The prisoner
did not
know that my head—delivered to Bellam—would
give
him more gold than he could imagine. By the gods,
he did
not even know who I wasi
Another
time, I might have laughed at the irony. Been
amused
by my conceit, that I thought all men knew me
and my
worth. But here, in this place, my identity was not
the
issue. Finn's race was,
"Because
of me," he said, and that only.
I
nodded. Sickened by the realization, I nodded. What
we
faced now was more impossible than ever. Not only
did we
come home to Homana after five years of exile to
raise
an army and win back my stolen throne, but we had
to do
it in the face ofHomanan prejudice. Shaine's purge—
the
Cheysuli .call it qumahlin—was little more than the
pretty
vengeance of a mad king, and yet it had not ended
even
with the sundering of his realm.
They
had not come to slay me or even take me prisoner.
They
had come for Finn, because he was Cheysuli.
"What
did they do to you?" I asked. "The Cheysuli.
What
did this man do to you?"
The
Homanan stared up at Finn in something akin to
astonishment.
"He is a shapechanger!"
"But
what did he do to you?" I persisted. "Did he slay
your
son? Take your croft? Rape your daughter? Beggar
your
family?"
"Do
not bother," Finn said. "You cannot straighten an
ill-grown
tree."
"You
can chop it down," I returned. "Chop it down and
into
pieces and feed it to the fire—" I wanted to say more,
but I
stopped. I saw his face, with its closed, private
expression,
and I said nothing more. Finn was not one for
sympathy,
or even anger expressed in his behalf. Finn
fought
his own battles.
And now
there was this one.
"Can
he be turned?" I asked. "His need I understand—a
desperate
man will do desperate things—but his target I
THE
SONG OF HOMANA I 17
will
not tolerate. Go into his mind and turn him, and he
can go
home again."
Finn's
right hand came up. It was empty. But 1 saw the
clenching
of his fingers, as if he sought to clasp a knife. He
was
asking for my approval, ^ie was liege man to the
Prince
of Homana, and he asked to mete out a death.
"No,"
I said. "Not this time. Use your magic instead."
The man
spasmed against the snow. "Gods, no! No! No
sorcery—"
"Hold
him," I said calmly, as he tried to leap up and
run.
Finn
was on him at once, though he did not slay him.
He
merely held him on'his knees, pressing him into the
snow,
on one knee himself with an arm thrust around the
throat
and the other gripping the head. One twist and it
would
be done.
"Mercy!"
the dead man cried. But could 1 do it, I would
leave
him alive.
Finn
would not ask again. He accepted my decision. I
saw the
hand tighten against the Homanan's head and the
look of
terror enter the brown eyes. And then they were
empty,
and I knew Finn had gone in to do as I had
ordered.
It
shows in the eyes. I have seen it in the faces and eyes
of
others Finn has used his magic on. But I also saw it in
Finn's
eyes each time: the total immersion of his soul as
he
sought the gift of compulsion and used it on another.
He went
away, though his body remained. That which was
Finn
was elsewhere; he was not-Finn. He was something
less
and something awesomely more. He was not man, not
beast,
not god. Something—apart.
The man
wavered and sagged, but he did not fall.
Finn's
arm remained locked around his throat. The hand
was
pressed against his skull, but it did not break it. It did
not
snap the neck. It waited.
Finn
twitched and jerked. The natural sunbronzing of
his
face was suddenly gone; he was the color of death. All
gray
and ivory, with emptiness in his eyes. I saw the
slackening
of his mouth and heard the rasp in his throat.
And
then, before I could say a word, he broke the man's
neck
and threw the body down.
18
Jennifer Roberson
"Finn!"
I was off my horse at once, thrusting my sword
blade
down into the snow. I left it there, moving toward
Finn,
and reached out to grab what I could of his leathers
and
furs. "Finn, I said (urn him, not slay him—"
But
Finn was lurching away, staggering in the snow,
and I
knew he had not heard me. He was not himself. He
was
still—elsewhere.
"Finn."
I caught his arm and steadied him. Even be-
neath
the thickness of winter furs I could feel the rigidity
in his
arm. His color was still bad; his pupils were nothing
but
specks in a void of perfect yellow. "Finn—"
He
twitched again, and then he was back. He swung his
head to
look at me, and only then realized I held his arm.
At once
I released it, knowing he was himself again, but I
did not
relax my stance. It was only because he was Finn
that I
had left my sword behind.
He
looked past me to the body in the snow. "Tynstar,"
he
said. "I touched—Tynstar."
I
stared. "How?"
He frowned
and pushed a forearm across his brow, as if
he
sweated. But his face was dusted with snow, and he
shivered
from the cold. Once, but it gave away his bewil-
derment
and odd vulnerability. "He was—there. Like a
web,
soft but sticky . . . and impossible to shed." He
shook
himself, like a dog shaking off water.
"But—if
he and the others were hunting Cheysuli and
not the
Prince of Homana ..." I paused a moment.
"Would
Tynstar meddle in the qu'mahlin?"
"Tynstar
would meddle in anything. He is Ihlini."
I
nearly smiled. But I did not, because I was thinking
about
Tynstar. Tynstar, called the Ihlini, because he ruled
(if
that is the proper word) the race of Solindish sorcerers.
Much
like the Cheysuli were the magical race of Homana,
the
Ihlini sprang from Solinde. But they were evil and did
the
bidding of the demons who served the netherworld.
There
was nothing of good about the Ihlini. They wanted
Homana,
and had aided Bellam to get her.
"Then
he does not know we are here," I said, still
thinking.
"We
are in Ellas," Finn reminded me. "Homana is but
a day
or two away, depending on the weather, and I do
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 19
not
doubt Bellam has spies to watch the borders. It may
well be
these men were sent to catch Cheysuli—" he
frowned,
and I knew he wondered what tokens Beliam
required
as proof of a Cheysuli kill. Probably the earring,
perhaps
the armbands as well. —"but it may be they
sought
Homana's exiled prince." He frowned again. "I
cannot
be sure. I had no time to leam his intent."
"And
now it is too late."
Finn
looked at me levelly. "If Tynstar is meddling with
Homanans
and sending them out against the Cheysuli,
they
must be slain." For a moment he looked at the body
again.
Then his eyes came back to me. "It is a part of my
service
to you to keep you alive. Can I not do the same for
myself?
This
time I looked at the body. "Aye," I said finally,
harshly,
and turned back to retrieve my sword.
Finn
moved to his dead horse and stripped him of the
saddlepacks.
I mounted my horse and slid the sword home
in the
scabbard, making certain the blade was clean of
blood.
The runes ran silver in the white light of the storm.
Cheysuli
runes, representing the Old Tongue which I did
not
know. A Cheysuli sword for a Homanan prince. But
then
that was another thing the prophecy claimed: one
day a
man of all blood would unite, in peace, four warring
realms
and two magic races. Perhaps it would no longer
be a
Cheysuli sword in the hand of a Homanan prince. It
would
merely be a sword in the hand of a king.
But
until then. the golden hilt with its rampant, royal
lion
and the huge brilliant ruby in the prong-toothed
pommel
would remain hidden by leather wrappings. At
least
until I claimed the Lion Throne again and made
Homana
free.
"Come
up," I told Finn. "You cannot walk in all this
snow."
He
handed up his saddlepacks but did not move to
mount
behind me. "Your horse carries enough bulk, with
all of
you." He grinned. "I will go on as a wolf."
"If
Storr is too far ahead—" I stopped. Though the
shapechange
was governed by the distance between war-
^ rior
and lir, it was obvious this time there was no impedi-
^ ment.
The peculiar detached expression I knew so well
20
Jennifer Roberson
came
over Finn's face. For a moment his body remained
beside
my horse, but his mind did not. It was elsewhere,
answering
an imperative call, his eyes turned inward and
blank
and empty, as if he conversed with something—or
someone—no
one else could hear.
And
then he was back, grinning in genuine pleasure and
the
attack on us both forgotten. "Storr says he has found
us a
roadhouse."
"How
far?"
"A
league, perhaps a bit more Close enough, I think,.
after
days without a roof over our heads." He ran a hand
through
his black hair and shook free the powdery snow.
"There
are great advantages to lir-shape. Carillon. I will
be
quicker—and certainly warmer—than you."
I
ignored him. It was all I could ever do. I turned my
horse
back to the track and went on, leaving behind three
dead
men and one dead horse—the others had run away. I
cursed
the storm again. My face was numb from the ice in
my
beard. Even the wrappings did not help.
When
Finn at last went past me, it was in wolf-shape:
yellow-eyed,
ruddy-furred, fleet of foot. And wanner, no
doubt,
than I.
TWO
The
common room was crowded with men seeking respite
from
the storm. Dripping candles puddled into piles of
cooling,
^waxy fat on each table, shedding crude light and a
cruder
pall of smoke into the low beamwork of the road-
house.
The miasma was thick enough to make me choke
against
its acrid odor, but there was warmth in abundance.
For
that I would share any stench.
The
door hitched against the hardpack of the frozen
earthen
floor. I stopped short, ducking to avoid smacking
my head
against the doorframe. But then few roadhouse
doors
are built to accommodate a man of my height; the
years
spent in exile had made me taller than I had been
five
years before and nearly twice as heavy. Still, I would
not
complain, did the added height and weight—and the
beard—keep
me unknown on my journey home, I would
not
care if I knocked myself silly against Ellasian doorframes.
Finn
slipped by me into the room as I wrestled with the
door. I
broke it free, then swung it shut on half-frozen
leather
hinges, swearing as a dog ran between my legs and
nearly
upset me. For a moment I thought of Storr, seek-
ing
shelter in the forest. Then I thought of food and wine.
I
settled the latch-hook into place and marked absently
how the
stout iron loops were set for a heavy crossbeam
lock. I
could tell it was but rarely used, but I marked it
nonetheless.
No more did I have room in my life for the
ease of
meaningless friendships found in road- and alehouses.
21
22
Jennifer Roberson
Finn
waited at the table. Like the others, it bore a
single
candle. But this one shed no light, only a clot of
thick
smoke that fouled the air where the flame had glowed
a
moment before. Finn, I knew. It was habit with us both.
I
joined him, shedding furs and leathers. It felt good to
be man
again instead of bear, and to know the freedom of
movement.
I sat down on a three-legged stool and glanced
around
the common room even as Finn did the same.
No
soldiers. Ellas was a peaceful land. Crofters, most of
them,
convivial in warmth and the glow of liquor. Travel-
ers as
well, bound east or west; Ellasians; Homanans;
Falians
too, by their accents. But no Caledonese, which
meant
Finn and I could speak Ellasian with a Caledonese
twist
and no one would name us other.
Except
those who knew a Cheysuli when they saw one,
and in
Ellas that could be anyone.
Ellasians
are open, gregarious folk, blunt-speaking and
plain
of habits. There is little of subterfuge about them,
for
which I am grateful. I have grown weary of such
things,
though I have, of necessity, steeped myself in it. It
felt
good to know myself accepted for what I appeared in
the
roadhouse: a stranger, foreign, accompanied by a
Cheysuli,
but welcome among them regardless. Still, it
was to
Finn they looked twice, if only briefly. And then
they
looked away again, dismissing what they saw.
I
smiled. Few men dismiss a Cheysuli warrior. But in
Ellas
they do it often. Here the Cheysuli are not hunted.
And
then I recalled that Homanans had come into Ellas
hunting
Cheysuli and I lost my smile entirely.
The
tavern-master arrived at last, wiping greasy hands
on a
frayed cloth apron. He spoke with the throaty, blurred
accent
of Ellas, all husky and full of phlegm. It had taken
me
months to learn the trick, but I had learned. And I
used it
now.
"Ale,"
he said, "or wine. Red from Caledon, a sweet
white
from Falia, or our own fine Ellasian vintage." His
teeth
were bad but I thought the smile genuine.
"Have
you usca?" I asked.
The
grizzled gray brows rose as he considered the ques-
tion.
"Usca, is't? Na, na, I have none. The plainsmen of
the
Steppes have naught of trade wi' us now, since Ellas
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 23
allied
wi' Caledon in tiast war." His pale brown eyes
marked
us Caledonese; my accent had won us that much.
Or me;
Finn did not in the least resemble a Caledonese.
"What
else would you have?"
Finn's
yellow eyes were almost black in the dim candle-
light,
but I saw the glint in them clearly. "What of Homanan
honey
brew?"
At once
the brows drew down into a scowl. The Ellasian's
hair,
like his eyebrows, was graying, close-cropped against
his
head. A blemish spread across one cheek; some child-
hood
malady had left him scarred. But there was no suspi-
cion or
distrust in his eyes, only vague disgust.
"Na,
none of that, either. Tis Homanan, as you have
said,
and little enough of Homana comes across our bor-
ders
now." For a moment he stared at the gold earring
shining
in Finn's black hair. I knew what the Ellasian
thought:
little enough of Homana crossed the borders,
unless
you counted the Cheysuli.
"No
trade, then?" I asked.
The man
picked at snags in his wine-stained apron. He
glanced
around quickly, judging the needs of his custom-
ers out
of long practice. "Trade, after a fashion." he agreed
in a
moment, "but not wi' Homana. Wi' Bellam instead,
her
Solindish king." He ripped his head in Finn's direc-
tion.
"You might know."
Finn
did not smile. "I might," he said calmly. "But I
left
Homana when Bellam won the war, so I could not say
what
has befallen my homeland since."
The
Ellasian studied him. Then he leaned forward,
pressing
both hands flat against the table. "I say 'tis a sad
thing
to see the land brought down so low. The land
chafes
under that Solindish lord. And his Ihlini sorcerer."
And so
we came to the subject I had wanted to broach
all
along, knowing better than to bring it up myself. Now,
did I
say nothing and ask no questions, I made myself out
a
dullard, and almost certainly suspect. The man had
proved
talkative; I had best not disabuse him of that.
"Homana
is not a happy land?" My tone, couched in
Caledonese-tinged
Ellasian, was idle and incurious; strang-
ers
passed time with such talk.
The
Ellasian guffawed. "Happy? Wi' Bellam on her throne
24
JwmMT Robwon
and
Tynstar's hand around her throat? Na, not happy,
never
happy . . . but helpless. We hear tales of heavy
taxes
and over-harsh justice- The sort of thing that trou-
bles us
little enough in Ellas, under our good High King."
He
hawked and turned his head to spit onto the earthen
floor.
"They do say Bellam desires an alliance with Rhodri
himself,
but he'll not be agreeing to such a miscarriage of
humanity.
Bellam's a greedy fool; Rhodri is not. He has no
need
oft, wi* six fine sons." He grinned. "I hear Bellam
offers
his only daughter to the High Prince himself, but I
doubt
there will be a match made. Cuinn has better thighs
to part
than Electra of Solinde's."
And so
the talk passed-to women, as it will among men.
But
only until the Ellasian left to see about our food, and
then we
said nothing more of women, thinking of Homana
instead.
And Bellam, governed by Tynstar.
"Six
sons," Finn mused- "Perhaps Homana would not
now be
under Solindish rule, had the royal House proved
more
fertile."
I
scowled at him. I needed no reminders that the
House
of Homana had been less than prolific. It was
precisely
because Shaine the Mujhar had sired no son at
all—let
alone MX of them!—that he had turned to his
brother's
only son. Ah, aye, fertility and infertility. And
how the
issues had shaped my life, along with Finn's. For
it was
Shaine's infertility—except for a defiant daughter—
that
had left an enormous legacy to his nephew. Carillon
of
Homana, and the Cheysuli shapechanger who served
him.
The Lion Throne itself, upon the Mujhar's death,
and now
a war to fight.
As well
as a purge to end.
The
tavern-master arrived bearing bread for trenchers
and a
platter of steaming meat, which he set in the center
of the
table. Behind him came a boy with a jug of Ellasian
wine,
two leathern mugs and a quarter of yellow cheese- I
saw how
the boy looked at Finn's face, so dark in the
amber
candlelight. I saw how he stared at the yellow eyes,
but he
said not a single word. Finn was, perhaps, his first
Cheysuli.
And worth a second look.
Neither
boy nor man lingered, being too pressed by
other
custom, and Finn and I set to with the intentness of
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 25
starving
men. We were £iit starving, having eaten at the
: break
of day, but stale j( urney-loaf eaten in a snowstonn is
not
nearly as toothsome as hot meat in a warm roadhouse.
^ I unsheathed my knife and sliced off a chunk
of venison,
"
dumping it onto my trencher. It was a Caledonese knife I
..used
now in place of my own, a bone-handled blade
wrought
with runes and scripture. The hilt had been cut
from
the thigh of some monstrous beast, or so the king of
^.iCaledon
had told me upon presentation of it. The blade
Iftself
was bright steel, finely honed; the weight of it was
^"perfect
for my hand. Still, it was not my own; that one—
^Cheysuh-made—was
hidden in my saddlepacks.
$ I ate
until I could hardly move upon my stool, and
^ordered
a second jug of wine. And then, even as I poured
^Our
mugs full again, I heard the hum of rising conversa-
^tion.
Finn and I both looked instantly for the cause of the
^
heightened interest.
,t The
harper came down the ladder with his instrument
^.clasped
under one long arm. He wore a blue robe belted
^.at
the waist with linked silver, and a silver circlet held
-^back
the thick dark hair that curled on his shoulders. A
^wealthy
harper, as harpers often are, being hosted by
?;
kings and gifted with gold and gems. This one had fared
y.
well- He was tall, wide-shpuldered, and his wrists—showing
;' at
the edges of his blue sleeves—were corded with mus-
^cle. A
powerful man, for all his calling was the harp
;fc
instead of the sword. He was blue-eyed, and when he
^
smiled it was a professional smile, warm and welcoming.
^ Two men cleared space for him in the center
of the
; room
and set out a stool- He thanked them quietly and sat
.'down,
settling harp against hip and thigh. I knew at once
^ the
instrument was a fine one, having heard so many of
^ the
best with my uncle in Homana-Mujhar. It was of rich
^
honey-gold wood, burnished to a fine sheen with years of
^ use.
A single green stone was set into the top. The strings
|t
glowed gossamer-fine in the smoke and candlelight. They
-^
glinted, promising much, until he touched them and ful-
H'
filled that promise with the stroke of a single finger.
J^ Like a woman it was, answering a lover's
caress. The
,.-
music drifted throughout the room, soft and delicate and
^
infinitely seductive, and silenced the voices at once. There
26
J—mtfT Robwon
is no
miL\ alive who cannot lose himself in harpsong,
unless
he oe utterly deaf.
The
harper's voice, when he spoke, was every bit as
lovely
as '••10 harp. It lacked the feminine timbre of many I
had
hearof, yet maintained the rich liquid range the art
requires.
The modulation was exquisite; he had no need to
speak
leudly to reach all corners of the room. He merely
spoke.
Men listened.
"I
will please you as I please myself," he said quietly,
"by
giving you what entertainments I can upon my Lady.
But
there s a task I must first perform." From the sleeve
of his
robe he took a folded parchment. He unfolded it,
smoothed
it. and began to read. He did not color his tone
with
any emotion, he merely read. But the words were
quite
enough.
"Know
ye all men that Bellam the Mujhar,
King of
Solinde and Mujhar of Homana;
Lord of
the cities Mujhara and Lestra;
Sets
forth the sum of five hundred gold pieces
to any
man bringing sound word of Carillon,
styling
himself Prince of Homana,
and
wrongful claimant to the Lion Throne.
"Know
ye all men that Bellam the Mujhar
desires
even more the presence of the pretender,
offering
one thousand gold pieces
to any
man bringing CariUon—or his body—
into
Homana-Mujhar."
The
harper, when finished, folded the parcliment pre-
cisely
as it had been and returned it to his sleeve. His
blue
eyes, nearly black in the smoky light, looked at every
man as
if he judged his thoughts. All idleness was gone; I
saw
only shrewd intensity. He waited.
I
wondered, in that moment, if he recruited. I won-
dered
if he was Bellam's man, sent out with the promise of
gold. I
wondered if he counted the pieces for himself.
Five
hundred of them if he knew I was here. One thou-
sand if
he brought me home to Homana-Mujhar.
Home.
For disposal as Bellam—or Tynstar—desired.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 27
?. I saw what they did, the Ellasian men. They
thought of
'Cthe
gold and the glory. They thought of the task and the
1,
triumph. They considered, for a moment, what it might
I: be
to be made rich, but only for a moment, for then they
%
considered their realm. Ellas. Not Homana. Rhodri's realm.
t. And
the man who offered such gold had already swallowed
^ one
land.
"^,
The Ellasians, I knew, would do nothing for Bellam's
a'"
gold. But there were others in the room, and perhaps they
P^
would.
I
looked at Finn. His face was a mask, as ever; a blank,
sun-bronzed
mask, with eyes that spoke of magic and
myth
and made them both quite real.
The
harper began to sing. His deep voice was fine and
sweet,
eloquently expressing his intent. He sang of the
bitterness
of defeat and the gut-wrenching carnage of war.
He sang
of boys who died on bloodied fields and captains
who
fell beneath Solindish and Atvian swords. He sang of
a king
who hid himself in safety behind the rose-red walls
of
Homana-Mujhar, half-mad from a crazed obsession. He
sang of
the king's slain brother, whose son was trapped in
despair
and Atvian iron. He sang of the same boy, now a
man and
free again, who lived flis life in exile, fleeing
Ihlini
retribution. He sang my life, did this stranger, and
brought
the memories alive.
Oh gods
. . . the memories . . .
How is
it that a harper can know what was? How is it
that he
captures the essence of what happened, what I
am,
what I long to be? How is it that he can sing my song
while 1
sit unknowing, knowing only it is true, wishing it
were
otherwise?
How is
it done?
The
poignancy nearly shattered me. I shivered once
convulsively,
then stared hard at the scarred wooden table
while
the shackle weals beneath the sleeves of my leather
shirt
ached with remembered pain. I could not look at the
harper.
Not while he gave me my history, my heritage,
my
legacy, and the story of a land—my land—in her death
struggle.
"By
the gods—" I murmured before I could stop,
I felt
Finn's eyes on me. But he said nothing at all.
THREE
"I
am Lachlan," said the harper. "I am a harper, but also a
priest
of Lodhi the All-Wise, the All-Father, would you
have me
sing of Him?" Silence met his question, the
silence
of reverence and awe. He smiled, his hands un-
moving
upon the harp. "You have heard of the magic we
of
Lodhi hold. The tales are true. Have you not heard
them
before?"
I
looked over the room. Men sat silently on their benches
and
stools, paying no mind to anyone save the harper. I
wondered
again what he intended to do.
"The
All-Father has given some of us the gift of song,
the
gift of healing, the gift of words. And fewer of us claim
all
three " He smiled. It was an enigmatic, eloquent smile.
"I
am one, and this night I will share what I can with
you."
The
harp's single green stone cast a viridescent glow as
his
fingers danced across the strings, stirring a sound that
at once
set the flesh to rising on my bones. His eyes
passed
over each of us again, as if'he sought to compre-
hend
what each one of us was about. And still he smiled.
"Some
men call us sorcerers," he said quietly. "I will
not
dispute it. My Lady and I have traversed the leagues of
this
land and others, and what I have seen I have learned.
What I
will give you this night is something most men
long
for: a return to the innocent days, A return to a time
when
cares were not so great and the responsibilities of
I 28 I
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 29
manhood
did not weigh so heavily. I wilt give you your
greatest
day." The blue eyes swelled to black. "Sit you
still
and listen, hearing only my Lady and myself, and 1
will
give you the gift of Lodhi."
I heard
the music begin. For a moment I thought
.
nothing of it: it was harpsong as ever, boasting nothing
more
than what I had already heard. And then I heard the
underscore
moving through the melody. A strange, eerie
tone,
seemingly at odds with the smoother line. I stared at
the
harper's hands as he moved them in the strings, light
glittering
off the strands. And then I felt him inside my
. head.
'f Suddenly I was nothing but music. A single,
solitary
note. A
string plucked and plucked again, my use dictated
by the
harper whose hands were on my soul. I stared at
the
eloquent fingers moving, caressing, plucking at the
strings,
and the music filled my head.
The
colors of the room spilled away, like a wineglass
tipped
and emptied. Everything was gray, dark and light,
with no
blacks and no whites. I saw a harper in a gray robe
. with
gray eyes and grayish hair. Only the harp held true:
honey-gold
and gleaming, with a single emerald eye. And
', then
even that was gone . . .
No more
war—no more blood—no more wishing for
\
revenge. Only the sense of other days. Younger days, and
a
younger Carillon, staring with joy and awe at the great
;
chestnut warhorse his father had gifted him on his eigh-
teenth
birthday. I recalled the day so well, and what I had
thought
of the horse. I recalled it all, for on that day I was
named
Prince of Homana, and heir to the Lion Throne.
Again I
clattered down the winding staircase atJoyenne,
nodding
at servants who gave me morning greeting, think-
', ing
only of the promised gift. I had known it was to be a
i'.horse,
a warhorse, but not which one. I had hoped—
—and it
was. The great red stallion had gotten a
matching
son on my father's best mare, and that son was
mine at
last. FuU-grown and fuUy trained, ready for a
warrior.
I was not so much a warrior then, knowing only
the
practice chamber and tourney-fields, but 1 was more
^than
ready to prove what I could of my skill. And yet I
\ could
not have wished for that chance to come so soon.
30
Jennifer Roberson
1 saw
then the underside of the harper's spell. It was
true he
gave me my innocent days, but with those days
came
the knowledge of what had followed. He could not
have
summoned a more evocative memory had he tried
for it;
I think he did it purposely. I think he reached into
my
mind, digging and searching until he found the proper
one And
then he gave it to me.
The
memory altered. No more was I the young prince
reaching
out to touch the stallion. No. I was someone else
entirely:
a bloodied, soiled, exhausted boy in a man's
body,
his sword taken from him and his wrists imprisoned
in
Atvian iron. Taken by Thorne himself, Keough's son,
who had
ordered the iron hammered on.
All my
muscles knotted. Sweat broke out on my flesh. I
sat in
a crowded common room of a roadhouse in the
depths
of an Ellasian storm, and I sweated. Because I
could
not help myself.
And
then, suddenly, the colors were back The grays
faded.
Candlewicks guttered and smoked, turning faces
tight
and dark, and then I realized I sat still upon my stool
with
Finn's hand imprisoning my right wrist. It was not
iron,
it was flesh and bone, holding my arm in place. And
then I
saw why. In my fist was gripped the bone-handled
knife,
the blade pointing toward the harper.
"Not
yet," Finn said quietly "Perhaps later, when we
have
divined his true intent."
It made
me angry, Angry at Finn, which was wrong,
but I
had no better target. It was the harper I wanted, for
manipulating
me so, but it was Finn who was too near.
I let
go the knife. Finn let go the hand. I drew it in to
my
body, massaging the ridges of scar tissue banding my
wrist
as if it bore iron still. And I glared at him with all the
anger
in my eyes. "What did he give you? A Cheysuli on
the
throne?"
Finn
did not smile "No," he said, "He gave me Alix."
It took
the breath from my chest. Alix. Of course. How
better
to get to Finn than to remind him of the woman he
had
wanted badly enough to steal? The woman who had
turned
her back on him to wed Duncan, his brother.
The
woman who was my cousin, that I wanted for
myself.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 31
x^
Vi.
I
laughed bitterly. "A skillml harper indeed ... or more
likely
a sorcerer, as he claims." I stared across at the
blue-robed
man who was calmly refusing to sing again.
"Ihlini.
do you think? Sent from Bellam to set a trap?"
Finn
shook his head. "Not Ihlini; I would know. And 1
have
heard of this All-Father god." He grimaced in distaste.
"An
Ellasian deity, and therefore of less importance to
me, but
powerful nonetheless." He shifted slightly on the
stool,
leaning forward to pour himself more wine. "I will
have a
talk with him."
He had
named himself Lachlan, and now he moved
around
the room to gather up his payment in coin and
baubles
and wine. He carried his harp tucked into the
crook
of one arm and a cup in his other hand. Light
glittered
off the silver links around his waist and the
circlet
on his brow. He was a young man still, perhaps my
own
age, and tall, but lacking my substantial height and
weight.
Still, he was not slight, and I thought there was
strength
in those shoulders.
He came
last to our table, as I expected, and I pushed
the
winejug forward so he would know to help himself.
And
then I kicked a stool toward him. "Sit you down.
Please
yourself with the wine. And this." I drew forth
from my
belt-purse a jagged piece of gold, stamped with a
crude
design. But it was good gold, and heavy, and few
men
would look askance at its crude making. I slid it
across
the table with a forefinger, pushing it around the
bone-handled
knife.
The
harper smiled, nodded and sat down upon the
stool.
His blue eyes matched the rich hue of his robe. His
hair,
in the dim candlelight, showed no color other than a
dull
dark brown. It looked as if the sun had never touched
ft, to
bleach it red or blond. Dyed, I thought, and smiled
to
myself.
He
poured wine into the cup he held. It was a fine
silver
cup, though tarnished with age. The house cup for a
harper,
I thought, seeing little use I doubted it was his
own.
"Steppes
gold." He picked up the coin. "I do not often
see
payment of this sort." His eyes flicked from the coin to
32
Jennifer Roberson
my
face. "My skill is not worth so much, I think, you may
have it
back." He set the coin on the table and left it
The
insult was made calmly and clearly, with great care.
Its
intent was unknown, and yet I recognized it regard-
less.
Or was it merely a curious man gone fishing for an
outsize
catch? Perhaps an exiled pnnce.
"You
may keep it or not, as you wish." I picked up my
own
mug. "My companion and I have just returned from
the
Caledonese war against the plainsmen of the Steppes—
alive
and unharmed, as you see—and we are generous
because
of it." I spoke Ellasian, but with a Caledonese
accent.
The
harper—Lachlan—swirled wine in his tarnished cup.
"Did
it please you," he said, "my gift?"
I
stared at him over my mug. "Did you mean it to?"
He
smiled. "I mean nothing with that harpsong. I merely
share
my gift—Lodhi's gift—with the listener, who will
make of
it what he will. They are your memories, not
mine;
how could I dictate what you see?" His eyes had
gone to
Finn, as if he waited.
Finn
did not oblige. He sat quietly on his stool, seem-
ingly
at ease, though a Cheysuli at ease is more prepared
than
any man I know. He turned his mug idly on the table
with
one long-fingered hand. His eyes were hooded slightly,
like a
predator bird's, but the irises showed yellow below
the
lids.
"Caledon."
The harper went on as if he realized he
would
get nothing from Finn. "You say you fought with
Caledon,
but you are not Caledonese. 1 know a Cheysuli
when I
see one." He smiled, then glanced at me. "As for
you—you
speak good Ellasian, but not good enough. You
have
not the throat for it. But neither are you Caledonese;
I know
enough of them." His eyes narrowed. "Solindish,
perhaps,
or Homanan. You lack the lilt of Palia."
"Mercenaries,"
I said clearly, knowing it was—or had
been—the
truth. "Claiming no realm, only service."
Lachlan
looked at me. I knew he saw the thick beard
and the
uncut, sunstreaked hair that tangled on my shoul-
ders. I
had hacked off the mercenary's braid I had worn
for
five years, bound with crimson cord, and went as a free
man
again, which meant my sword was available. With a
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 33
,.
Cheysuli at my side, I would be a valuable man. Kings
ir
would pay gold for our service.
'v "No realm," he said, and smiled.
Then he pushed away
y' from
the table and got to his feet, cradling the harp. He
;i
picked up the blackened silver cup and nodded his thanks
(<
for the wine.
"Take
your payment," I said. "It was made in good
faith."
§ "And in good faith, I refuse
it." He shook his head.
t
"You have more need of it than I. I have no army to
H
raise."
H I laughed out loud. "You
misunderstand mercenaries.
I;
harper. We do not raise armies. We serve in them."
I, "I said precisely what I meant."
His face was solemn,
f^ eyes
flicking between us shrewdly. And then he turned
^ away.
j Finn put out his hand and gathered up his
knife. No,
9 not his precisely; like me, he hid his away.
He carried
'i
instead a knife taken from a Steppes plainsman, and it
',•
served its purpose. In Finn's hand, any knife did.
^ "Tonight," he said quietly,
"I will have conversation
|p with
that harper."
I, I thought fleetingly of the Ellasian god
the harper claimed
? to
serve. Would Lodhi interfere? Or would Lachlan
I?
cooperate?
j^ I smiled. "Do what you have to
do."
^ Because the storm had driven so many inside
for the
^
evening, the roadhouse was crowded to bursting. There
were no
private rooms. The best I could do was give gold
to the
tavern-master for two pallets on the floor of a room
already
occupied by three others. When I went in alone,
later
than I had intended, they already slept. I listened
;\
silently just inside the open door, to see if anyone feigned
® sleep
to lure me into a trap, but all three men were deep
I.
asleep. And so I shut the door, set my unsheathed sword
I on the lice-ridden pallet as I stretched
out my legs, and
^
waited for Finn to come in.
A- When he did, it was without sound. Not
even the door
^ squeaked, as it had for me. Finn was simply
in the room.
34
Jennifer Roberson
"The
harper is gone," he said. It was hardly a sound, but I
had
learned how to hear it.
I
frowned into the darkness as Finn knelt down on the
other
pallet. "In this storm?"
"He
is not here."
I sat
back against the wall, staring thoughtfully into the
darkness.
My right hand, from long habit, touched the
leather-wrapped
hilt of my sword. "Gone, is he?" I mused-
"What
could drive a man into an Ellasian snowstorm,
unless
there be good reason?"
"Gold
is often a good reason." Finn shed a few of his
furs
and dropped them over his legs. He stretched out
upon
his pallet and was silent. I could not even hear him
breathe.
I bit
at my left thumb, turning things over in my mind.
Questions
arose and I could answer none of them. Nor
could
Finn, so I wasted no time asking him. And then,
when I
had spent what moments I could spare considering
the
harper, I slid down the wall to stretch full length upon
the
lumpy pallet and went to sleep.
What
man—even a prince with gold upon his head—
need
fear for his safety with a Cheysuli at his side?
It was
morning before we could speak openly, and even
then
words were delayed. We went out into the ethereal
stillness
of abated storm, saddled and packed our horses
and
walked them toward the rack. The snow lay deep and
soft
around my boots, reaching nearly to my knees. The
track
was better, packed and shallow, and there I waited
while
Finn went into the trees and searched for his lir.
Storr
came at once, bounding out of the trees like a dog,
hurling
himself into Finn's arms. Finn went down on one
knee,
ignoring the cold, and cast a quick, appraising look
toward
the roadhouse. I thought it highly unlikely anyone
could
see us now. Satisfied, Finn thrust out an arm and
slung
it around Storr's neck, pulling the wolf in close.
What
their bond is, I cannot say precisely. I know only
what
Finn has told me, that Storr is a part of his heart and
soul
and mind; half of his whole. Without the wolf, Finn
said,
he was little more than a shadow, lacking the gifts of
his
race and the ability to survive. I thought it an awe-
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 35
somely
gruesome thing, to claim life only through some
sorcerous
link with an animal, but I could not protest what
so
obviously worked. I had seen him with the wolf before
during
such greetings, and it never failed to leave me
feeling
bereft and somehow empty. Jealous, even, for
what
they shared was something no other man could claim
save
the Cheysuli. I have owned dogs and favorite horses,
but it
was not the same. That much I could tell, looking at
them,
for Finn's face was transfigured when he shared a
reunion
with Storr.
Finn's
new horse, a dark brown gelding purchased from
the
tavern-master, pulled at the slack reins. I pulled him
back
again and got his reins untangled from those of my
little
Steppes pony. When I looked again at Finn I saw
him
slap Storr fondly on the shoulder, and then he was
pushing
back through the snow toward me.
I
handed the reins to him. "How does he fare?"
"Well
enough." The fond half-smile remained a mo-
ment,
as if he still conversed with the wolf. I had thought
once or
twice that his expression resembled that of a man
well-satisfied
by a woman, he wore it now "Storr says he
would
like to go home."
"No
more than I." The thought of Homana instead of
foreign
lands knotted my belly at once. Gods. to go home
again
... I looped my horse's reins over his ears, pulled
them
down his neck and mounted. As ever, the little
gelding
grunted. Well, I am heavier than the plainsmen
who
broke him. "I think we can reach Homana today,
does
the sky remain clear." I looked skyward and squinted
out of
habit. "Perhaps we should go to the Keep."
Finn,
settling into his saddle, looked at me sharply. He
went
hoodless as I did, and the early dawn light set his
earring
to glinting with a soft golden glow. "This soon?"
I
laughed at him. "Have you no wish to see your brother?"
Finn
scowled. "You know well enough I am not averse
to
seeing Duncan again. But I had not thought we would
go
openly into Cheysuli land so soon."
I
shrugged. "We are nearly there. The Keep lies on the
border,
which we must cross. And, for all that, I think we
both
wish to see Alix again."
Finn
did not meet my eyes. It was odd to realize the
36
Jennifer Roberson
time
away from Homana had not blunted his desire for his
brother's
wife. No more than it had mine
He
looked at me at last. "Do you wish to take me to her,
or go
for yourself?"
I
smiled and tried not to show him my regret. "She is
wed
now, and happily. There is no room for me in her life
except
as a cousin."
"No
more for me except as a rujholli." Finn laughed
bitterly;
his eyes on me were ironic and assessive as he
pushed
black hair out of his dark, angular face. "Do you
not
find it strange how the gods play with our desires? You
held
Alix's heart, unknowing, while she longed for a single
word
from your mouth. Then I stole her from you, intend-
ing to
make her my meijha. But it was Duncan, ever
Duncan
... he won her from us both." Grimly he put out
his
hand and made the gesture I had come to hate, for all
its
infinite meaning.
"Tahlmorra,"
I said sourly. "Aye, Finn, I find it passing
strange.
And I do not like it overmuch."
Finn
laughed and closed his hand into a fist. "Like it?
But the
gods do not expect us to like it. No. Only to serve
it."
"You
serve it. I want none of your Cheysuli prophecy. I
am a
Homanan prince."
"And
you will be a Homanan king . . . with all the help
of the
Cheysuli."
No man,
born of a brief history, likes to hear of another
far
greater than his own, particularly when his House has
fallen
into disarray. The Homanan House had held the
Lion
Throne nearly four hundred years. Not long, to
Cheysuli
way of thinking. Not when their history went
back
hundreds of centuries to a time with no Homanans,
Only
the Firstborn, the ancestors of the Cheysuli, with all
their
shapechanging arts.
And the
power to hand down a prophecy that ruled an
entire
race.
"This
way, then." Finn gestured and kicked his horse
into
motion.
"You
are certain?" I had no wish to get myself lost, not
when I
was so close to Homana at last.
Finn
cast me a thoroughly disgusted glance. "We go to
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 37
the
Keep, do we not? I should know the way. Carillon.
Once,
it was my home."
I
subsided into silence. I am silent often enough around
him.
Sometimes, with Finn, it is simply the best thing to
do.
FOUR
The
weather remained good, but the going did not. We
had
left behind the beaten track that led westward into
Homana,
seeking instead the lesser-known pathways.
Though
the Cheysuli were welcome within Ellas, they
kept to
themselves. I doubted High King Rhodri knew
much of
the people who sheltered in his forests. They
would
keep themselves insular, and therefore more mys-
terious
than ever. There would be no well-traveled tracks
leading
to the Keep.
At
last, as the sun lowered in the sky, we turned into
the
trees to find a proper campsite, knowing Homana and
the
Keep would have to wait another day. We settled on a
thick
copse of oaks and beeches.
Finn
swung off his mount. "I will fetch us meat while
you lay
the fire. No more journey-loaf for me, not when I
have
tasted real meat in my mouth again." He threw me
his
reins, then disappeared into the twilight with Storr
bounding
at his side.
I
tended the horses first, untacking them, then hobbling
and
graining them with what dwindling rations remained.
Once
the horses were settled I searched for stones, in-
tending
to build us a proper firecaim. We had gone often
enough
without a fire, but I preferred hot food and warmth
when I
slept.
I built
my caim, fired the kindling we carried in our
saddlepacks
and made certain the flames would hold. Then
I 38 I
THE
SONG OF HOMANA I 39
I
turned to the blankets I had taken from the horses.
Pelts,
to be precise; each horse was blanketed with two.
The
bottom rested hair-down against the horse, the top
one
hangup, to pad the saddle. At night the pelts became
blankets
for Finn and me, smelling of sweat and horsehair,
but
warm. I spread them now against the snow; after we
ate we
could thrust the hot stones beneath them to offer a
little
heat.
As \
spread the blankets I heard the muffled movement
in the
snow. My hand was on my sword instantly, ripping
it from
the sheath at my left hip. I spun, leveling the
blade,
and saw the flash of setting sunlight turn the runes
to
blinding fire.
Three
men before me, running at me out of the thicken-
ing
shadows. More than that behind me. I wondered
where
was Finn, and then I did not, for I had no time.
I took
the first one easily enough, marking the expres-
sion of
shock on his face as I swung my blade and cut
through
leather and furs and flesh, shearing the bone of
his arm
in two just below the shoulder. The momentum of
the
blade carried it farther yet, into his ribs, and then he
fell
and I wrenched the sword free to use it on yet another.
The
second fell as well, thrust'through the lungs, and
then
the others did what they should have done at the
first.
They came at me at once, en masse, so that even did
I try
to take yet a third the others could bear me down. I
did not
doubt I would account for at least another death
before
I died, perhaps even two—Finn and adversity had
taught
me wen enough for that—but the result would be
the
same. I would be dead, and Bellam would have his
pretender-prince.
I felt
the cold kiss of steel at the back of my neck,
sliding
through my hair. Yet another blade was at my
throat;
a third pressed against the leather and furs shield-
ing my
belly. Three men on me, then, two were dead, and
the
last man—the sixth—stood away and watched me.
Blood
was splattered across his face, but he bore no wound.
"Stay
you still," he told me at once, and I heard the fear
in his
voice. As well as the Homanan words.
I
gestured toward my belt-purse. "My gold is there."
"We
want none of t/our gold," he said quickly "We
40
Jennifer Roberson
came
for something more." He smiled. "But we will take
it,
since you offer.'
I still
held my sword in my right hand. But they did not
let me
keep it. One man reached out and took it from me,
then
tossed it aside. I saw how it landed across the firecairn,
clanging
against the stone. I saw how the hilt was in the
flames,
and knew the leather would bum away to display
the
golden lion.
"Whose
gold do you want, then?" I spoke Homanan,
since
they did, but I kept my Caledonese accent.
"Bellam's,"
he confided, and grinned.
Inwardly
I swore- The Solindish usurper had caught me
easily
enough. And I had not even reached Homana.
Still,
I forced a bewildered frown. "What does Bellam
want
with a mercenary? Can he not buy hundreds of
them?"
"You
travel with a shapechanger," he stated flatly.
Still I
frowned. "Aye. What of it? Has Bellam declared
it
unlawful? I am not Homanan, I am Caledonese, I choose
my
companions where I will." I looked at the sword hilt
and saw
how the leather turned black and crisp. In a
moment
it would peel away, and I would be unmasked. If
I were
not already.
"Cheysuli
are under sentence of death," the Homanan
said.
"That is one policy Bellam has kept intact since the
days of
Shame."
I
allowed surprise to enter my face. "You welcome
Bellam
as king, then? Though you be Homanan?"
He
glanced at the others. They were all familiar: I had
seen
them in the roadhouse the night before. And they
had
heard Bellam's message the harper had read. But I
wondered
how I had given myself away.
The man
spat into the snow. "We welcome Bellam's
gold,
since we get none of it another way. While he offers
payment
for each Cheysuli slain, we will serve him. That
is
all,"
I kept
my surprise from showing. Once more, it was not
me they
sought. Finn again. But it was me they had
caught,
and worth more—to Bellam—than five hundred
Cheysuli
warriors.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 41
Except
there were not five hundred Cheysuli left in all
the
world. My uncle had seen to that.
"You
have come across the border hunting Cheysuli?" I
asked.
He
smiled. "They are hard to find in Homana. But the
Ellasian
king gives them refuge, so we seek them here.
How
better to earn the gold?"
"Then
why," I asked very calmly, "do you disarm me? I
have no
stake in this."
"You
came in with the shapechanger. By taking you,
we take
him He will not turn beast with your life in our
hands."
I
laughed. "You count on a bond that does not exist,
The
Cheysuli and I met on the trail; we owe each other
nothing.
Taking me wins you nothing except a meaning-
less
death." I paused. "You do mean to slay me, do you
not?"
He
glanced at the others. For a moment there was
Hesitation
in his blue eyes, and then he shrugged. His
decision
had been made. "You slew two of us. You must
pay."
I heard
the jingle of horse trappings. The blades pressed
closer
against my neck, throat and belly as the man rode
out of
the trees. In his bare hands was a harp, and the
single
note he plucked held us all in thrall.
"You
will slay no one," the harper said. "Fools, all of
you,
when you have Carillon in your hands "
The
Homanans did not move. They could not. Like me,
they
were prisoners to the harp.
Lachlan
looked at me. "They are Homanans, Did you
tell
them your name, they might bend knee to you instead
of
baring steel."
His
fingers tangled in the strings 'and brought forth a
tangle
of sound. It allowed me to speak, but nothing
more.
"I am a mercenary," I said calmly. "You mistake me
for
someone else "
He
frowned. His eyes were on me intently, and the
sound
of the harp increased. I felt it inside my head, and
then he
smiled. "I can conjure up your life, my lord.
Would
you have me show it to us all?"
42
Jonnlfttr Robwon
"To
what purpose?" I inquired. "You will do what you
will
do, no matter what I say."
"Aye,"
he agreed.
I saw
how his fingers played upon the strings, drawing
from
the harp a mournful, poignant sound. It conjured up
memories
of the song he had played the night before, the
lay
that had driven a blade into my belly with the memo-
ries of
what had happened. But it was not the same. It had
a
different sound. His Lady sang a different song.
The
blades moved away from my neck, my throat, my
belly.
The Homanans stepped away, stumbling in the
snow,
until I stood alone. I watched, mute, as they took
up the
men I had slain and bore the bodies away into the
trees.
I was alone, except for the harper, but as helpless as
before.
"Ah,"
I said, "you mean to claim the gold yourself."
"I
mean to give you what men I can," he reproved. "I
sent
them home to wait until you call them to your
standard."
I
laughed. "Who would serve a mercenary, harper? You
have
mistaken me, I say."
Quite
calmly he set the harp into its case and closed it
up,
hooking it to his saddle. Lachlan jumped down from
his
horse and crossed the snow to me. He knelt swiftly,
pulled
thick gloves from his belt and folded them, then
pulled
my sword from the firecairn. The leather had burned
away,
and in the last rays of the setting sun the ruby
glowed
deep crimson. The lion was burnished gold.
Lachlan
rose. He held the blade gingerly, careful of the
heat
even through the gloves, but his smile did not fade.
He
turned to look at me with subtle triumph in his eyes.
"I
have leather in my packs," he said quietly. "You will
have to
wrap it again."
Still I
could not move. I wondered how long he meant
to hold
me. I wondered if he would take me all the way to
Mujhara
in his ensorcellment, so that Bellam would see
me
helpless. The thought set my teeth to gritting.
And
then I smiled. As Lachlan turned to go to his
horse—for
the harp, no doubt—Finn stepped around the
horse's
rump and blocked Lachlan's path. Around the
other
side came Storr. And the ensorcellment was broken.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 43
u
1!»
I
reached out and closed my gloved hand upon the
blade
of my sword, still in Lachlan's careful grasp. I felt
the
heat, but it was not enough to burn me. Simply
enough
to remind me what had so nearly happened.
Lachlan
stood quite still. His hands were empty of
everything
now save the gloves he held, folded in his
palms.
He waited.
Finn
moved closer. Storr followed. I could feel Lachlan's
tension
increase with every step they took. My own was
gone at
last; I felt calm, at ease, content to know the
confrontation
was firmly in our hands. No more in a sor-
cerous
harper's-
"The
others are dead." Finn stopped in front of Lachlan.
The
harper started. "You slew them? But I gave them a
task—"
"Aye,"
Finn agreed ironically. "I prefer to take no
chances."
Lachlan
opened his mouth to protest, then shut it again.
I saw
how rigid was his jaw. After a moment he tried
again.
"Then you have taken five men from Carillon's
army.
Five men you will miss."
Finn
smiled. There was little of amusement in it. "I
would
sooner take five men from Carillon's army than
Carillon
himself."
Lachlan
looked sharply at me. "You disbelieve me when
I say 1
wish only to aid you. Well enough, I understand it.
But he
is Cheysuli. He can compel the truth from me. I
know of
his gifts; I have my own."
"And,
having them, you may withstand mine," Finn
commented.
Lachlan
shook his head. "Without my harp, I have no
magic.
I am at your disposal. And I am not Ihlini, so you
need
fear no loss of your own power."
Finn's
hands were a blur, reaching to catch the harper's
head
before Lachlan could move away. He held the skull
between
both palms, cradling it, as if he sought to crush
it, but
he did not. Lachlan's own hands came up, reaching
to peel
Finn's fingers away, but they stopped. The hands
fell to
his sides. Finn held him there, and went into his
mind.
After a
moment, when some sense came back to Finn's
44
Jennifer Robarson
eyes,
he looked at me. "He is a harper, a healer and a
priest.
That much I can touch. But nothing else. He is
well
shielded, no matter that he wishes to claim his
innocence."
"Does
he serve Bellam or Tynstar?"
"He
does not appear to." The distinction was deliberate.
I
looked upon my sword and methodically rubbed the
ash and
charring from its hilt. "If he is neither Bellam nor
Tynstar's
man, whose man is he? He had his chance to
slay me
with that harp, or to take my mind from me.
Bellam
would give him his gold for a body or a madman."
I
grimaced. "He might even have used the Homanans as a
guard
contingent—he has the power with that harp. But
he did
none of those things."
"Shall
I slay him for you?"
I
squinted at the ruby, darkening as the sun went down.
"Harpers
are traditionally immune from such things as
assassination.
Petty intrigue they cannot help—I think it is
born in
them even as the harping is born—but never have
I known
one to clothe himself in murder."
"Gold
can buy any man."
I
grinned at him, brows lifting. "A Cheysuli, perhaps?"
Finn
scowled. With (he fortune in gold on his arms and
in his
ear, more would hardly tempt him. Or any other
warrior.
"He is not Cheysuli," was all he said, and the
meaning
was quite clear.
"No,"
I agreed, sighing. "But perhaps he is only a spy,
not a
hired assassin. Spies I can deal with; often they are
useful.
How else coufd we have led Bellam this merry
dance
for five years?" I smiled again. Bellam had sent
spies
to track us down. Five had even found us. Those we
had
stripped of their task, giving them a new one instead:
to take
word to Bellam that we were elsewhere in the
world.
Usually hundreds of leagues away from where we
were.
It had worked with three of them.
The
others we had slain.
"Then
you mean to use him." His tone was perfectly
flat,
but I knew he was not pleased.
"We
will take him with us and see what he means to
do."
"You
tread a dangerous path, Carillon."
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 45
I
smiled. "It is already dangerous. This will add a fillip."
I
laughed at his expression. "It will also keep you in
practice,
liege man. You were slow in coming to my aid."
"I
had five men to slay before I could reach the harp."
But he
frowned a little, and I knew he was not immune to
the
knowledge that he had been slow. Faster than anyone
else,
perhaps, but slow for a Cheysuli warrior.
"You
are getting old, Finn." I gestured. "Set our harper
free.
Let us see what he intends to do."
Finn
released Lachlan. The harper staggered a mo-
ment,
then caught himself, touching his head with a tenta-
tive
hand. His eyes were blurred and unfocused. "Have
you
done?"
"More
than done," I agreed- "Now tell us why you wish
to aid
me."
He rubbed
his brow, still frowning slightly. "It is a
harper's
life to make songs out of heroes and history. You
are
both, you and your Cheysuli. You should hear the
stories
they tell." He grinned, his senses restored. "A
harper
gains his own measure of fame by adding to the
fame of
others. I could do worse than to ride with Carillon
of
Homana and his equally infamous liege man."
"You
could," I agreed, and let him make of that what he
would.
After a
moment Lachlan gestured. "Your fire has gone
out. Do
you wish it, I can give it life again."
I
glanced down at the firecaim. Snow had been kicked
into
the fire during the scuffle with the Homanans and the
weight
had finally doused it. "I have flint and steel," 1
said.
"Your
kindling is damp. What I do will take less effort."
Lachlan
turned to go to his horse for the harp, but Storr
was in
his way. After a moment a gray-faced harper looked
back at
me.
I
smiled. "Storr does Finn's bidding, when he does not
do his
own. Look to him."
Lachlan
did not move. He waited. And finally Storr
moved
away.
The
harper took down his case from the horse and
turned,
cradling it against his chest. "You fear I will use
sorcery
against you?"
46
Jennifer Roberson
"With
reason," I declared.
"I
will not." He shook his dull, dark head. "Not again. I
will
use it for you, do you wish it, but not against. Never
against.
We have too much in common "
"What,"
I asked, "does a mercenary have in common
with a
harper?"
Lachlan
grinned. It was the warm, amused expression I
had
seen the evening before, as if he knew what 1 could
not,
and chose to keep it that way. "I am many things," he
said
obliquely. "Some of them you know: harper, healer,
priest.
And one day I will share the rest with you."
1 lifted
my sword, With great deliberation I set the tip
against
the lip of the sheath and let Lachlan see the runes,
hardly
visible in the dying light. Then I slid the sword
home
with the hiss of steel filling the shadows. "Do you
admit
to complicity," I said softly, "take care."
Lachlan's
smile was gone. Hugging his harp case, he
shook
his head "Were I to desire your death, your Cheysuli
would
give me my own." He cast a quick, flickering glance
at
Finn. "This is Ellas. We have sheltered the Cheysuli for
some
years, now. Do you think I discount Finn's skill?
No. You
need not be wary of me, with him present. I
couid
do nothing."
I
gestured. "There is that in your hands."
"My
Lady?" He was surprised, then smiled. "Oh, aye,
there
is her magic. But it is Lodhi's, and I do not use it to
kill."
"Then
show us how you can use it," I bid him. "Show
us what
other magic you have besides the ability to give us
our
memories, or to lift our wills from us."
Lachlan
looked at Finn, almost invisible in the deepen-
ing
shadows. "It was difficult, with you. Most men are so
shallow,
so transient. But you are made of layers. Com-
plex
layers, some thin and easily torn away, but in tearing
they
show the metal underneath. Iron," he said thought-
fully.
"I would liken you to iron. Hard and cold and
strong."
Finn
abruptly gestured toward the firecaim "Show us,
harper."
Lachlan
knelt down by the firecaim. Deftly he unsealed
the
harp case—boiled leather hardened nearly to stone by
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 47
some
agent, padded thickly within—and took from it his
Lady.
The strings, so fragile-seeming, gleamed in the
remaining
light. The wood, I saw, was ancient, perhaps
from
some magical tree. It was bound with spun gold. The
green
stone—an emerald?—glowed.
He
knelt in the snow, ignoring the increasing cold, and
played
a simple lay. It was soft, almost unheard, but
remarkable
nonetheless. And when his hands grew blurred
and
quick I saw the spark begin, deep in the damp,
charred
wood, until a single flame sprouted, swallowed it
all.
and the fire was born again.
The
song died upon the harp. Lachlan looked up at me.
"Done,"
he said.
"So
it is, and myself unscathed." I reached down a
gloved
hand, caught his bare one and pulled him to his
feet.
His was no soft grasp, no woman's touch designed to
keep
his harper's fingers limber.
Lachlan
smiled as we broke the grip. I thought he had
judged
me as quickly as I had him. But he said nothing;
there
was nothing at all to say. We were strangers to one
another,
though something within me said it would not
always
be so.
"You
ride a blooded horse," T said, looking at the
dapple-gray.
"Aye,"
Lachian agreed gravely. "The High King likes
my
music. It was a gift last year."
"You
have welcome in Rheghed?" I asked, thinking of
the
implications.
"Harpers
have welcome anywhere." He tugged on his
gloves,
hunching against the cold. "I doubt not Bellam
would
have me in Homana-Mujhar, did I go."
He
challenged me with his eyes. I smiled, but Finn did
not.
"Aye, I doubt not." I turned to Finn. "Have we
food?"
"Something
like," he affirmed, "but only if you are
willing
to eat coney-meat. Game is scarce."
I
sighed. "Coney is not my favorite, but I prefer it to
none at
all."
Finn
laughed. "Then at least I have taught you some-
thing
in these past years. Once you might have demanded
venison."
48
Jennifer Roberson
"I
knew no better, then." I shook my head. "Even
princes
leam they have empty bellies like anyone else,
when
their titles are taken from them."
Lachlan's
hands were on his harp as he set it within its
case.
"Which title?" he asked. "Prince or Mujhar?"
"Does
it matter? Bellam has stolen them both."
When
the coneys were nothing but gristle and bone—
and
Storr demolished the remains quickly enough—Lachlan
brought
out a skin of harsh wine from his saddlepacks and
passed
it to me. I sat cross-legged on my two peits, trying
to
ignore the night's cold as it settled in my bones. The
wine
was somewhat bitter but warming, and after a long
draw I
handed it to Finn. Very solemnly he accepted it,
then
invoked his Cheysuli gods with elaborate distinction,
and I
saw Lachlan's eyes upon him. Finn's way of mocking
another
man's beliefs won him few friends, but he wanted
none.
He saw no sense in it, with Storr.
Lachlan
retrieved the skin at last, drank, then passed it
on to
me. "Will you tell me what I must know, then? A
saga is
built out of fact, not fancy. Tell me how it was a
king
could destroy the race that had served him and his
House
so well."
"Finn
would do better to tell it." If he would.
Finn,
sitting on his pelts with Storr against one thigh,
shrugged.
The earring glinted in the firelight. In the shad-
ows he
seemed more alien than ever, part of the nighttime
itself.
"What is there to say? Shaine declared qu'mahlin on
us for
no good reason . . . and we died." He paused.
"Most
of us."
'"You
live," Lachlan commented.
Finn's
smile was not precisely a smile, more a move-
ment of
his lips, as if he would bare his teeth. "The gods
saw
another way for me. My tahlmorra was to serve the
prophecy
in later years, not die as a helpless child." His
hand
went out to bury itself in Storr's thick hair.
Lachlan
hesitated, cradling his harp case. "May I have
the
beginning?" he asked at last, with careful intonation.
Finn
laughed. There was no humor in it. "What is the
beginning,
harper? 1 cannot say, and yet I was a part of
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 49
it."
He looked at me a moment, fixedly, as if the memo-
ries
had swallowed him-
1
swallowed, remembering too. "The fault lay in a man's
overweening
pride." I did not know how else to begin.
"My
uncle, Shaine the Mujhar—who wanted a son and
had
none—tried to wed his daughter to Ellic of Solinde,
Bellam's
son, in hopes of ending the war. But that daugh-
ter
sought another man: Cheysuli, Shaine's own liege man,
turning
her back on the alliance and the betrothal. She
fled
her father, fled Homana-Mujhar, and with her went
the warrior."
"My^ehon,"
Finn said before I could continue. "Father,
you
would say. Hale. He took Lindir from her tahlmorra
and
fashioned another for them both. For us all; it has
resulted
in disaster." He stared into the fire. "It took a
king in
the throat of his pride, strangling him, until he
could
not bear it. And when his cheysula died of a wasting
disease,
and his second bore no living children, he deter-
mined
the Cheysuli had cursed his House." His head
moved
slightly, as if to indicate regret. "And he declared
qu'mahlin
on us all."
Lachlan
frowned intently. "A woman, then. The catalyst
of it
all."
"Lindir,"
I agreed. "My cousin. Enough like Shaine, in
woman's
form, to be a proper son. Except she was a
daughter,
and used her pride to win her escape."
"What
did she say to the result?"
I shook
my head. "No one knows. She came back to her
father
eight years later when she was heavy with Hale's
child,
because he was dead and she had no other place to
go.
Shaine took her back because he needed a male heir;
when
the child was born a girl he banished her to the
woods
so the beasts could have their shapechanger halfling.
But
Alix lived because Shaine's arms-master—and the
Queen
of Homana herseu—begged the Mujhar to give her
to man
instead of beast." I shifted on my pelts. "Lindir
died
bearing Alix. What she thought of the qumahlin I
could
not say, but it slew her warrior and nearly destroyed
his
race."
Lachlan
considered it all. And then he looked at Finn.
50
Jennifer Roberson
"How
is it, then, you serve Carillon? Shaine the Mujhar
was his
uncle."
Finn
put out his hand and made the familiar gesture.
"Because
of this. Tahlmorra. I have no choice." He smiled
a
little. "You may call it fate, or destiny, or whatever
Ellasian
word you have for such things ... we believe
each
child is born with a tahlmorra that must be heeded
when
the gods make it known. The prophecy of the First-
born
says one day a man of all blood shall unite, in peace,
four
warring realms and two magic races. Carillon is a part
of that
prophecy." He shook his head, solemn in the
firelight.
"Had I a choice, I would put off such binding
service,
but I am Cheysuli, and such things are not
done."
"Enemies
become friends." Lachlan nodded slowly, star-
ing
fixedly into the Bre as if he already heard the music.
"It
would make a fine lay. A story to break hearts and rend
souls,
and show others that hardships are nothing com-
pared
to what the Cheysuli have suffered. Do you give me
leave,
Finn, I will—"
"—do
what?" Finn demanded. "Embellish the truth?
Change
the story in the interests of rhyme and resonance?
No. I
deny you that leave. What I have suffered—and my
clan—is
not for others to know."
My
hands, hooked loosely over my knees, curled into
fists
that dug the bluntness of my nails into the leather of
my
gloves. Finn rarely spoke of his past or his personal
feelings,
being an intensely private man, but as he spoke I
heard
all the pain and emotion in his voice. Raw and
unfettered,
in the open at last.
Lachlan
met his eyes. "I would embellish nothing, with
such
truth," he said quietly. "I think there would be no
need."
Finn
said something in the Old Tongue, the ancient
language
of the Cheysuli. I had learned words and phrases
in the
past years, but when Finn resorted to it out of
anger
or frustration—or high emotions—I could under-
stand
none of it. The lyrical syllables became slurred and
indistinct,
yet managed to convey his feelings just the
same. I
winced, knowing what Lachlan must feel.
But
Finn stopped short. He never yelled, having no
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 51
need,
but his quietness was just as effective Yet silence
was
something altogether different, and I thought per-
haps
something had stopped him. Then I saw the odd
detached
expression in his face, and the blankness of his
eyes,
and realized Storr conversed with him.
What
the wolf said I cannot guess, but I saw Finn's face
darken
in the firelight with heavy color, then go pale and
grim.
Finally he unlocked his jaw and spoke.
"I
was a boy." The words were so quiet 1 could hardly
hear
them over the snap and crackle of the flames. "Three
years
old." His hand tightened in the silver fur of Storr's
neck. I
wondered, with astonishment at the thought, if he
sought
support from his fir to speak of his childhood
clearly.
It was not something he had said to me before,
not
even when I had asked "I had sickened with some
childish
fever, and kept to my jehana's skirts like a fool
with no
wits." His eyes hooded a little, but he smiled, as if
the
memory amused him. Briefly only; there was little of
amusement
in the tale. "Sleep brought me no peace, only
bad
dreams, and it was hot within the pavilion. It was
dark,
so dark, and I thought the demons would steal my
soul. I
was so hot." A heavy swallow rippled the flesh of
his
throat. "Duncan threw water on the fire to douse it,
thinking
to help, but he only made it smoke, and it
choked
me. Finally he fell asleep, and my jehana, but I
could
not "
I
glanced at Lachlan. He was transfixed.
Finn
paused. The firelight filled his eyes. "And then the
Keep
was full of the thunder of the gods, only the thunder
came
from men. The Mujhar's men. They swept into our
Keep
like demons from the netherworld, determined to
destroy
us all. They set fire to the pavilion."
Lachlan
started. "With children inside?"
"Aye,"
Finn said grimly. "Ours they knocked down with
their
horses, then they dropped a torch on it." His eyes
flicked
to Lachlan's astonished face. "We paint our pavil-
ions,
harper. Paint bums very quickly."
Lachlan
started to speak, as if to halt the recital. Finn
went on
regardless, perhaps purging his soul at last.
"Duncan
pulled me from the fire before it could con-
sume us
all. My jehana took us both into the trees, and
52
Jennifer Roberson
there
we hid until daylight. By then the men were gone,
but so
was most of our Keep." He took a deep breath. "I
was
young, too young to fully understand, but even a child
of
three leams how to hate." The eyes came around to me.
"I
was bom two days before Hale went away with Lindir,
and
still he took her. Still he went from the Keep to
Homana-Mujhar,
and helped his meijha, his mistress, es-
cape.
And so Shaine, when he set his men upon us, made
certain
Hale's Keep was the first."
Lachlan,
after a long moment of silence, shook his head.
"I
have gifts many men do not, because of Lodhi and my
Lady.
But even I cannot tell the tale as you do." His face
was
very still. "I will leave it to those who can. I will leave
it to
the Cheysuli."
FIVE
When at
last we drew near the Keep a day later, Finn
grew
pensive and snappish. It was unlike him. We had
dealt
well together, though only after I had grown used to
having
a Cheysuli at my side, and after he had grown accus-
tomed
to riding with a Homanan. Now we had come home
again,
at least to his mind, home again, would Finn put off
his
service?
It set
the hairs to rising on my neck I had no wish to
lose
Finn. I needed him still. I had teamed much in the
years
of exile, but ] had yet to leam what it was to lay
claim
to a stolen throne. Without Finn, the task would be
close
to impossible.
He
pulled up his mount sharply, hissing invectives be-
neath
his breath. And then his face went blank with the
uncanniness
of the fir-bond and I knew he conversed with
the
wolf.
Lachlan,
wise harper, said nothing. He waited as I did.
But the
tension that was a tangible thing did not appear to
touch
him.
Finn
broke free of the contact at last. I had watched his
face;
had seen it grow hard and sharp and bleak, like his
eyes.
And now I grew afraid.
"What
is it?" I hissed.
"Storr
sends a warning." Finn shivered suddenly, though
the
sunlight that glittered off his earring was warm upon
our
shoulders. "I think I feel it myself. I will go in. Keep
I 53 I
54
Jennifer Roberson
yourself
here." He looked at Lachlan a moment, consider-
ing
something, by the look in his eyes. Then he shrugged,
dismissing
it. "Keep yourself here, as I said, until I come
back
for you."
He
spoke lightly enough, no doubt for Lachlan's bene-
fit,
but I could not wait for subterfuge. I caught the rein of
his
horse and held him still. "Tell me. What is it?"
Finn
looked again at Lachlan, and then he looked at
me.
"Storr can touch no lir."
"None?"
"Not
even Alix."
"But—with
her Old Blood—" I stopped. He need say
no
more. Could Storr touch no lir at all, the situation was
grave
indeed. 'There may be danger for you as well," I
told
him quietly.
"Of
course. So I go in Zir-shape." He dropped off his
horse
at once, leaving me with a skittish animal at the end
of a
leather rein. "Tahlmorra lujhala mei wiccan, cheysu,"
he said
to me, shrugging, and then he was no longer a
man.
I
watched Lachlan, As the space in which Finn stood
emptied,
swallowed instead by the void, Lachlan's eyes
stretched
wide. And then they narrowed as he frowned,
staring
as if he would learn it himself. His Hngers dropped
to the
harp case at his knee, touching it as if to reassure
himself
he was awake, not asleep. By the time I looked
back at
Finn the man-shape was completely gone, re-
placed
by the blurred outline of a wolf. I felt the familiar
rolling
of my belly, swallowed against it, as always, and
looked
at Lachlan again. His face had taken on a peculiar
greenish
hue. I thought he might vomit up his fear and
shock,
but he did not.
The
ruddy wolf with Finn's yellow eyes flicked his tail
and
ran.
"They
do not merit fear," I told Lachlan clearly, "unless
you
have done something to merit their enmity." I smiled
as his
eyes turned to me, staring as if he thought I too
might
be a wolf, or something equally bestial. "You are an
innocent
man, you have said: a harper . - . what have you
to fear
from Finn?"
But a
man does not stop fearing the specter of childhood
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 55
nightmares
so easily, no matter how innocent he is.
Lachlan—with,
perhaps, more guilt than he claimed—might
have
better reason to fear what he saw. He stared after
Finn,
seeing nothing now, but the greenish pallor had
been
replaced by the white of shock and apprehension.
"Wolves
cannot know reason! Does he know you in that
shape?"
"Finn,
in that shape, knows everything a man knows," I
said.
"But he also claims the wisdom of a wolf. A double
threat,
you might say, for one who deserves careful con-
sideration."
I shifted in the saddle, half my mind with
Finn
and the other half knowing what Lachlan felt. I had
felt it
myself, the first few times. "He is not a demon or a
beast.
He is a man who claims a god-gift in his blood,
much as
you claim it in yours. It is only his gods manifest
their
presence a little differently." I thought of the magic
he made
with his music, and then I laughed at his horri-
fied
expression. "Think you he worships Lodhi? Not Finn.
Perhaps
he worships no god, or gods, but he serves his
own
better than any man I have ever known. How else do
you
think he would keep himself to my side?" Finn's horse
tried
to wander, searching for grass in the snow, and I
pulled
him back. "You need have no fear he might turn on
you,
wolflike, and tear your throat from your body. He
would
do that only if you gave him reason." I met the
harper's
eyes steadily, keeping my tone light. "But then
you
have no wish to betray me, have you? Not with your
saga at
stake."
"No."
Lachlan tried to smile, but I could see the thoughts
in his
head. No man, seeing the shapechange for the first
time,
forgets it so quickly. If at all. "What was it he said to
you,
before he changed himself?"
I
laughed. "A philosophy, of sorts. Cheysuli, of course,
and
therefore alien to Homanans or Ellasians." I quoted
the
words: "Tahlmorra lujhala mei wiccan, cheysu. It
means,
roughly, the fate of a man rests always within the
hands
of the gods." I made the gesture, being very dis-
tinct
as I lifted my right hand and spread my fingers. "It is
usually
shortened to the word tahlmorra, which says more
than
enough quite simply."
Lachian
shook his head slowly. "Not so alien to me, I
56
J«nnlfwr Robafon
think.
Do you forget I am a priest? Admittedly my god is
singular,
and far different from those Finn claims, but I
am
trained to understand the faith a man holds. More than
trained;
I believe it with all my heart, that a man may
know
and serve his deity." His hand tapped the harp case.
"My
gift is there. Carillon. Finn's is elsewhere, but just as
strong.
And he is just as devout, perhaps more so, to give
himself
up to his fate." He smiled. "Tahlmorra lujhala mei
wiccan,
cheysu. How eloquent a phrase."
"Have
you any like it?"
Lachlan
laughed. "You could never say it. You tack an
Ellasian
throat." He thumped the harp case. "This one is
not so
hard: Yhana Lodhi, yffennog faer." He smiled. "A
man
walks with pride forever when he walks with Lodhi,
humble."
And
then Finn was back, two-legged and white-faced,
and I
had no more time for philosophy. I held out the rein
as Finn
reached for it, but I could ask none of the ques-
tions
that crowded my mouth. Finn's face had robbed me
of my
voice.
"Destroyed,"
he said in a whisper. 'Tom down. Burned."
His
pallor was alarming. "There is no Keep,"
I was
over the broken stonework before I realized what
it was,
setting my horse to jumping though he lacked the
legs to
do it. He stumbled, scrabbling at the snow-cloaked
heaps
of mortared stone, and then I knew. The wall, the
half-circle
wall that surrounded every Keep. Shattered
and
broken upon the ground.
I
pulled up at once, saving the horse, but also saving
myself.
I sat silently on the little gelding, staring at what
remained
of the Keep. Bit by bit I looked, allowing myself
one
portion at a time; I could not bear to see it all at once.
Snow
covered nearly everything, but scavenger beasts
had dug
up the remains. I saw the long poles, some
snapped
in two, some charred. I saw scraps of soiled cloth
frozen
into stifihess, colors muted by time and harsh
weather.
The Brecairns that had stood before each pavilion
lay in
tumbled fragments, spilled by hostile feet and de-
structive
hooves. All of it gone, with only ragged remnants
of a
once-proud Keep.
In my
mind I saw it as I had seen it last: undressed,
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 57
unmortared
stone standing high to guard the Keep; bil-
lowing
pavilions of varied hues emblazoned with painted
lir.
The perches and pelts existing for those lir, and the
children
who feared nothing of the wild. Save, perhaps,
for
those who knew to fear Homanans.
I
cursed. It came viciously out of my mouth along with
the
spittle. I thought of Duncan, clan-leader of his Keep,
but
mostly 1 thought of Alix.
I rode
on then. Directly to the proper place. 1 knew it
well
enough, though nothing remained to mark it. And
there I
slid off my horse, too stiff to dismount with any skill
or
grace, and fell down upon my knees.
One
pole pierced its way through snow to stab out of
the
ruins like a standard. A scrap of fabric, stiff from
freezing,
still clung to the wood. I tugged at it and it came
away,
breaking off in my hand. Slate-colored, with the
faintest
blur of gold and brown. For Cai, Duncan's hawk.
Not
once had I thought they might be dead. Not once,
in all
the time spent in exile, had I thought they might be
gone.
They had been the one constant in my life, along
with
Finn. Always I had recalled the Keep and the clan-
leader's
pavilion, filled with Duncan's pride and Alix's
strength,
and the promise of the unborn child. Never once
had I
even considered they might not be here to greet
me.
But it
was not the greeting I missed. It was the convic-
tion of
life, no matter where it existed. Nothing lived here
now.
I heard
the sound behind me and knew at once it was
Finn.
Slowly, suddenly old beyond my years, I stood up. I
trembled
as if with illness, knowing only a great sorrow
and
rage and consuming grief.
Cods .
. . they could not be dead—
Lachlan
made a sound. I looked at him blindly, thinking
only of
Alix and Duncan, and then I saw the expression of
realization
in his eyes.
Finn
saw it also. As he leaped, still in human form, I
caught
him in mid-stride. "Wait—"
"He
knew."
The
words struck me in the face. But still I held Finn.
58
Jwnntfr Robwon
"Wait.
Do you slay him, we will learn nothing from him.
Wait—"
Lachlan
stood rooted to the earth. One hand thrust
outward
as if to hold us back. His face was white. "I will
tell
you. I will tell you what I can."
I let
go of Finn when I knew he would do nothing
more.
At least until he had better reason. "Then Finn has
the
right of it: you knew."
Lachlan
nodded stiffly. "I knew. Have known. But I had
forgotten.
It was—three years ago."
"Three
years." I stared around the remains of the Keep.
"Harper—what
happened?"
He
looked steadily at me. "Ihlini."
Finn
hissed something in the Old Tongue. I merely
waited
for further explanation. But I said one thing: "This
is
Ellas. Do you say Tynstar has influence here?"
Dull
color came up into Lachlan's face. "I say nothing of
that.
Ellas is free of Ihlini domination. But once, only
once,
there was a raid across the border. Ihlini and
Solindish,
hunting the Cheysuli who sheltered in this
realm,
and they came here." A muscle ticked in his jaw.
"There
have been songs made about it, but it is not
something
I care to recall. I had nearly forgotten."
"Remember,
"Finn said curdy. "Remember it all, harper."
Lachlan
spread his hands. 'The Ihlini came here. They
destroyed
the Keep. They slew who they could of the
Cheysuli."
"How
many?" Finn demanded.
"Not
all." Lachlan scrubbed a hand across his brow. as if
he
wished to free himself of the silver circlet of his calling.
"I—do
not know, perhaps, as much as I should."
"Not
enough and too much, all at once," Finn said
grimly.
"Harper, you should have spoken earlier. You
knew we
came to the Keep."
"How
am I to know them all?" Lachlan demanded.
"The
High King gives the Cheysuli shelter, but he does
not
count them. old or young. I doubt Rhodri can say how
many
Keeps or how many Cheysuli are in Ellas. We
merely
wefcome them all."
This
time it was Finn who colored, but only for a
moment.
The grief and tension were back at once, etching
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 59
lines
into his face. He wore his mask again, the private
mask, stark
and hard in his insularity. "They may all be
dead.
And that would leave only me—" He broke off.
Lachlan
took a deep breath. "1 have heard that those
who
survived went back into Homana. North. Across the
Bluetooth
River."
Finn
frowned. "Too far," he muttered, looking at Storr.
Too far
even for the fir-link,"
I
looked directly at Lachlan. "You have heard much for
a man
who recalls so little. To Homana, you say. North,
across
the Bluetooth. Are you privy to information we
have no
recourse to?"
He did
not smile. "Harpers are privy to much, as you
should
know. Had you none in Homana-Mujhar?"
"Many,"
I said briefly. "Before Bellam silenced the
music."
Finn
turned his back. He stared again at the remains of
Duncan's
slate-gray pavilion. I knew he meant to master
himself.
I wondered if he could.
"May
I suggest," Lachlan began, "that you use my harp
skill
in trying to rouse your people? I could go into taverns
and
sing The Song of Homana, to test how the people feel.
How
better to learn their minds, -and how they will an-
swer
their rightful king's call?"
"The
Song of Homana?" Finn said doubtfully, turning
to
stare at Lachlan.
"You
have heard it," the harper said, "and I saw what it
did to
you. It has a magic of its own."
He
spoke the truth. Did he go into Homanan taverns
and
play that song on his Lady, he would know sooner
than
anyone else what my people were capable of. Had
Bellam
cowed them, it would take time to rebuild their
spirit.
Were they merely angry, I could use it.
I
nodded at Lachlan. "The horses require tending."
For a
moment he frowned, baffled, and then he under-
stood.
Silently he took away our horses and gave us room
to
speak freely, without fear he might overhear.
"I
give you leave to go," I told Finn simply.
Something
flickered in his eyes. "There is no need."
"There
is. You must go. Your clan—your kin—have
gone
north across the Bluetooth. Home to Homana, where
60
Jennifer Roberson
we are
bound. You must go and find them, to set your
soul at
peace."
He did
not smite. "Healing Homana is more important
than
seeking out my clan."
"Is
it?" I shook my head. "You told me once that clan-
and
kin-ties bind more closely than anything else in Cheysuli
culture.
I have not forgotten. I give you leave to go, so I
can
have you whole again." I held up a silencing hand.
"Until
you know. it will eat at your soul like a canker."
The
flesh of his face was stiff. "I will not leave you in
companionship
to the enemy."
I shook
my head. "We do not know if he is an enemy."
"He
knows too much," Finn said grimly. "Too much
and too
little. I do not trust him."
"Then
trust me." I put out my gloved hand and spread
my
fingers, palm up. "Have you not taught me all you can
in the
art of staying alive, even in dire adversity? I am no
longer
quite the green princeling you escorted into exile. I
think I
may have some control over my life." I smiled.
"You
have said it is my tahlmorra to take back the Lion
Throne.
If so, it will happen, and nothing will gainsay it.
Not
even this time apart."
He
shook his head slowly. "Tahlmorras may be broken,
Carillon.
Do not mislead yourself into believing you are
safe."
"Have
more faith in me," I chided. "Go north and find
Alix
and Duncan. Bring them back." I frowned a moment.
"Bring
them to Tori-in's croft. It was Alix's home, and if he
is
still alive it will be a place of sanctuary for us all."
He
looked at the ruined pavilion, buried under snow.
And
then he looked at Storr. He sighed. "Rouse your
people,
my lord of Homana. And 1 will bring home the
Cheysuli."
SIX
Mujhara.
It rose out of the plains of Homana like an eagle
on an
aerie, walled about with rose-red stone and portcul-
lised
barbican gates. Homana-Mujhar was much the same:
walled
and gated and pink. The palace stood within the
city on
a hill. Not high, but higher than any other. Lachlan
and I
rode through the main gate into Mujhara, and at
once I
knew I was home.
Save I
was not. My home was filled with Solindish
soldiers,
hung about with ringmail and boiled leather and
glinting
silver swords. They let us in because they knew no
better,
thinking Homana's rightful lord would never ride
so
willingly into his prison.
I heard
the Solindish tongue spoken in the streets of
Mujhara
more than I heard Homanan. Lachlan and I
spoke
Ellasian merely to be safe. But 1 thought I could say
anything
and be unacknowledged; Bellam's soldiers were
bored.
After five years and no threat from without, they
lived
lazily within.
The
magnificence was gone. I thought perhaps it was
my own
lack of discernment, having spent so long in
foreign
lands, but it was not. The city, once so proud, had
lost
interest in itself. It housed a Mujhar who had stolen
his
throne, and the Homanans did not care to praise his
name.
Why should they praise his city? Where once the
windows
had glittered with glass or glowed with horn,
now the
eyes were dark and dim, smoked over, puttied at
I
61 )
62
Jennifer Roberson
corners
with dirt and grime. The white-washed walls were
dingy
and gray, some fouled with streaks of urine. The
cobbled
streets had crumbled, decayed until the stench
hung
over it like a miasma. I did not doubt Homana-
Mujhar
remained fit for a king, but the rest of the city did
not.
Lachlan
.ooked at me once, then again. "Look not so
angry,
or they will know."
"I
am sick," I said curtly. "I could vomit on this vile-
ness.
What have they done to my city?"
Lachlan
shook his head. "What defeated people do
everywhere:
they live. They go on. You cannot blame them
for it.
The heart has gone out of their lives. Bellam exacts
overharsh
taxes so no one can afford to eat, let alone wash
their
houses. And the streets? Why clean dung when the
great
ass sits upon the throne?"
I
glanced at him sharply. He did not speak as Bellam's
man.
saying what he should to win my regard. He spoke
like a
man who understood the reasons for Mujhara's
condition—disliking
it, perhaps, as much as I, but tolerat-
ing it
better. Perhaps it was because he was Ellasian, and
a
harper, with no throne to make his own.
"I
am sorry you must see it this way," I told him with
feeling.
"When /—" I broke it off at once. What good lies
in
predicting something that may not happen?
Lachlan
gestured. "Here, a tavern. Shall we go in?
Perhaps
here we will find better fortune than we found at
the
village taverns."
We had
better. Failure rankled, though I understood it.
It is
difficult to ask poor crofters to give up what little they
have to
answer the call of an outlawed prince. It was
soldiers
I needed first, and then what other men I could
find.
I
stared at the tavern grimly. It looked like all the
others:
gray and dingy and dim. And then I looked at
Lachlan.
He
smiled, but it lacked all humor, a hooking down of
his
mouth. "Of course. We will go on to another . . . one
you
will choose for yourself."
I
jumped off my horse, swore when I slipped in some
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 63
muck,
and scraped my boot against a loosened cobble.
"This
will do well enough. Come in, and bring your harp."
Lachlan
went in before me when he had taken his Lady
from
his saddle. I paused to let him enter alone, then
went in
behind him, shoving open the narrow, studded
door.
At once
I ducked. The beamwork of the dark roof was
low, so
low it made me wince against its closeness. The
floor
beneath my feet was earthen, packed, but bits of it
had
been scraped into ridges and little piles of dirt, as if
the
benches and tables had been dragged across it to rest
in
different places. I put up a hand to tear away the sticky
webbing
that looped down from the beam beside my
head.
It clung to my fingers until I scrubbed it off against
the
cracked, hardened leather of my jerkin.
A single
lantern depended from a hook set into the
central
beam, painted black with pitch. It shed dim light
over
the common room. A few candles stood out on the
tables,
fat and greasy and stinking. There was little tight in
the
place, just a sickly yellow glow and the haze of ocher-
ous
smoke.
Lachlan,
with his harp, was welcomed at once. There
were
perhaps twenty men scattered around the common
room,
but they made way for him at once, drawing up a stool
and
bidding him begin. I found a table near the door and
sat
down, asking for ale when the tavern-master arrived. It
was
good brown ale when it came, hearty and woody; I
drank
the first cup down with relish.
Lachlan
opened with a sprightly lay to liven them up.
They
clapped and cheered, urging him on, until he sang a
sad
song of a girl and her lover, murdered by her father. It
brought
a less exuberant response but no less a liking for
Lachlan's
skill. And then he picked out the opening notes
of The
Song of Homana.
He got
no more than halfway through the tale. Abruptly
a
soldier in Solindish ringmail and too much wine pushed
to his
feet and drew his sword. Treason!" he shouted. He
wavered
on his feet, and I realized how drunk he was.
"You
sing treason!" His Homanan was poor, but he was
clearly
understandable. So was his implication as he raised
the
shining sword.
64
Jennifer Robarson
1 was
on my feet at once. My own sword was in my
hand,
but other men had already seized the soldier and
forced
him down on his stool, relieving him of his sword.
It
clanged to the floor and was kicked away. Lachlan, I
saw,
had set down his Lady in the center of a table, and
his
hand was near his knife.
Four
men held the soldier in place. A fifth moved to
stand
before him. "You are alone here, Solindishman," he
said.
"Quite alone. This is a Homanan tavern and we are
all
Homanans; we invite the harper to finish his lay. You
will
sit and listen . . . unless I bid you otherwise." He
jerked
his head. "Bind him and stop up his mouth!"
The soldier
was instantly bound and gagged, propped
upon
the stool like a sheep held down for shearing. With
less
tenderness. The young man who had ordered him
bound
cast an assessive glance around the room. I saw his
eyes on
me, black in the dimness of the candlelight. They
paused,
oddly intent though seemingly indifferent, and
moved
on.
He
smiled. He was young, eighteen or nineteen, I
thought,
with an economy of movement that reminded me
of
Finn. So did his black hair and the darkness of his face.
"We
have silenced this fool," he said calmly. "Now we
shall
let the harper finish."
I
sheathed my sword and sat down slowly- I was aware
of the
men who had moved in behind me, ranging them-
selves
along the wall. The door, I saw, was barred. This
was not
an unaccustomed occurrence, then; the Solindish
were
the hunted.
The
knowledge made me smile,
Lachlan
completed his lay. The final note, dying out,
was met
with absolute silence. I felt a trickle of forboding
run
quickly down my spine; I shivered, disliking the sen-
sation.
And yet I could not shake it from me.
"Well
sung," the black-eyed young man said at last.
"You
have a feel for our plight, it seems. And yet you are
Ellasian."
"Ellasian,
aye." Lachlan raised a cup of water to his
mouth
and sipped. "But I have traveled many lands and
have
admired Homana for years."
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 65
"What
is left to admire?" the Homanan demanded. "We
are a
defeated land."
"For
now. aye, but do you not wait only for your prince
to
return?" Smiling, Lachlan plucked a single string of his
Lady.
The sound hung in the air a moment, and then it
faded
away. "The former glory you aspire to have again
... it
may come."
The
young man leaned forward on his stool. "Tell me—
you
travel, as you say—do you think Carillon hears of our
need?
Do you sing this song wherever you go, surely you
have
had some response!"
"There
is fear," Lachlan said quietly. "Men are in fear
of
Solindish retribution. What army could Carillon raise,
were he
to come home again?"
"Fear?"
The other nodded. "Aye, there is fear. What
else
could there be in this land? We need a lord again, a
man who
can rouse this realm into rebellion." He had all
the
dedication of the fanatic, and yet there was little of the
madness
in him, I thought, He was desperate; so was I. "I
will
not lie and say it would be easy, harper, but I think
Carillon
would find more than a few ready to rally to his
standard."
I
thought of the crofters, muttering into their wine and
ale. I
thought of what little success we had had in learning
if
Homana desired my return.
"What
would you do," Lachlan asked, "were he to come
home
again?"
The
other laughed with a bitterness older than his years.
"Join
him- These few you see. Not many, but a beginning.
Still,
there are more of us yet- We meet in secret, to plot,
and to
aid Carillon however we may. In hopes he will
come
home."
"Bellam
is powerful," Lachlan warned, and I wondered
what
more he knew.
The
Homanan nodded. "He is indeed strong, and claims
many
troops who serve him well. And with Tynstar at his
side,
he is certainly no weak king. But Carillon brought
the
Cheysuli into Homana-Mujhar before, and nearly de-
feated
the Ihlini. This time he might succeed."
"Only
with help."
"He
will have it."
66
Jennifer Roberson
Lachlan
nodded idly. "There are strangers among you.
Even I,
Ellasian though I may be."
"You
are a harper." The young man frowned. "Harpers
have
immunity, of course. As for the soldier, he will be
slain."
Lachlan
looked at me across the room. "And the other?"
The
Homanan merely smiled. And then the men were
at my
back, asking for my knife and sword. After a mo-
ment's
hesitation, I gave them into their hands. Two men
remained
behind me, another at my left side. The young
man was
taking no chances. "He will be slain, of course.'
Of
course. I smiled at Lachlan, who merely bided his
time.
The
knife was given to the young man. He looked at it
briefly,
frowning over the Caledonese runes and scripture,
then
set it aside on the nearest table. The sword was given
to him
then, and he did not at once put it down. He
admired
the edge, then saw the runes set into the silver.
His
eyes widened. "Cheysuli" made!" He glanced sharply
at me.
"How did you get this?" For a moment something
moved
in his face. "Off a dead man, no doubt. Cheysuli
swords
are rare."
"No,"
I said. "From a live one. And now, before you
slay
me, I bid you do one thing."
"Bid
me?" He stared, brows rising beneath the black
hair.
"Ask, perhaps . . . but it does not mean I will answer."
I did
not move. "Cut the leather free."
His
hands were on the hilt. I saw him look down at the
leather,
feeling the tautness of it. I had wrapped it well,
and
would do so again.
"Cut
the leather free."
His
stare challenged me a moment. And then he drew
his
knife and did precisely as I asked.
The
leather fell free of his hand. He stared at the hilt;
the
rampant, royal lion of purest Cheysuli gold, the bur-
nished
grip, the massive ruby clutched in curving prongs.
The
magnificent Mujhar's Eye.
"Say
what it is, so all will know," 1 told him quietly.
"The
lion crest of Homana." His eyes moved from the
hilt to
my face, and I smiled.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 67
"Who
carries this sword, this crest?"
Color
had left his face. "The blood of the House of
Homana
" He paused. Then, in a rush of breath and
words,
"But you might have stolen this sword!"
I
glanced pointedly at my guards. "You have disarmed
me. Say
I may come forward."
"Come,
then." Color was back in his face. He was
young,
and angry, and afraid of what he thought he might
hear.
I rose,
pushing away my stool- Slowly I walked forward,
looking
only at the young man, and then I stopped before
him. He
was tall, Cheysuli-tall, but I was taller still.
I
pushed back the sleeve on my left arm, showing him
the
scar that ringed my wrist. "See you that? I have
another
exactly like it, on my right. You should know
them
both. Rowan." He flinched in surprise. "You were
prisoner
to Keough of Atvia, as I was. You were flogged
because
you spilled wine on Keough himself, even though
I asked
them to spare you. Your back must show signs of
the
flogging, even as my arms show the mark of the iron."
I let
go the sleeve. "May I have my sword back, now?"
Stiffly,
he lowered his head to look at it in his hands.
And
then, as if realizing the history of the blade, he thrust
it out
to me. I accepted it, feeling safer almost at once,
and
then he dropped to his knees.
"My
lord," he whispered. "Oh, my lord . . . forgive
me!"
I slid
the sword home in its sheath. "There is nothing to
forgive.
You have done what you should have done."
He
stared up at me. I saw how his eyes were yellow in
the
candlelight, I had always thought him Cheysuli. It was
Rowan
who denied it. "How soon do we fight, my lord?"
I
laughed at his eagerness. "It is late winter now. It will
take
time to gather what men we can. In true spring,
perhaps,
we can begin the raiding parties." I gestured.
"Get
up from there. This is not the place- I am not the
Mujhar
quite yet."
He
remained where he was. "Will you formally accept
my
service?"
I
reached down and caught his woollen shirt and leather
:-jerkin,
pulling him to his feet. "I told you to get up from
68
Jennifer Roberson
the
floor," I said mildly, startled to find him so grown. He
had
been but thirteen the last time I had seen him.
Rowan
straightened his clothing. "Aye, my lord."
I
turned to the other men. Rowan's, all of them, intent ,•
upon
rebellion- And now intent upon the scene before
them;
not quite believing the prince he had promised had
come
into their midst.
I
cleared my throat. "Most of you are too young to recall
Homana
before the days of the qu'mahlin, when my uncle
the
Mujhar ordered every Cheysuli slain. You have grown ,,
up
fearing and distrusting them, as I did myself. But I |
learned
differently, and so must you." I put up a silencing ;
hand.
"They are not demons. They are not beasts. They
serve
nothing of the netherworld, they serve me." 1 paused.
"Has
any of you ever even seen a Cheysuli warrior?"
There
was a chorus of denials, even from Rowan. I looked ,;
at each
man, one by one. "I will have no bloodshed among
my men.
The Cheysuli are not your foes."
"But—"
one man began, then squirmed beneath my
eye.
"It
is not easy to forget a thing you have been taught to
believe,"
I went on. more quietly. "I know that better ^
than
you think. But I also think, once you have got over
your
superstitious fears of something you cannot compre-
hend,
you will see they are no different from any other." I
paused.
"You had better."
Rowan,
behind me, laughed once. I thought there was
relief
in his tone.
"Will
you serve me," I asked, "even with the Cheysuli
by my
side?"
Agreement.
No denials. I searched for reluctance and
found
none.
"And
so the Song continues," murmured Lachlan, and
at that
I laughed aloud.
It was
Rowan who told me of my kin, what remained of
it: my
mother and my sister. We sat alone at a comer
table,
speaking of plans for the army we must gather. He
spoke
clearly and at length, having spent much of his time
considering
how best it could be done, and I was grateful
for his
care. He would make the preparation much easier.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 69
But
when at last he chanced to say, off-handedly, that my
mother
no doubt missed my sister's company, I raised my
hand to
stop him.
"Is
Tourmaline not at Joyenne?"
Rowan
shook his head. "Bellam took her hostage. Years
ago; I
think it was not long after you escaped from
Homana-Mujhar."
Escaped—Tynstar
had let me go. I picked at the scarred
wood of
the table and bid Rowan to continue.
He
shrugged, at a loss for what to tell me. "The Lady
Gwynneth
is kept at Joyenne, well-guarded. Princess Tour-
maline,
as I said, is at Homana-Mujhar. Bellam seeks to
hold
anything that might bring you to him. He dares not
allow
either of them freedom, for fear they could be used
as a
rallying point for the rebellion."
"Instead
of me?" I rail a hand through my beard to
scratch
the flesh beneath. "Well, Bellam will be busy with
me.
There is no need for him to hold two women."
"He
will," Rowan asserted. "He will never let them
go."
He stopped a moment, eyeing me tentatively. "There
is even
talk he will wed the lady, your sister."
I spat
out an oath and nearly stood up, hand to my
re-wrapped
sword hilt. Instead I sat down again and hacked
at the
table with my knife, adding yet more scars to the
wood.
"Torry would not allow it," I said flatly, knowing
she
would have little to say about it. Women did not when
it came
to their disposal.
Rowan
smiled. "I had heard she was not an acquiescent
hostage.
And with two women in one castle—" He laughed
aloud,
genuinely amused.
-Two?"
"His
daughter, the Princess Electra." Rowan frowned.
"There
is talk she is Tynstar's light woman."
"Tynstar's."
I stared at him, sitting upright on my stool.
"Bellam
gives his daughter over to that?"
"I
heard it was Tynstar's price." Rowan shifted on his
bench.
"My lord, there is little I can tell you. Most is
merely
rumor. I would not dare claim any of it as truth."
"There
is some truth in rumor," I said thoughtfully,
taking up
my ale again. "If she is Tynstar's light woman,
there
is a use for her in my plans."
70
Jennifer Roberson
"You
wish to use a woman against the sorcerer?" Rowan
shook
his head. "Begging your pardon, my lord, I think
you are
mistaken."
"Princes
are never mistaken." I grinned at his instant
discomfort.
"All men can be mistaken, and fools if they
think
not. Well enough, we shall have to consider a plan.
Two of
them—to wrest my mother from Joyenne, and
Tony
from Homana-Mujhar." I frowned, wishing Finn
were
with me. To set a trap without him—I focused on
Rowan
again. "For a man who swears he is not Cheysuli,
you are
the perfect image of a warrior."
Dark
color moved through Rowan's face. "I know it. It
has
been my bane."
'There
is no danger in it, with me. You could admit it
freely—"
"I
admit nothing!" I was pleased he did not hide his
anger,
even before his prince. Treacherous are men who
are all
obsequious nods and bows, never letting me see
their
hearts. "I have said I am not Cheysuli," he repeated.
"My
lord."
I
laughed at his stiff, remembered formality. And then
the
laughter died away, for I heard Lachlan harping in the
background.
Making magic with his Lady.
I
turned to look at my enigmatic ally. Ellasian. A stranger
who
wished to be my friend, he said. Bellam's man? Or
Tynstar's?
Or merely his own, too cunning to work for
another?
I still doubted him.
Slowly
1 rose. Rowan rose with me, out of courtesy, but
I could
see the puzzlement in his eyes. I went across the
room
and stopped at Lachlan's table, seeing how his blue
eyes
were black in the yellow light of the tavern.
He
stopped playing at once, his fingers still resting
upon
the gleaming strings. His clustered audience, seeing
my
face, moved away in silence.
I drew
my sword from its sheath. I saw the sudden
Haring
of fear in Lachlan's eyes. A sour, muted note sang
from
his harp and then stilled, but the candles and lantern
guttered
out.
Darkness.
But not so dark there was no light. Merely
shadows.
And the sorcerous green stone in Lachlan's Lady
gave
off enough brilliance to see by.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 71
His
fingers were in the strings. But so was the tip of my
sword.
I saw
it in his face: the fear I would harm his harp. Slay
it,
like an animal, or a man. As if the wood and wire lived.
"Put
her down—your Lady," I said gently, having felt
her
magic twice.
He did
not move. The stoneglow washed across the
blade
of my sword, setting the runes to glinting in its
light.
And in that light I knew power, ancient and strong
and
true.
The
blade was parallel to the strings, touching nothing.
Slowly
I turned it. One string whined its protest, but I
held it
back from death.
Lachtan
bent forward a little, sliding the harp free of my
sword.
Carefully he set his Lady in the center of the table
and
took his hands away. He waited then, quietly, his
arms
empty of his harp.
I put
my left hand on my sword, on the blade below the
crosspiece.
I took my right hand off the hilt. That I offered
to
Lachlan.
"The
Solindish soldier," I said calmly. "Slay him for me,
harper."
SEVEN
"Forgive
me, my lord," Rowan said quietly. "Is it wise
you
should go, and alone?"
I sat
upon a rotting tree stump, high on the hill behind
Ton-in's
croft. Alix's foster father was indeed still alive,
and he
had been astonished to Bnd me the same when I
had
arrived at his dwelling some weeks before. He had
given
me the story of the Ihlini attack much as Lachlan
had,
verifying that what remained of the clan had gone
north
across the Bluetooth. So now, using Torrin's croft as
a
temporary headquarters, I gathered what army I could.
Here I
was safe, unknown; the army camped in the shel-
tering
forest in the hills behind the valley, practicing with
swords
and knives.
I
stirred, knocking snow off my boots by banging heels
against
the tree stump. The day was quite clear; I squinted
against
the sunlight. "Wise enough, does no one find me
out."
I glanced at Rowan, standing three steps away, in
the
attitude of a proper servant. I thought it would ease
with
time, so that he served through desire instead of
rigid
dedication. "I have told no one but you and Torrin of
my
plan."
Rowan
nodded as the color came and went in his sun-
bronzed
face. He was not accustomed to being in my
confidence.
It rested ill with him, who thought himself
little
more than a servant no matter how often I said he
was
much more. "There is the harper," he offered quietly.
72
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 73
I grunted,
shifting my seat on the rotting stump, "Lachlan
believes
he has proven his worth by slaying the soldier. 1
will
let him think it. He has, to some extent . . . but not
all."
I bent and scooped up a stone, idly tossing it through
the
trees. "Say what is in your mind, Rowan. At my
behest."
He
nodded, head bowed in an attitude of humility. His
hands
were behind his back. His eyes did not look at me
but at
the snow-covered ground beneath his boots. "You
distrust
the harper, still, because you do not know him
well
enough. My lord—I say you know me little better."
"I
know enough," 1 said. "I recall the thirteen-year-old
boy who
was captive of the Atvians along with me. I recall
the boy
who was made to serve the Lord Keough himself,
though
he be cuffed and struck and tripped." Rowan's
eyes
came up to mine, stricken. "I was in the tent also,
Rowan.
That you must surely recall. And I saw what they
did to
your back."
His
shoulders moved, tensing, rippling beneath the
leather
and wool. I knew what he did, flinching from the
lash.
He could not help it, no more than I at times, when
I
recalled the iron upon my wrists.
At
that, the flesh twinged. I ruboed at both wrists, one
at a
time, not needing to feel the ridges to know they were
there.
"I know what it was. Rowan," I said unevenly. "No
man,
living through that, would willingly serve the en-
emy.
Not when his rightful lord is come home."
He
stared again at the ground. I saw the rigidity in his
shoulders
"I will do whatever you require." His voice was
very
quiet.
"I
require you to wait here while I go, and to be vigilant
in your
watching." I smiled. "Lachlan may fool us all, in
the
end, by being precisely what he claims, but I would
know my
enemy before I give him my back. I trust to you
and
Torrin in this. See to it the harper does not leave and
make
off for Mujhara, to carry Bellam word of my where-
abouts.
See to it he cannot give any of us away."
Through
the trees came the clashing of swords and the
angry
shout of an arms-master. The men drilled and drilled
until
they would drop, cursing the need for such practice
even
while they knew it was necessary. They had been
74 t
JennMw Rob«r«on
gone
from war too long, most of diem; some of them had
never
known it. Men came from crofts and cities and even
distant
valleys, having heard the subtle word.
CarUlon,
it said. CariUon is come home.
I stood
up, slapping at my leather breeches. The snow
was
slushy now, almost sodden; I thought the thaw would
come
soon. But not yet- I prayed not yet. We were
nowhere
close to being an army, and in spring I wanted to
start
my campaign against Bellam's men.
I
smiled. In spring, when the planting began, so no one
would
be expecting battle. I would anticipate a summer
campaign,
and throw Bellam into disarray.
I
hoped.
"He
will know," Rowan said, "the Solindish king. He
will
send men."
I
nodded. "Take the army deeper into the forest. Leagues
from
here. Leave no one with Torrin; I do not wish to
endanger
him. I want no fighting now. Better to hide like
runaway
children than give ourselves over to Bellam's
men.
See they do it, Rowan."
He
crossed his arms and hugged his chest, as if he were
suddenly
cold. "My lord—take you care."
I
grinned at him. "It is too soon to lose me yet. Does it
come,
it will come in battle." I turned away to my horse
and
untied his reins from a slender sapling. The same
little
dun Steppes gelding, still shaggy and ragged and
ugly.
Nothing like the warhorse my lather had given me
five
years before.
Rowan's
face was set in worried, unhappy lines. All his
thoughts
were in his eyes: he thought I would die and the
rebellion
come to an end.
I
mounted and gathered in my reins. "She is my lady
mother.
I would have her know I live."
He
nodded a little. "But to have to go where you know
there
are soldiers—"
'They
will be expecting an army, not a single man." I
touched
the hilt of my sword, wrapped once again and
scabbarded
at my saddle. "I will be well enough."
I did
not look back as I rode away from the young man I
had
learned to trust. But I knew he stood in the shade of
the
trees, squinting against the sun.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA I 75
The
walnut dye turned my hair dark and stiff and dull.
Grease
made it shiny and foul. One braid, bound with a
leather
lace, hung before my left ear. The beard was
already
dark, and unknown to any who had seen me at
eighteen.
My
teeth were good and I still boasted all of them. I
rubbed
a resinous gum into them to turn them yellow and
foul my
tongue. My clothes were borrowed, though I
doubted
I would return them; the man who wore mine no
doubt
preferred them to his, they being much better than
his
rags. What I wore now was a threadbare woollen tunic,
once
dark green, now brown with mud and grease. Match-
ing
woollen trews bagged at my knees, reaching only
halfway
to my ankles. I had put off my boots and replaced
them
with leather buskins.
Leather
bracers hid my wrist scars, something a guard
might
look for. No doubt Bellam had described me as tall,
tawny-dark
and blue-eyed, with shackle scars on both
wrists.
I was still tall, but now walked stooped, hitching a
leg,
one shoulder crooked down as if a broken bone had
been
improperly set. There was nothing of Bellam's
pretender-prince
about me as I walked toward the village
surrounding
Joyenne. Not even the sword and the bow,
for
both could give me away. Both I had buried in the
snow
beneath a rowan tree, marked with a lightning gash.
I
carried only the knife, and that was sheathed beneath
my
tunic against my ribs.
I
scuffed through snow and slush, kicking out at the
dogs
who ran up to see the stranger. Joyenne-town was
little
more than a scattered village grown up because of
the
castle. There were no walls, only dwellings, and the
.people
passing by. They took no note of me.
I could
smell the stink of myself. More than that, I
could
smell the stink of a broken homeland. The village I
had
always known had been a good place, full of bustle
and
industry- Like all villages it claimed its share ofrepro-
•bates,
but the people had mostly been happy. I had known
,,Some
of it well, as young men will, and I recalled some of
;the
women who had been happy to show favor to their
76
Jennifer
Roberson
THE
SONG OF HOMANA
77
lord's
tall son. And I wondered, for the first time in my
life,
whether I had gotten children on any of them.
The
main track led directly to the castle. Joyenne proper,
built
upon a hill, with walls and towers and the glittering
glass
of leaded, mullioned casements. My father had taken
great
joy in establishing a home of which to be proud.
Joyenne
was where we lived, not fought; it was not a
bastion
to ward off the enemy but a place in which to rear
children.
But the gods had seen fit to give them stillborn
sons
and daughters, until Torry and then myself.
Joyenne
was awash with sunlight, gold and bronze and i-
brown.
The ocher-colored stone my father had chosen had ;
bleached
to a soft, muted color, so that the sunlight glinted
off
comers and trim. Against the snowy hill it was a great
blot of
towered, turreted stone, ringed by walls-and ram-
parts.
There was an iron portcullis at the frontal gate, but
rarely
was it ever brought down. At least in my father's ^
day.
Joyenne had been open to all then, did they need to f:
converse
with their lord.
Now,
however, the great mortar mouth was toothed
with
iron. Men walked the walls with halberds in their ^
hands.
Ringmail glinted silver in the sunlight. Bellam's ,|
banner
hung from the staffs at each tower: a rising white ^'
sun on
an indigo field. ^
Because
I was a poor man and fouled with the grime of
'''•
years,
I did not go to the central gate. I went instead to a
smaller
one, stooped and crooked and hitching my leg
along.
The guards stopped me at once, speaking in poor
Homanan.
What was it, they asked, I wanted?
To see
my mother, I said civilly, showing stained and
rotting
teeth. The scent of the gum was foul and sent
them,
cursing, two steps back. My mother, I repeated in a
thick
and phleginy voice. The one who served within the
castle.
I named
a name, knowing there was indeed a woman
who
served the hall. I could not say if still she lived—she
had been
old when I had gone to war—but a single
question
would tell the men I did not lie. She had had a
son, I
knew, a son twisted from childhood disease. He had
gone
away to another village—her everlasting shame—but
now, I
thought, he would come back. However briefly.
The
guards consulted, watching me with disgusted, ar-
rogant
eyes. They spoke in Solindish, which I knew not at
all,
but their voices gave them away. My stink and my
grease
and my twisted body had shielded me from closer
inspection.
Weaponed?
they asked gruffly.
No. I
put out my hands as if inviting them to search.
They
did not. Instead they waved me through.
And
thus Carillon came home again, to see his lady
mother.
1
hitched and shuffled and stooped, wiping my arm
beneath
my nose, spreading more grease and fouling my
beard.
I crossed the cobbled bailey slowly, almost hesi-
tantly,
as if I feared to be sent away again. The Solindishmen
who
passed me looked askance, offended by my stink. I
showed
them my yellowed, resined teeth in the sort of
grin a
dog gives, to show his submission; to show he
knows
his place.
By my
appearance, I would be limited to the kitchens
(or the
midden.) It was where the woman had served. But
my lady
mother would be elsewhere, so I passed by the
kitchens
and went up to the halls,-scraping my wet bus-
kins
across the wood of the floor.
There
were few servants. I thought Bellam had sent
most of
them away in an attempt to humble my mother.
For
him, a usurper king, it would be important to wage
war
even against a woman. Gwynneth of Homana had
been
wed to the Mujhar's brother; a widow now, and
helpless,
but royal nonetheless. It would show his power if
he
humbled this woman so. But I thought it was unlikely
he had
succeeded, no matter how many guards he placed
on the
walls, no matter how many Solindish banners flut-
tered
from the towers.
I found
the proper staircase, winding in a spiral to an
upper
floor. I climbed, sensing the flutter in my belly. I
had
come this far, so far, and yet a single mistake could
have me
taken. Bellam's retribution, no doubt, would see
me kept
alive for years. Imprisoned and humiliated and
tortured.
I
passed out of the staircase into a hall, paneled in
honey-gold
wood. My father's gallery, boasting mullioned
78
Jennifer Roberson
windows
that set the place to glittering in the sun. But the
beeswax
polish had grown stale and dark, crusted at the
edges.
The gallery bore the smell of disuse and disinterest.
My hand
slipped up between the folds of my soiled
tunic,
sliding through a rent in the cloth. I closed my
fingers
around the bone-handled hilt of my Caledonese
knife.
For a moment I stood at the polished wooden door
of my
mother's solarium, listening for voices within. 1
heard nothing.
It was possible she spent her time else-
where,
but I had learned that men or women, in trying
circumstances,
will cling to what they know. The solar had
ever
been a favorite place. And so, when I was quite
certain
she was alone, I swung open the oiled panel.
I moved
silently. 1 closed the door without a sound. I
stood
within the solar and looked at my mother, and
realized
she had grown old.
Her
head was bent over an embroidery frame. What
she
stitched there I could not say, save it took all her
attention
to do it. The sunlight burned through the
mullioned
panes of the narrow casement nearest her and
splashed
across her work, turning the colored threads
brilliant
in the dimness of the room. I noticed at once
there
was a musty smell, as if the dampness of winter had
never
been fully banished by the warmth of the brazier
fires.
This had ever been a warm, friendly room, but now
it was
cold and barren.
I saw
how she stitched at the fabric. Carefully, brows
furrowed.
In profile to me. And her hands—
Twisted,
brittle, fragile things, knobbed with buttons of
flesh
at her knuckles and more like claws than fingers. So
painstakingly
she stitched, and yet with those hands I
doubted
she could do little more than thrust needle through
fabric
with little regard for the pattern. Disease had taken
the
skill from her.
I
recalled then, quite clearly, how her hands had pained
her in
the dampness. How she had never complained, but
grew
more helpless with each month. And now, looking at
her, I
saw how the illness had destroyed the grace my
father
had so admired.
She
wore a white wimple and coif to hide her hair, but a
single
loop escaped to curve down the line of her cheek.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 79
Gray,
all gray, when before it had been tawny as my own.
Her
face was creased with the soft, fine tines of age, like
crumpled
silk.
She had
put on indigo blue, ever a favorite color with
her. 1
thought I recognized the robe as an old one she had
given
up more than seven years before. And yet she wore
it now,
threadbare and thin and hardly worthy of her
station.
Perhaps
1 made a sound. She lifted her head, searching,
and her
eyes came around to me.
I went
to her and knelt down. All the words I had
thought
to say were flown. I had nothing but silence in my
mouth
and a painful cramping in my throat.
I
stared hard at the embroidery in her lap. She had let
it
fall, forgotten, and I saw that the pattern—though ill-
made—was
familiar. A tall, bearded soldier on a great
chestnut
stallion, leading the Mujhar's army. I had loved
it as a
child, for she had called the man my father. It
seemed
odd that I would look now and see myself.
Her
hand was on my head. At first I wanted to flinch
away.
knowing how foul the grease and dye had made me,
but I
did not move. With her other hand she set her
fingers
beneath my chin and turned up my face, so she
could
look upon me fully. Her smile was brilliant to see,
and the
tears ran down her face.
I
reached out and caught her hands gently, afraid 1
might
break them. They were so fragile in my own. 1 felt
huge,
overlarge, much too rough for her delicacy.
"Lady."
My voice came out clogged and uneven. "I
have
been remiss in not coming to you sooner. Or sending
word—"
Fingers
closed my mouth. "No." She touched my beard
lingeringly,
then ran both hands through my filthy hair.
"Was
this through choice, or have you forgotten all the
care I
ever taught you?"
I
laughed at her, though it had a hollow, brittle sound.
"Exile
has fashioned your son into another sort of man, I
fear."
The
lines around her eyes—blue as my own—deepened.
And
then she took her hands away as if she had finished
with me
entirely. I realized, in that instant, she was
80
Jennifer Robaraon
sacrificing
the possessiveness she longed to show me. In
her
eyes I saw joy and pride and thankfulness, and a deep
recognition
of her son as a man. She was giving me my
freedom.
I rose
unsteadily, as if I had been too long without food.
Her
smile grew wider. "Fergus lives on in you."
I
walked to the casement, overcome for the moment,
and
stared out blindly to watch the guards upon the ram-
parts.
When I could, I turned back. "You know why I
have
come."
Her
chin lifted. I saw the delicate, draped folds of the
silkin
wimple clustered at her throat. "I was wed to your
father
for thirty-five years. I bore him six children. It was
the
gods who decreed only two of those children would
live to
adulthood, but I am quite certain they have learned,
•both
of them, what it is to be part of the House of
Homana."
The pride made her nearly young again. "Of
course
I know why you have come."
"And
your answer?"
It
surprised her. "What answer is there to duty? You
are the
House of Homana, Carillon—what is left for you to
do but
take back your throne from Bellam?"
I had
expected no different, and yet it seemed passing
strange
to hear such matter-of-factness from my mother.
Such
things from a father are never mentioned, being
known
so well, but now I lacked a father. And it was my
mother
who gave me leave to go to war.
I moved
away from the window. "Will you come with
me?
Now?"
She
smiled. "No,"
I made
an impatient gesture. "I have planned for it. You
will
put on the clothes of a kitchen servant and walk out of
here
with me. It can be done. / have done it. It is too
obvious
for them to suspect." I touched my fouled, bearded
face.
"Grease your hair, sully your skirts, affect the man-
ners of
a servant. It is your life at risk—you will do well
enough."
"No,"
she said again. "Have you forgotten your sister?"
"Tony
is in Homana-Mujhar." I thought it answer enough
as I
glanced out the casement again. "It is somewhat more
difficult
for me to get into Homana-Mujhar, but once we
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 81
are
safely gone from here, then I will turn my plans to
Torry."
"No,"
she repeated, and at last she had my complete
attention.
"Carillon, I doubt not you have thought this out
well,
but I cannot undertake it. Tourmaline is in dan-
ger.
She is hostage to Bellam against just this sort of
thing;
do you think he would sit and do nothing?" I saw
the
anguish in her eyes as she looked into my frowning
face.
"He would leam, soon enough, I had gotten free of
his
guards. And he would turn to punish your sister."
I
crossed to her at once, bending to catch her shoulders
in my
hands. "I cannot leave you here! Do you think I
could
live with myself, knowing you are here? You have
only to
look at this room, stripped bare of its finery and
left
cold, no doubt to freeze your bones. Mother—"
"No
one harms me," she said clearly. "No one beats
me. I
am fed. I am merely kept as you see me, like a
pauper-woman."
The twisted hands reached up to touch
my
leather-clad wrists. "I know what you have risked,
coming
here. And were Tourmaline safe, I would come
with
you. But I will not give her over to Bellam's wrath."
"He
did it on purpose, to guard against my coming."
That
truth was something I should have realized long ago,
and had
not. "Divide the treasure and the thieves are
defeated."
I cursed once, then tried to catch back the
words,
for she was my lady mother.
She
smiled, amused, while the tears stood in her eyes.
"I
cannot. Do you understand? I thought you were dead,
and my
daughter lost. But now you are here, safe and
whole,
and I have some hope again. Go from here and do
what
you must, but go without me to hinder you." She
put out
her hands as I sought to speak. "See you how I
am? I
would be a burden. And that I refuse, when you
have a
kingdom to win back."
I
laughed, but there was nothing of humor in it. "All my
fine
plans are disarranged. I thought to win you free of
here
and take you to my army, where you would be safe.
And
then I would set about planning to take Torry—or
take
Homana-Mujhar." I sighed and shook my head, sens-
ing the
pain of futility in my soul. "You have put me in my
place."
Jennifer
Roberson
82
"Your
place is Homana-Mujhar," She rose, still clasping
my
hands with her brittle, twisted fingers. "Go there. Win
your
throne and your sister's freedom. And then I will go
where
you bid me."
I
caught her in my arms and then, aghast, set her aside
with a
muttered oath. Filthy as I was—
She
laughed. She touched the smudge of grease on her
crumpled-silk
face and laughed, and then she cried, and
this
time when I hugged her I did not set her at once
aside.
EIGHT
I went
out of Joyenne as I had gone in: with great care.
Stooping
and hitching I limped along, head down, making
certain
I did not hasten. I went out the same gate I had
come
in, muttering something to the Solindish guards,
who
responded with curses and an attempt to trip me into
a
puddle of horse urine pooling on the cobbles. Perhaps
falling
would have been best, but -my natural reflexes took
over
and kept me from sprawling as the leg shot out to
catch
my ankle. I recalled my guise at once and made
haste
to stumble and cry out, and when I drew myself up
it was
to laughter and murmured insults in the Solindish
tongue.
And so I went away from my home and into the
village
to think.
My
mother had the right of it. Did I take her out of
Joyenne,
Bellam would know instantly I had come back,
and
where. Who else would undertake to win my mother
free?
She had spent five years in captivity within her own
home
and no one had gotten her out. Only I would be so
interested
as to brave the Solindish guards.
It is a
humbling feeling to know all your plans have
been
made for naught, when you should have known it at
the
outset. Finn, I thought, would have approached it
differently.
Or approached it not at all.
I
retrieved my horse from the hostler at a dingy tavern
and
went at once, roundabout, to the rowan tree to un-
earth
my sword and bow. It felt good to have both in my
Jennifer
Roberson
84
hands
again, and to slough off the tension my journey into
Joyenne
had caused me, I hung my sword at my hips
again,
strapped on the Cheysuli bow, and mounted the
gelding
once more.
1 rode
out across the snowfields and headed home again.
To a
different home, an army, where men planned and
drilled
and waited. To where Homana's future waited.
And I
wondered how it had come to pass men would claim
a
single realm their own, when the gods had made it for
all.
I
thought of Lachlan then, secure within his priesthood.
He had
totd me how it was for him; how Lodni's service
did not
require celibacy or cloistering or the foolishness of
similar
things. His task, he had said, was merely to speak
of
Lodhi to those who would listen, in hopes they would
learn
the proper way. 1 had acknowledged his freedom to
do so,
knowing my own lay in other gods, but he had
never
pressed me on it, and for that I was grateful indeed.
The sun
burned yellow in an azure sky, reflecting from
the
snow. The horse sweated and so did 1; the grease
stank
so badly I wanted to retch and rid myself of its
stench-
But until I had time to bathe myself I would have
to
remain as I was.
I saw
them then, silhouetted against the skyline. Four
men
atop a hill, shapes only, with sunlight glittering off
their
ringmail. All save one, who wore dark clothes in-
stead.
No mail. No sword at all.
My
heart moved within my chest in the squirm of
sudden
foreboding. Intentionally I kept my hand from my
sword,
riding onward along the narrow track beaten into
the
slushy snow. Men had the freedom to come and go as
they
pleased; Solindish or not. they had the right to ride
where
they would. And I had better not gain their atten-
tion
with a show of arms or strength.
The
hill lay to my right, and ahead. I rode on doggedly,
round-shouldered
and slumped, affecting no pride or curi-
osity.
The four waited atop the hill, well-mounted and
silent,
still little more than shapes at this distance, yet
watching.
Watching always.
I did
not quicken the gelding's pace. I made no move-
ment to
call attention, and yet I could feel their eyes as
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 85
they
watched me, waiting, as I passed the crest of their
hill.
Still it lay to my right, bulging up out of a rift through
which
ran the smallest of snow-melt streams. That stream
lay to
my left; I rode between water and men. The gelding
snorted,
unimpressed, but I thought he sensed my tension.
The
ringmail blazed in the brilliant sun. Solindishmen,
I knew.
Homanan mail was darker, duller, radiating less
light
in the sun. Showing less light in the starlit darkness
when
armies moved to set an ambush. It was something
my
father had taught me; perhaps Bellam was too sure of
his men
and saw no need for such secrecy.
I rode
on. And so did they.
Three
of them. The men in mail. They came directly
down
the hill toward me, moving to cut me off, and I saw
them
draw their swords. This was no parley, no innocent
meeting
of strangers. It was blood they wanted, and I had
none to
spare.
I
doubted I could outrun them. The snow was thick and
slushy,
treacherous footing to any horse, but to mine in
particular:
short-legged and slighter of frame. Still, he was
willing,
and when I set him to a run he plunged through
the
heavy going.
Snow
whipped into the air in a fine, damp spray, churned
up
beneath driving hooves. I bent low and forward, shift-
ing
weight over the moving shoulders. I heard the raspy
breathing
of my horse and the shouts of men behind me.
The
gelding stumbled, recovered, then went down to
his
knees. Riding forward as I was, the fall pitched me
neatly
off over his head. It was not entirely unexpected; I
came up
at once, spinning to face the oncoming men, and
stripped
the bow from my back.
The
arrow was nocked. Loosed. It took the first soldier
full in
the throat, knocking him off his horse. The next
shaft
blurred home in the second man's chest, but the
third
one was on me and there was no more time for a
bow.
The
sword stashed down to rip the bow from my hands,
I
stumbled, slipping to my knees in the slushy snow, and
wrenched
free the sword in my scabbard. Both hands
clamped
down on the leather-wrapped hilt. I pushed my-
self up
to my feet.
86
Jennifer Rotwrson
The
Solindishman swung back, commanding His horse
with
his knees. I saw the sunlight flashing off his blade as
the man
rode toward me. I saw also the badge he wore:
Bellam's
white sun on an indigo field.
The
soldier rode me down. But he paused to deliver
what he
thought was the death-blow; I ducked it at once
and
came up with my blade, plunging it into the horse's
belly.
The animal screamed and staggered at once, floun-
dering
to his knees. The soldier jumped off instantly and
met me
on common ground.
His
broadsword was lifted high to come down into my
left
shoulder. I caught his blade on my own and swung it
up
diagonally from underneath, wrist-cords tightening be-
neath
the leather bracers. He pulled away at once, drop-
ping to
come under my guard; I met his blow with a
downward
stroke across my body. He changed then, shift-
ing his
stance to come at me another way, but 1 broke his
momentum
and slid under his guard with ease, plunging
my sword
to the hilt through his ribs. Steel blade on steel
mail
shrieked in disharmony a moment, and then I freed
my
sword as the body slumped to the snow.
I
turned at once, searching for the man who wore no
ringmail
or sword, but saw no one. The crest of the hill
was
empty. I listened, standing perfectly still, but all I
heard
was the trickling of the tiny streamlet as it ran down
through
its channel.
The
Solindish warhorse was dead. The horses belonging
to the
two soldiers dead of arrows had gone off, too far for
me to
chase. I was left with my shaggy Steppes horse,
head
hanging as he sought to recover from his flight.
I
sheathed my sword, reclaimed my bow and mushed
over to
him through the snow, cursing the wet of my
buskins
and the chill of ice against my flesh. The ragged
clothing
I wore was soaked through from the flight and the
fight.
And I still stank.
I put
out my hand to catch dangling reins and felt
something
crawl against the flesh of my waist. I slapped at
it at
once, cursing lice and fleas; slapped again when the
tickling
repeated itself. I set my hand against the hilt of
my
Caledonese knife and felt it move.
I
unsheathed it at once, jerking it into the sunlight. For
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 87
a
moment I stared at it, seeing blade and bone, and then I
saw it
move.
Every
muscle tensed. The horse snorted uneasily be-
hind
me. I stood there and stared, fascinated as the bone
reshaped
itself.
It was
growing. In my hand. The smooth, curving hilt
lengthened,
pulling itself free of the blade's tang. The
runes
and scripture melted away into the substance of the
bone,
as if the pieces carved away to make the shapes
were
replacing themselves.
And
then 1 knew I was watched.
I
looked up at once, staring at the low ridge of the hill
from
which the Solindishmen had come. There, dark against
the
blue of the sky, was the fourth man. The one without
ringmail
or sword. Too far for me to discern his features,
save I
knew he watched and waited.
Ihlini,
I knew instantly.
I threw
the knife away in a convulsive, sickened move-
ment. I
reached at once for my bow, intending to loose an
arrow.
But 1 stopped almost at once, because an arrow
against
sorcery claims no strength.
The
bone. The thighbone of a monstrous beast, the king
of
Caledon had said. And the Ihlini had conjured the
source
of the bone, placing it before me in the snowfields
of
Homana.
The
bones knit themselves together. From one came
another,
then another, until they ran together and built
the
skeleton. The spine, ridged and long. Massive shoul-
der
joints. And the skull, pearly white, with gaping orbits
for
eyes.
Then,
more quickly, the viscera. The brain. The vessels
running
with blood. The muscles, wrapping themselves
into
place, until the flesh overlay it all- And the hide on
top of
that.
I gaped
at the beast. I knew what it was, of course; my
House
had used it forever as a crest, to recall the strength
and
courage of the mythical beast, long gone from the
world.
The lion
of Homana.
It
leaped. It gathered itself and leaped directly at the
horse,
and took him down with the swipe of one huge
98
Jennifer Rob«rson
paw. I
heard the dull snap of a broken neck, then saw the
beast
turn toward me.
1
dropped my bow. I ran. So did the lion run. It was a
huge
flash of tawny golden-yellow; black-maned past his
shoulders,
tail wiry as if it lived. I ran, but I could not
outrun
it. And so I turned, unsheathing my sword, and
tried
to spit the lion on it.
It
leaped. Up into the air it leaped, hind legs coiling to
push it
off the ground, front paws reaching out. My ears
shut
out the fearful roar so that I heard only the pounding
of my
blood as it ran into my head.
One paw
reached out and caught me across the head.
But I
ducked most of the weight, in ducking, I saved my
life.
The blow, had it landed cleanly, would have broken
my neck
at once. As it was part of the paw still caught me,
knocking
me down, so that I feared my jaw was shattered.
Blood
ran freely from my nose.
Even as
I went down I kept my sword thrust up. I saw
the
blade bite into the massive chest, tearing through the
hide.
It caught on bone, then grated as the lion's leap
carried
it past.
I was
flat on my back in the snow. I was up almost at
once,
too frightened to take refuge in the pain and shock.
My head
rang and blood was in my mouth. My sword was
no use
against the lion unless I hit a vital spot. To try for
that
would put me too close, well within its range. 1 did
not
relish feeding it on my flesh.
The
lion's snarl was a coughing, hacking sound. Its
mane
stood out from the hide, black and tangled. But the
muscles
rippled cleanly against the tawny-gold, the wound
had
done nothing to gainsay it. Blood flowed, but still it
came
on.
I knew,
instinctively, it would not die. I could not slay
it by
conventional means. The beast had been summoned
by a
sorcerer.
My foot
came down on something hard as I backed away
from
the lion. I realized I had run in a circle, so that I was
back
where I had begun. The horse lay where the lion had
put it.
And the bow lay under my feet.
I
dropped the sword at once and caught up the bow I
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 89
snatched
an arrow from my quiver. As the beast leaped
yet
again I nocked the arrow and spun—
—let
fly. But not at the lion. At the man.
The
shaft went home in the sorcerer's chest. I saw him
stagger,
clutching the arrow, then he slumped down to his
knees.
He was abruptly haloed in a sphere of purple fire
that
sprung up around his body. And then the arrow burst
into
brilliant crimson flames and he was dead.
1 swung
back. The beast was nothing but bone. A
single,
hilt-shaped bone, lying in the snow.
I sank
down to my knees, slumping forward, until only
my arms
braced stiffly against the snow held me up. My
breath
came from deep in my chest in wheezing gasps,
setting
my lungs afire. Blood still ran from my nose,
staining
the snow, and my head ached from the blow. I
spat
out a tooth and hung there, spent, to let my body
recover.
When at
last I could stand again I weaved like a man too
far
gone in wine, I shook in every bone. I stumbled to the
snow-melt
stream and knelt there, scooping cold water
and ice
to cleanse my face and mouth of blood and filth
and my
mind of the blanking numbness.
I
pushed to my feet again. Slowly, moving like an old,
old
man, I gathered up bow and sword. The knife hilt I
left
lying in the snow. That I would never carry again.
The
Ihlini was quite dead. His body was sunken within
his
clothing, as if the arrow had somehow loosed more
than
life, but a force as well; released, its shell had shrunk.
It was
a body still, but not much of a man.
The
Ihlini's horse stood part way down the backside of
the
ridge. It was a dark brown gelding, not fine but good.
An
Ihlini's horse, and ensorcelled?
I
caught the reins from the ground and brought the
horse
closer. Taller than the dun. Shedding his winter
hair.
He had kind eyes, clipped mane and short tail. One
spot of
white was on his face. I patted his jaw and mounted.
I
nearly fell off again. My head spun and throbbed with
renewed
ferocity; the lion had rattled my senses. I hud-
dled in
the saddle a long moment, eyes shut. waiting for
the
pain and dizziness to diminish.
Carefully
I touched my face and felt the swollen flesh.
90
Jwinlfr Robwon
No
doubt 1 would purple by nifihtfall. But my nose, for all
it
ached, was whole. And then, done marking my numer-
ous
aches, I turned the horse and rode eastward.
Ton-in's
dog ran out to meet me. In the weeks since we
had
come he had grown, now more dog than pup, but his
ebullience
was undiniinished. He loped along next to my
horse
and warned Ton-in of my presence. It was not
necessary;
Ton-in was at the well fishing up the bucket.
In five
years, Ton-in had not changed much. His gray
hair
was still thinning, still cropped against his head. He
still
bore seams in his flesh and calluses on his hands.
Crofting
had changed his body from the bulk of an arms-
master's
to the characteristic slump of a man who knew
sheep
and land, but I could still see his quiet competence.
He had
been born to blades, not the land, and yet for
Alix's
sake he had given all of that up. Because Shaine had
wanted
to be rid of her, and Ton-in could not bear to see
the
infant left to die.
I rode
up slowly. The horse made his way to the well
and put
his head into the bucket Ton-in held. Torrin,
looking
up at me from brown eyes couched in fleshy folds,
shook
his head. "Was that Solindish-done?"
He
meant my face. I touched it and said no. "Ihlini. He
summoned
a beast. A lion."
The
color changed in his leathered cheeks. "Bellam
knows—"
I shook
my head before he could finish. "He may not.
The men
who sought to slay me are dead. I have no doubt
he
knows I am back—most people do—but there is no one
left to
tell him where I am. I think we will be safe a little
longer."
He
looked troubled, but I had no more time to wonder
at it.
I bent forward and swung off the horse slowly,
wincing
from the bruises. I left the horse with Torrin and
slowly
made my way to the croft. Wood smoke veiled the
air.
"My
lord, I think—"
I
turned back before the door. interrupting in my weari-
ness.
"You have a half-cask, do you not? Clothes I left with
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 91
you.
Soap and water? Hot. I wish to boil myself free of
this
stench."
He
nodded, brow furrowed. "Do you wish me to—"
"No."
I lifted a hand in a weary wave. "I will see to it
myself."
It was something I had learned in exile. I needed
no
servants to fetch and carry.
"My
lord—" he tried again, but I went into the croft.
And
stopped. It was Alix.
She
stood by the table before the fire, with her arms
plunged
into a bubble of bread dough set out on a board.
Flour
reached to her elbows. I saw at once her dark brown
hair
had grown long enough to braid, pinned against her
head
with silver clasps tha^: glittered in the sunlight slant-
ing in
the open door.
I saw
again the girl I had befriended, when a prince had
so few
real friends. I saw again the girl who had been the
reason
for my capture by Finn and his raiding party. I saw
again
the girl whose Cheysuli tahlmorra was so firmly
linked
with my own Homanan fate.
But
mostly I saw the girl who had become a woman,
and I
hated the time I had lost.
There
was a question in her eyes, and bafflement. She
knew me
not, in my foul and filfhy state, bearded and
greased
and bruised. I thought of what kind of man I had
been
five years before, and what I was now. and I laughed.
And
then, as her mouth shaped my name, I crossed the
tiny
room and caught her in my arms.
She
hugged me as tightly as I hugged her, saying my
name
again and again. She smelled of bread dough and
wood
smoke, and laughed as if she could not stop.
"So
filthy—" she said. "and so humble—"
I had
never been that. But I laughed with her, for what
she saw
was true if, perhaps, to a lesser extent than she
thought.
Or for different reasons. I was humbled, it was
true,
by the very thing that elevated so many men: I
wanted
her. And so. unable to help myself, I cupped her
head in
my hands and kissed her.
Only
once had I kissed her before, and under such
circumstances
as she could claim it a token of my thanks. I
had
meant that, then, too, but more as well. But by then,
when
she rescued me from the Atvians, she had already
92
Jannlfer Roberson
pledged
herself to Duncan. She had carried his child in
her
belly.
Now,
she did not rescue me. There was nothing of
gratefulness
about what I was feeling, she could not con-
strue
it as such. In five years I had had time to think of
AJix,
and regret what had not happened between us, and I
could
not hide my feelings.
And yet
there was Duncan, still, between us.
I let
her go. 1 still longed to touch her, but I let her go.
She
stood quietly before me, color high in her face, but
there
was a calmness in her eyes. She knew me better
than I
did.
"That
much you may have, having taken it already," she
said quietly,
"but no more."
"Are
you afraid what might grow up from this beginning?"
She
shook her head once. "Nothing can grow up from
this
beginning. There is nothing—here." She touched her
left
breast, indicating her heart. Her gaze was perfectly
steady.
Almost
I laughed. It was so distinct a change. She had
gained
understanding and comprehension, aware of what
she
was. Gone was the virgin, confused by body and
emotions.
Now she was woman, wife and mother, and she
knew. I
was not enough.
"I
have thought of you for years," I said. "All those
nights
in exile."
"I
know." Her tone did not waver for an instant. "Had
you
been Duncan, I would have felt the same. But you
were—and
are—not. You are yourself. You are special to
me, it
is true, but it is far too late for more. Once, perhaps
. . .
but all of that time has passed."
I took
a deep breath and tried to regain my composure.
"I
did not—did not mean to do this. I meant only to greet
you
again. But it seems I cannot keep my hands from you
now any
more than I ever could." I smiled wryly. "An
admission
few men would make to a woman who will not
have
them."
Alix
smiled. "Finn said much the same. His greeting
was—similar."
"And
Duncan?"
"Duncan
was—elsewhere. He is not an insensitive man."
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 93
"Nor
ever was." I sighed and scratched my jaw beneath
the
beard. "Enough of this. I came in to wash, as you
see."
"Good."
Some of the tension vanished and the light
came
into her eyes. The warm, amber eyes I recalled so
well—so
perfect a melding of Cheysuli and Homanan,
more
beautiful to me than either. "I doubt I could stand
your
stink one more moment." She turned away at once to
the
fire in the low stone fireplace, kneeling to add wood,
then
glanced over her shoulder at me. "Perhaps you would
fill
the cauldron with water?" And then color blazed up
high in
her face, as if she recalled I was royal and above
such
lowly things.
I
grinned. "I will fetch it and set out the cask. Do you
forget?—I
have been with Finn all these years. I am not
quite
the same as you knew me." I left her then, having
caught
up the heavy cauldron, and went out to fill it with
water.
Ton-in
sat on the edge of the stone-ringed well, smoking
his
clay pipe. His grizzled eyebrows rose. "I thought to
warn
you she was here," he said around the stem.
I
grunted as I began to crank up-the bucket. "I had not
thought
it was so obvious to everyone."
"To
me." Ton-in got up to steady the bucket as it came
up from
the water. He caught it and poured its contents
into
the cauldron. "She was so young when first you met
her.
Then so new to her heritage, knowing little of royal
things.
And finally, of course, there was Duncan."
The
name dropped into my soul like a stone. "Aye . . .
he had
more sense than I. He saw what he wanted and
took
it."
"He
won it," Ton-in said quietly. "My lord—do you
think
to win her back from him, think again. I was her
father
for seventeen years. Even now, I feel she is mine. I
will
not have her hurt, or her happiness harmed. She
loves
him deeply." He dropped the bucket down when it
was
emptied and met my eyes without the flicker of an
eyelid.
As he had, no doubt, met my uncle's unwavering
stare.
"You are the Mujhar, and have the right to do what
you
will, even with the Cheysuli. But I think you have
more
sense than that."
94
Jennifer Roberson
For
most of my life I had been given what I wanted,
including
women. Alix I had lost before 1 knew how much
I
wanted her. And now, knowing it keenly, I knew how
much it
hurt to lose.
Especially
to Duncan.
Alix
came to the door of the white-washed, thatch-
roofed
croft with its gray stone chimney. "The fire is
ready."
Around her neck shone the golden torque made in
the
shape of a flying hawk, wings outspread and beak
agape,
with a chunk of amber caught in the clutching
talons.
A fir-torque and Cheysuli bride-gift. Made for her
by
Duncan.
I
hoisted the cauldron and lugged it inside, hanging it
from
the iron hook set into the stone of the blackened
fireplace.
I sat on a stool and waited, aware of her every
movement,
and stared at the fire as she kneaded the
dough
again.
"When
did you come?" I asked at last.
"Eight
days ago. Finn brought us here." A warm, bright
smile
shone on her face.
"He
is back?" I felt better almost at once.
"He
brought us down from the North." The silver pins
in her
coiled braids glittered in the sunlight as she worked.
The
folds of her moss-green gown moved as she moved,
shifting
with the motion of her body. The overtunic, with
sheepskin
fleece turned inward, was dyed a pale, soft
yellow,
stitched in bright green yarn. It hung to her
knees,
belted at her waist with brown leather and a golden
buckle.
Cheysuli finery, not Homanan; she was all Cheysuli
now.
I
scratched at my itching face. "He is well?"
"Finn?
Oh, aye—when is he not? He is Finn." She
smiled
again, beating the dough with her hands. "Though
I think
he has another thing to occupy himself with, now."
"A
woman," I predicted. "Has he found someone among
the
clan?"
She
laughed. "No, not a woman. My son." Her smile
widened
into a grin. "There are times Donal is more like
his
su'fali than his jehan. And now they have become
close
friends as well, I have only Finn to blame for my
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 95
son's
little indescretions. One was bad enough; now there
are
two."
"Two
Finns?" I thought about it, laughing, and saw Alix
shake
her head.
"Shall
I bid them come?" she asked, still kneading. "1
have
only to speak to Cai and Storr."
I
thought again of the power she held, the boundless
magic
that ran in her veins. Old Blood, it was, a gift reborn
of the
gods. Alix. and only Alix, could converse with any
lir. Or
take any shape at will.
"No,"
I said. "I will go up myself, when I have shed my
weight
of dirt." I checked the water and found it nearly
hot.
Then I asked for the'half-cask; Alix told me where it
was and
I dragged it out of the tiny antechamber, if a croft
could
be said to have a proper one. The half-cask was
bound
with hammered copper. It still smelled faintly of
cider,
betraying its original purpose. In Homana-Mujhar I
had
bathed in oak-and-silver cask-tubs polished smooth, so
no
splinters threatened my flesh. I doubted this one was
as
good, but it would serve. In exile I had learned to be
grateful
for anything.
I
rolled the cask into Ton-in's tiny bedchamber, contain-
ing a
pallet, chest and chair. There I tipped the cask on its
end,
then began filling it from the cauldron. When at last
it
stood ready I went seeking cloth and soap.
Alix
gave me both. 'Ton-in has changed nothing since I
left,"
she said with a nostalgic smile, and I wondered if
she
recalled the day Finn had stolen us both.
How
could she not? I did. Too well. And the changes
that
had occurred since then.
I
looked at her a long moment, my hands full of thread-
bare
cloth and hard brown soap. I wished there was more
I could
say. And then I said it anyway. "I will insult
neither
you nor your husband by pursuing you where I am
not
wanted."
Color
flared in her face again. I marked how the years
had
melted away the flesh of youth, leaving her with the
characteristic
angular, high-planed Cheysuli face. Her face
was
more like Finn's than ever before; the children show-
ing the
father's blood.
"There
was no need to say it," she told me softly.
96
Jennifer Roberson
"There
was. Otherwise I could not account for my ac-
tions."
Briefly I touched her face with the backs of two
fingers.
"Alix—once we might have shared so much. Let
us keep
of it what we can." I took my hand away and went
into
the gloomy bedchamber where the water steamed in
the
air. I pulled the curtain closed and stripped out of rny
filthy
garb.
I could
not put her from my mind. I thought of her in
the
other room, kneading away, knowing she had Duncan
close
at hand. I thought of her with him, at night. I
thought
other as I had known her: a young, sweet-natured
girl
with coltish grace and an integrity few men possess.
And I
thought how odd a thing it is that two people can
inhabit
a single room, each knowing how the other one
feels,
and knowing there is no good in it.
No good
at all. Only pain.
NINE
The
half-cask, unfortunately, did not accommodate a man
of my
size. It was an awkward bath. I sat with my knees
doubled
up nearly beneath my chin and my spine crushed
against
the wood. But it was wet and hot and 1 scrubbed
with
every bit of strength I had, ridding myself of all the
dirt
and grease. Even that in my hair and beard.
When at
last I could breathe again, stripped of the
stench
of my disguise, I relaxed. I nung my legs outside of
the
cask and sat back, tipping my head against the wooden
rim.
The flesh of my face still ached from the lion's blow;
the
rest of my body hurt as much. 1 felt older than my
years.
The lion had drained my strength; that, and the
knowledge
of Ihlini sorcery.
The
water cooled, but not so fast 1 could not take my
time
getting out. And so I did. I let go of all my breath, let
my
muscles turn to rags, and promptly went to sleep.
"Carillon"'
I
jerked awake. My spine scraped against the rough
wood
and I cursed, staring in some confusion at Finn, who
stood
just inside the doorway with the curtain pulled
closed
behind him. Thoughtful of my modesty, for once;
perhaps
it was Alix who elicited such care.
I sat
upright and pulled my legs back in, scowling at
him.
Finn merely smiled, amused to find me in such a
state,
and leaned back against the wall with bare arms
folded
across his chest. He had put off his winter leathers
1 97
I
98
Jennifer Roberson
in
deference to the thaw; I saw again the heavy gold that
banded
his arms above the elbows. Wide, beautiful things,
embossed
with runes and wolf-shape. He wore snug leath-
ers
again; leggings and a sleeveless jerkin. At his belt hung
the
Steppes knife, and I thought again of the sorcery I had
Sfpn-
seen.
"When
did you get back?" he asked quite calmly.
I stood
up, dripping, and reached for the blanket he
tossed
me from Ton-in's pallet. "Not so long ago that I
have
had time to fill my belly."
"But
time for a bath." His tone was perfectly flat. but I
had
little trouble discerning his intent. I had not had that
trouble
for some years now.
"Had
you seen me—or swelled me—you would have
pushed
me in yourself." I climbed out of the cask and
pulled
on the dark brown breeches, then bent to jerk on
the
knee boots. My shirt was green. I put a brown jerkin
over it
and belted it with leather and bronze. "I thought I
would
go up to the army. Will you come?"
"Ah,
the army." Finn smiled his ironic smile. "Do you
wish to
call it that."
I
scowled at him, combing my fingers through my wet
hair.
It tangled on my shoulders and dampened the fabric
of
shirt and jerkin. "Rowan has done what he can to
assemble
men willing to fight. I will use what I can. Do
you
expect me to gather the thousands Bellam has?"
"It
makes no difference." Finn followed me through to
the
other room, where Alix knelt to hang the pot of bread
dough
over the fire. "You will have the Cheysuli, and that
is
enough, I think." He put out a hand to Storr, seated by
the
table.
I
scoffed. "I have you. And no doubt Duncan, and
perhaps
those he has managed to persuade to join me in
the
name of the prophecy." I scooped up a clay jug of
Ton-in's
sour wine and poured myself a cup, pouring a
second
for Finn- as he nodded willingness to drink.
"You
have more than a few." He accepted the cup
without
thanks and swallowed half the wine at once. "How
many
would you ask for, could you have a larger number?"
I
returned the jug to its place on the sideboard near the
fireplace
and perched upon the table as I drank. "The
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 99
Cheysuli
are the finest fighting men in all of Homana." He
did not
smile at my compliment, it was well known. "And
with
each warrior I would gain a lir, so double the number
at
once." I shrugged. "A single warrior is worth at least
five of
another, so with a lir it is ten to one," I shook my
head.
"It is folly to wish for what I cannot have. Nonethe-
less, I
would be more than pleased with one hundred."
"What
of three hundred?" Finn smiled. "Perhaps even
more.
I
stared at him, forgoing my wine altogether. "Have you
turned
sorcerer, to conjure up false men?"
"No."
Finn tossed his empty cup to Alix, who caught it
and put
it with the jug. "I have conjured up men I
thought
long dead. Shaine, you see, did not slay as many
as we
feared."
I set
my cup down very precisely in the center of the
table.
"Are you saying—?"
"Aye."
He grinned. "While searching for my clan, I
found
others. The Northern Wastes boast many places
where a
clan may hide, and I found several of them. It
took
time, but we have gathered together every warrior
we
could find." He shrugged. "All the clans are here; we
are
building a Keep beyond the hill."
He said
it so simply: "All the clans are here; we are
building,
a Keep beyond the hill."
I
stared at him. A Keep. With three hundred warriors
and
their lir.
i
whooped. And then I was on my feet, clasping him in
my arms
as if I could not let him go. No doubt too
demonstrative
for Finn's sensibilities, but he knew the
reason.
And he smiled, stepping away when I was done.
"My
gift to you," he said lightly. "Now, come with me
and I
will show you."
We went
out at once, leaving Alix to tend her bread,
and
Finn gave me back my Ihlini horse. His eyes were on
it, for
he had known me to ride the dun, but he waited
until
we were free of the croft and riding toward the hill
before
he asked me about it, and then obliquely.
"Ton-in
said you had gone to Joyenne."
"Aye.
To get my lady mother out."
"You
did not succeed?"
100
Jennifer Roberson
"No,
but only because she refused to come." The sun-
light
was bright in our eyes. I put up a hand to block the
stunning
brilliance. "Bellam holds Tourmaline, my sister.
He has
for some time. I do not doubt he keeps her safe,
being
who she is, but I want her free of him." 1 swore
suddenly
as the anger boiled over. "By the gods, the man
threatens
to wed heri"
We rode
abreast with Storr leading the way. Finn,
frowning,
nodded, saying little. "It is the way of kings.
Especially
usurper kings.'
"He
will not usurp my sister\"
"Then
do you mean to dance into Homana-Mujhar as
easily
as you did into Joyenne?"
And so
I knew what he thought of my actions. 1 scowled
at him
blackly. "I got in and got out with little trouble. I
was
careful. No one knew me."
"And
did you yourself put those bruises on your face?"
I had
nearly forgotten. My hand went to my jaw and
touched
the sore flesh. "The Ihlini did this. Or rather: his
conjured
beast."
"Ah."
Finn nodded in apparent satisfaction. "No trouble
at
Joyenne, you say, but an Ihlini set a beast on you." He
sighed,
shaking his head. "Why should I concern myself
with
your welfare? All you manage to do is tangle with one
ofTynstar's
minions."
His
irony, as ever, galled me. "Enough. It was not my
fault
the men found me. They could have found me here."
"Men?
First it was an Ihlini and his beast. Now there
are
more." He gestured to direct me up the hill.
I
glared at him. "Why not Just compel me to tell you
the
truth, as you did Lachlan?^"
"Because
I had believed you knew enough to tell me
willingly."
I
sighed and leaned forward as my horse climbed the
hill
toward the treeline. "You should not worry. I slew
them
all, even the Ihlini."
"I
have no reason to worry," he agreed. "What have I
done,
save swear a blood-oath to serve you always?" For
the
first time a hint of anger crept into his voice. "Do you
think I
waste my time? Do you wish to do this alone?
Think
how many times over you would have been slain
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 101
without
me. And now, when I leave you to seek my
clan—at
your behest—you place yourself in such jeopardy
even a
child knows better.'
"Finn—enough."
"Not
enough." He glared at me openly now. "There is
some
little of my life invested in you. AU of it, now. What
we do
is not entirely for you. Carillon, and for Homana,
but for
the Cheysuli as well." His mouth tightened as he
reined
his horse back even with mine. "Were you to die
now, in
some foolish endeavor of your own devising, the
rebellion
would fail. Bellam would rule forevermore. He
would
likely wed your sister, get new sons on her. and put
them on
the throne behind himself. Is that what you
wish?"
I
reached out and caught his reins, jerking his horse to a
halt.
All the anger and frustration came pouring out as
pride.
"1 am your prince!"
"And
I your liege man!" He ignored the jerk of the reins
against
his hands. "Do you think it is so easy for me to
watch
you as a father with a son? 1 am not your jehan,
Carillon,
merely your liege man. And a cousin, of a sort,
because
my jehan saw fit to lie with a haughty Homanan
princess
when he had a cheysula-eA home!"
He had
never said so much before. Had coming home
done
it? I knew the differences in myself. Perhaps there
were
some in Finn as well.
I let
go his reins and minded my own, though I did not
start
up the hill quite yet. "Does the service grow so
tedious,
seek another," I suggested bitterly.
His
laugh was a short bark of sound. "How? The gods
have
tied me to you. Better yet: they have set iron around
your
neck as well as mine, and locked them together, like
oxen in
a yoke."
I sat
in the blinding gold of the late afternoon sun and
said
nothing for a long moment. And then when I did, I
asked a
question I had not thought to ask before: "What
do you
want from this life?"
He was
surprised. I could see it in his eyes. He under-
stood
perfectly well what I asked, and probably why, but
he went
on to step around the question. "I want you on
the
throne of Homana."
102
Jennifer Roberson
"Given
that," I agreed, "what more?"
"The
Cheysuli free to live as they would again."
"Given
that." Had I to do it, I would ask him until the
moon
came up.
Finn
squinted into the sun, as if the light would shield
his
feelings from me, or lessen the pain of the question.
He
appeared to have no intention of answering me, but
this
once I would make him.
"Finn."
I said patiently, with all the solemnity I could
muster,
"were the gods to give you anything, anything at
all,
what would you ask for?"
At last
he looked directly at me. The sunlight, striking
through
the trees like illuminated spears, was my unwit-
ting
servant. All of Finn's soul was bared to me in the
light.
This once, just once, but enough for me to see it.
"You
have not met Donal, have you?"
I
thought it a question designed to lead me away from
the
quarry, like a dog led away by a clever fox. "Alix's son?
No. I
have only just got here, Finn—"
But he
was serious. "Could I have it, I would ask for a
son."
He said it abruptly, as if the admission endangered
the
hope, and then he rode away from me as if he had
shared
too much.
There
were no tracks to mark an army, no pall of smoke
hanging
above the treeline to mark the army's presence.
There
was nothing Bellam could use to seek me out. Finn
took me
into the forest away from the valley and I knew
the
army was safe. Rowan had done my bidding by taking
them
deeper into cover; even I could not say there was an
army
near, and it was mine.
The
forest was overgrown with vines and creepers and
brambles
and bushes. Ivy fell down from the trees to trip
the
horses and foul the toes of my boots. Mistletoe clus-
tered
in the wooden crotches and a profusion of flowers
hailed
our passing. Homana. At last. Home again, for
good,
after too long a time spent in exile.
Sunlight
spilled through the leaves and speckled the
forest
floor into goldens, greens and browns. Finn, riding
before
me, broke a pheasant from cover and I heard the
whirring
of its wings as it flew, whipping leaves and stir-
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 103
ring
sunmotes in its passage to the sky. I thought, sud-
denly,
of the last time I had supped on pheasant: in
Homana-Mujhar,
feasting a guest, when my uncle had
been
pleased with a new alliance made. Too long ago. Too
long
being mercenary instead of prince.
I heard
the harp and nearly stopped. There was nothing
else
save the threshing of the horses tearing through the
brush
and vines and creepers. But the harpsong overrode
it all,
and 1 recognized the hand upon the strings. "Lachlan,"
1 said
aloud.
Finn,
reining in to ride abreast of me, nodded. "He has
come
each day, sharing his music with us. Once I might
have
dismissed it as idle whimsy, but no more. He has
magic
in that harp. Carillon—more even than we have
seen.
Already he has begun to give the Cheysuli what we
have
lacked these past years: peace of spirit," He smiled,
albeit
wryly. "Too long have we forgotten the music of our
ancestors,
thinking instead of war. The Ellasian has re-
minded
us, he has given us some of it back again. I think
there
will be music made in the Keep again."
We
passed through the final veil of leaves and vines and
into
the Keep. And yet it was no proper Keep, lacking the
tall
stone wall that circled the-pavilions ordinarily. This
was not
a true Keep at all, not as I had known it, but a
wide
scattering of tents throughout the forest. There was
no
uniformity, no organization.
Finn
ducked a low branch, caught it and held it back as
I rode
by. He saw the expression on my face. "Not yet. It
will
come later, when Homana is made safe again for such
things
as permanent Keeps." He released the branch and
fell in
next to me. "This is easily defensible. Easily torn
down,
do we need to move on again."
The
tents huddled against the ground, like mushrooms
beneath
a tree. They were the colors of the earth: dark
green,
pale moss, slate-gray, rust-red, brown and black
and
palest cream. Small and plain, without the fir-symbols
I
remembered: tents instead of pavilions. But a Cheysuli
Keep,
for all its odd appearance.
I
smiled, though it pained my injured face. I could not
count
them all. I could not see them all, so perfectly were
they
hidden, even though I knew how to look. And Bellam?
104
Jannifr Rotrrson
No
doubt his men, if they came so far, would miss the
Keep
entirely.
Defensible?
Aye—when an enemy does not see until
too
late. Tom down fast? Oh, aye—requiring but a mo-
ment to
collapse the earth-toned fabric. A perfectly porta-
ble
Keep,
And
full ofCheysuli.
I
laughed aloud and halted my horse. Around me spread
the
Keep, huddled and subtle and still. Around me spread
my
strength, equally subtle and silent and still. With the
Cheysuli
and an army besides, Bellam could never stop
me.
"Tahbrwrra
lujhalla met wiccan, cheysu," I said softly.
The
fate of a man rests always within the hands of the
gods.
Finn,
so silent beside me, merely smiled. "You are
welcome
to Homana, my lord. And to the homeplace of
my
people."
I shook
my head, suddenly overcome. "I am not worthy
of it
all . . ."In that moment, I was certain of it. I was not
up to
the task,
"Are
you not," my liege man said simply, "no man is."
When I
could, I rode farther into the Keep And thanked
the
gods for the Cheysuli.
TEN
The
harpsong filled the forest. The melody was so deli-
cate,
so fragile, and yet so strong. It drew me as if it were
a woman
calling me to her bed; Lachlan's Lady, and I a
man who
knew her charm. I forgot the warriors Finn had
promised
and followed a song instead, feeling its magic
reach
out to touch my soul.
I found
him at last perched upon the ruin of a felled
beech,
huge and satin-trunked. The tree had made its
grave
long since, but it provided a perfect bench—or
throne—for
the harper. The sunlight pierced the sur-
rounding
veil of branches and limbs like enemy spears
transfixed
upon a single foe: the harp. His Lady, so dark
and old
and wise, with her single green eye and golden
strings.
Such an eloquent voice, calling out; such a geas he
laid
upon me. I reined in my horse before the beech and
waited
until he was done.
Lachlan
smiled. The slender, supple fingers grew quiet
upon
the glowing strings, so that music and magic died,
and he
was merely a man, a harper, blessed with Lodhi's
pleasure.
"I
knew you would come," he said in his liquid, silken
voice.
"Sorcerer,"
I returned.
He
laughed. "Some men call me so. Let them. You
should
know me better now." For a moment there was a
105
106
glint
of some unknown emotion in his eyes. "Friend," he
said.
"No more."
I
realized we were alone. Finn I had left behind. And
that,
by itself, was enough to make me fear the Ellasian
harper.
He saw
it at once. Still he sat unmoving upon the beech
trunk,
his hands upon his Lady. "You came because I
wished
you to, and because you wished it," he said qui-
etly.
"Finn I did not require; not yet. But he will come,
and
Duncan." The sunlight was full upon his face. I saw
no
guile there, no subterfuge. Only honesty, and some
little
dedication. "I am a harper," he said clearly. "Har-
pers
require men of legend in order to do what they do.
You, my
lord, are legend enough for most. Certainly for
me."
He smiled. "Have I not proven my loyalty?"
"Men
will slay whom they are told to, do they have
reason
enough for it." I remained upon my horse, for I did
not
fully trust him with that harp held in his hands. "You
slew
the man I bid you to, but a spy would do so easily
enough,
merely to maintain his innocence."
He took
his hands from the harp and spread them. "I
am no
spy. Save, perhaps, your own."
"Mine."
I said nothing more; for the moment he had
made me
speechless. And then I looked deeper into his
eyes.
"Would you, an Ellasian, serve me. a Homanan, in
anything
I bid you?"
"Providing
it did not go against my conscience," he said
at
once. "I am a priest of the All-Father; I will not trans-
gress
any of His teachings."
I made
a dismissing gesture. "I would ask no man to go
against
his lights. Not in something such as his gods. No. I
mean,
Lachlan, to see just how loyal you are."
'Then
bid me," he returned. "I am here because I wish
to be,
not because some Ihlini sorcerer or Solindish king
has
sent me. And if they had, would I not take them the
news
they wish to hear? Would I still be here, when I
could
tell them the location of the Cheysuli and your
army?"
"A
wise spy, spies," I told him natly. "The hare that
breaks
too soon is caught quickly by the fox."
He
laughed. Lachlan's laugh is warm, generous, a true
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 1 107
casement
of his soul. "But it is not a fox I fear, my lord
... it
is a wolf. A Cheysuli wolf." His eyes went past me.
1 did
not turn. knowing who stood there.
"What
would you do, then?" I asked.
The
laughter had died. He looked at me directly. "Spy
for
you. Carillon. Go into Mujhara, to the palace itself,
and see
what Bellam does."
"Dangerous,"
Finn said from behind me. "The hare
asks to
break."
"Aye,"
Lachlan agreed. "But who else could do it? No
Cheysuli,
that is certain. No Homanan, for whom would
Bellam
admit without good reason? But I, J am a harper,
and
harpers go where they will."
It is
true harpers are admitted to places other men
cannot
go. I knew from my own boyhood, when my uncle
had
hosted harpers from far and wide within Homana-
Mujhar.
A harper would be a perfect spy, that I did not
doubt.
And
yet—"Lachlan of Ellas," I said, "what service would
you do
me?"
His
fingers flew against the strings. It was a lively tune,
evocative
of dance and laughter and youth. It conjured up
a
vision before my eyes: a young woman, lithe and lovely,
with
tawny-dark hair and bright blue eyes. Laughter was
in her
mouth and gaiety in her soul. My sister, Tourma-
line,
as I recalled her. At nineteen, when I had seen her
last,
though she would be twenty-four now.
Tourmaline,
hostage to Bellam himself. And Lachlan
knew it
well.
I was
off my horse at once, crossing to the beech in two
long
steps. My hands went out to stop his fingers in the
strings,
but I did not touch them after all. I felt a sudden
upsurge
of power so great it near threw me back from the
man. 1
took a single step backward against my will, all
unexpected,
and then I stood very still.
His
fingers slowed. The tune fell away until only an
echo
hung in the air. And then that, too. was gone, and
silence
built a wall between us.
"No,"
he said quietly. "No man gainsays the truth."
"You
do not ensorcell me!"
"/
do not," he agreed. "What power there is comes of
108
Jennifer Roberson
Lodhi,
not His servant. And do you seek to injure my
Lady,
she will injure you." He did not smile. "I mean you
no
harm, my lord, nor my harp; yet harm may come to the
man who
means me harm."
I felt
the upsurge of anger in my chest until it filled my
throat.
"I meant you no harm," I said thickly. "I merely
wanted
it to stop—"
"My
Lady takes where she will," he said gently. "It is
your
sister who lives within you now, because of Bellam's
power.
I merely wished to show it to you, so you would
know
what I can do."
Finn
was at my side. "What would you do?" he asked.
"Free
his sister from Bellam?"
Lachlan
shook his head. "I could not do so much, not
even
with all of Lodhi's aid. But I can take her any word
you
might wish to give her, as well as learn what I can of
Bellam's
and Tynstar's plans."
"Gods!"
The word hissed between my teeth. "Could I
but
trust you ..."
"Do,
my lord," he said gently. "Trust your liege man, if
not me.
Has he not questioned my intent?"
I let
out my breath all at once, until my chest felt
hollow
and thin. I looked at Finn and saw the solemnity in
his
face. So much like Duncan, I thought, and at such odd
times.
He
looked directly at Lachlan. The sunlight set his
ftr-gold
to shining like the strings in the harper's Lady.
Neither
man said a word, as if they judged one another; I
found
my own judgment sorely lacking, as if I had not the
mind to
discern what should be done. I was weary and
hungry
and overcome, suddenly, with the knowledge of
what I
must do.
"Trust
him," Finn said finally, as if disliking the taste.
"What
is the worst he could do—tell Bellam where we
are?"
His smile held little humor. "Does he do that, and
Bellam
sends soldiers, we will simply slay them all."
No
doubt he could do it, with three hundred Cheysuli
warriors.
And no doubt Lachlan knew it.
He
stood up from the beech with his Lady clasped in
his
arms. Slowly he went down on one knee, still hugging
the
harp, and bowed his head a little. A proud man,
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 109
Lachlan,
the homage was unexpected. It did not suit him,
as if
he were meant to receive it instead of offer. "I will
serve
you in this as I would have you serve me, were the
roles
reversed." His face was grimly set, and yet I saw the
accustomed
serenity in his eyes. That certainty of his fate.
Like
Finn and his tahlmorra.
I
nodded- "Well enough. Go you to Homana-Mujhar,
and
tend my service well."
"My
lord." He knelt a moment longer, supplicant to a
king
instead of a god, and then he rose. He was gone
-
almost at once, hidden by the shrubbery, with no word of
parting
in his mouth. But the harpsong, oddly, lingered
on, as
if he had called it from the air.
"Come,"
Finn said finally, "Duncan waits."
After a
moment I looked at him. "Duncan? How does
'• he
know I have come?"
Finn
grinned. "You are forgetting, my lord—we are in a
.'
Keep, of sorts. There are lir. And gossiping women, I do
- not
doubt." The grin came again. "Blame me, or Storr, or
"
even Cai, whom Storr tells me is the one who told Dun-
^ can
you had come. He waits, does my rujho, somewhat
^
impatiently,"
'^ "Duncan has never been impatient in
his life." In irrita-
p- tion
1 turned back to my horse and swung up into the
|.
saddle. "Do you come? Or do I go without you?"
I "Now who is impatient?" He did
not wait for an answer,
-4
which I did not intend to give; he mounted and led the
^ way.
^ I saw Duncan before he saw me, for he was
intent upon
', his
son. I thought it was his son; the boy was small enough
: for a
five-year-old, and his solemnity matched that I had
, seen
so often on his father's face. He was a small Cheysuli
;-
warrior, in leathers and boots but lacking the gold, for he
".'
was not a man as yet and had no lir. That would come in
;"
time.
The boy
listened well. Black hair, curly as was common
; in
Cheysuli childhood, framed his dark face with its in-
'l
quisitive yellow eyes. There was little of Alix in the boy, I
thought,
and then he smiled, and I saw her, and realized
^how
much it hurt that Donal was Duncan's son instead of
t mine.
110
Jennifer Roberson
Abruptly
Duncan bent down and caught the boy in his
arms,
sweeping him up to perch upon one shoulder. He
turned,
smiling a wry, familiar smile—Finn's smile—and I
realized
there was much of Duncan I did not know. What
I had
seen was a rival, a man who sought the woman I
sought;
the man who had won her, when I could not. The
man who
had led an exiled race back from the edge of
death
to the promise of life again. I had given him little
thought
past what he had been to me. Now I thought
about
what he was to the Cheysuli . . . and to the boy he
carried
on his shoulder.
The boy
laughed. It was a pure soprano tone, girlish in
its
youth, unabashed and without the fear of discovery. No
doubt
Donal knew what it was to hide, having hidden for
all of
his short life, but he had not lost his spirit with it.
Duncan
and Alix had seen to it he had his small freedoms.
The
Keep suddenly receded. The humming of voices
and the
laughter of other children became an underscore
to the
moment. I knew, as I looked at Duncan and his
son, I
looked upon the future of Homana. From the man
had
come the son, who would no doubt rule in his father's
place
when Duncan's time was done. And would my son
rule
alongside him? Homanan Mujhar and Cheysuli clan-
leader.
Under them would a nation be reborn from war
and
purge into life again. Better, stronger than ever.
I
laughed. It rang out, bass rather than DonaFs soprano,
and for
just a moment the voices mingled. I saw the
momentary
surprise on Duncan's face and then the recog-
nition,
and finally the acknowledgment. He swung his son
down
from his shoulder and waited, while I got off my
horse.
It was
Donal I went to, not his father. The boy, so small
beside
the man, and so wary of me suddenly. He knew
enough
of strangers to know they sometimes brought dan-
ger
with them.
I
dwarfed him, taller even than Duncan- At once I went
down on
one knee so as not to loom over him like a
hungry
demon. It put us on a level: tall prince, small boy,
warriors
both, past. present and future.
"I
am Carillon," I told him, "and I thank the gods you
are
here to give me aid."
THE
SONG OF HOMANA I 111
The
wariness faded, replaced by recognition. I saw won-
der and
confusion and uncertainty, but 1 also saw pride.
Donal
detached his hand from his father's and stood be-
fore
me, frowningly intent, with color in his sun-bronzed
cheeks.
He was a pretty boy; he would make a handsome
man.
But then the Cheysuli are not an ugly race.
"My
jehan serves you," he said softly.
"Aye."
"And
my su'fali."
I
thought of Finn, knowing he was behind me. "Aye.
Very
well."
Donal's
gaze did not waver. There was little of indeci-
sion in
him, or hesitation. I saw the comprehension in his
face
and knew he understood what he said, even as he said
it.
'Then I will serve you also."
Such a
small oath, from so small a boy. And yet I
doubted
none of its integrity, or his honor. Such things
are in
all of the Cheysuli, burning in their blood. Donal
was
years from being a warrior, and yet I did not doubt his
resolve.
I put both
hands on his slender shoulders. I felt sud-
denly
overlarge, as I had with my mother, for there was
little
of gentleness about me. And nothing at all of
fatherhood.
But
honor and pride I know, and I treasured it from
him.
"Could I have but one Cheysuli by my side, it would
be
you," I told him, meaning it.
He
grinned, "You already have my su'faW
I
laughed. "Aye, I do, and I am grateful for him. I
doubt
not I will have him for a long time. But should I
need
another, I know to whom I will come."
Shyness
overcame him. He was still a boy, and still
quite
young. The intimacy had faded; I was a prince again,
and he
merely Duncan's son, and the time for such oaths
was
done.
"Donal,"
Finn said from behind me, "do you wish to
serve
your lord as I do, you might see to his mount. Come
and
tend it for him."
The boy
was gone at once. I turned, rising, and saw the
light
in his face as he ran to do Finn's bidding- My horse's
reins
were taken up and the gelding led away with great
112 Jennifer
Roberson
care
toward the picket-string in the forest. Finn, like
Donal,
walked, and I saw the calm happiness in his face as
he
accompanied the boy. Indeed, he needed a son.
"You
honor me with that," Duncan said.
I
looked at him. His voice held an odd tone; a mixture,
I
thought, of surprise, humility and pride. What had he
expected
of me? A dismissal of the boy? But I could do
nothing
so cruel, not to Alix's son.
And
then I realized what he meant. He had forgotten
none of
what lay between us, perhaps he had even dreaded
our
Brst meeting. No, not dreaded; not Duncan, who
knew me
too well for that. Perhaps he had merely antici-
pated
antipathy.
Well,
there was that. Or would be. There was still Alix
between
us.
"I
honor you with that," I agreed, "but also the boy
himself.
I have not spent five years with Finn without
learning
a little of your customs, and how you raise your
children.
I will not dishonor Donal by dismissing him as a
child,
when he is merely a warrior who is not fully grown."
Duncan
sighed. I saw a rueful expression leach his face of
its
customary solemnity. He shook his head. "Forgive me,
Carillon,
for undervaluing you."
I
laughed, suddenly light-hearted. "You have your brother
to
thank for that. Finn has made me what I am."
"Not
in his image, I hope."
"Could
you not stand two?"
"Gods,"
he said in horror, "two of Finn? One is too
muchi"
But I heard the ring of affection in his tone and
saw the
pleasure in his face; I realized, belatedly, he had
undoubtedly
missed Finn as much as Finn had missed
him. No
matter how much they disagreed when they were
together.
I put
out my hand to clasp his arm in the familiar
Cheysuli
greeting. "I thank you for him, Duncan. Through
him,
you have saved my life many times."
His
hand closed around my upper arm. "What Finn
knows,
he learned elsewhere," he retorted. "Little enough
of me
is in him. Though the gods know I tried—" He
grinned,
forgoing the complaint. "He did not lie. He said
you had
come home a man."
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 113
That
got me laughing. "He would not say that within my
hearing."
"Perhaps
not," Duncan conceded, "but he said it within
mine,
and now I have told it to you."
Men
judge men by handclasps. We held ours a mo-
ment,
remembering the past, and there was no failing in
his
grasp, nor none in mine. There was much between us,
and
neither of us would forget.
We
broke the clasp at last, two different men, 1 thought,
than we
had been before. Some unknown communication
had
passed between us: his recognition of me as someone
other
than 1 had been, when he had first known me, and
my
recognition of what he was. Not a rival, but a friend,
and a
man I could trust with my life. That is not so easy a
thing
to claim when a king has set gold on your head.
"My
tent is too small for Mujhars," he said quietly, and
when I
looked harder I saw the glint of humor in his eyes.
"My
tent is particularly too small for you, now. Come with
me, and
1 will give you a throne better suited, perhaps,
than
another. At least until you have slain the man who
makes
it his."
I said
nothing. I had heard the grim tone in his voice
and
realized, for the first time, Duncan probably hated as
well as
I did. I had not thought of it before, so caught up
in my
own personal—and sometimes selfish—quest. I
wanted
the throne for myself as well as Homana. Duncan
wanted
me to have it for his own reasons.
He took
me away from the tents to a pile of huge
granite
boulders, gray and green and velveted with moss.
The
sunlight turned the moss into an emerald cloak, thick
and
rich and glowing, like the stone in Lachlan's Lady.
The
throne was one rump-sized stone resting against an-
other
that formed a backrest. The moss offered me a
cushion.
Gods-made, Finn would say; I sat down upon it
and
smiled.
"Little
enough to offer the rightful Mujhar." Duncan
perched
himself upon a companion rock. The veil of tree
Umbs
hanging over us shifted in a breeze so that the
sunlight
and shadow played across his face, limning the
planes
and hollows and habitual solemnity. Duncan had
always
been less prone to gaiety than Finn, steadier, more
114
Jennifer Rob«rson
serious,
almost dour. Seeming old though he was still
young
by most men's reckoning. Young for a clan-leader, I
knew,
ruling because his elders were already dead in
Shaine's
qu'mahlin.
"It
will do, until I have another," I said lightly.
Duncan
bent and pulled a single stalk of wild wheat
from
the soggy ground. He studied the lime-green plant
as if
it consumed his every interest. It was unlike Duncan
to
prevaricate, I thought; unless I had merely gotten old
enough
to prefer the point made at once.
"You
wilt have trouble reconciling the Homanans with
Cheysuli,"
"Not
with all." I understood him at once. "Some, per-
haps;
it is to be expected. But I will have no man who
does
not serve willingly, whether it be next to a Cheysuli
or
myself." I sat forward on my dais of moss and granite.
So
different from the Lion Throne. "Duncan, I would
have
this qu'mahlin ended as soon as may be. I will begin
with my
army."
He did
not smile. "There is talk of our sorcery."
"There
will ever be talk of your sorcery. It is what made
them
afraid in the first place." 1 recalled my uncle's rant-
ings
when I was young; how he had said all of Homana
feared
the Cheysuli, because he had made them feared.
How the
shapechangers sought to throw down the House
of
Homana to replace it with their own.
Their
own. In Cheysuli legend, their own House had
built
Homana herself, and gave her over to mine.
"There
is Rowan," he said quietly.
I did
not immediately take his meaning. "Rowan serves
me
well. I could not ask for a better lieutenant."
"Rowan
is a man caught between two worlds." Duncan
looked
at me directly. "You have seen him, Carillon. Can
you not
see his pain?"
I
frowned. "I do not understand. ..."
A
muscle ticked in his jaw. "He is Cheysuli. And now
the
Homanans know it."
"He
has ever denied—" I halted the unfinished com-
ment at
once. It was true he had always denied he was
Cheysuli.
And I had ever wondered if he were regardless,
with
his Cheysuli coloring.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 115
"Cai
has confirmed it," Duncan said. "I called Rowan
here
and told him, but he denies it still. He claims himself
Homanan.
How a man could do that—" He broke it off at
once,
as if knowing it had nothing to do with the subject.
"I
bring Rowan up because he illustrates the troubles
within
your army, Carillon. You have Homanans and
Cheysuli,
and you expect them to fight together. After
thirty
years of Shaine's qu'mahlin"
"What
else can I do?' I demanded. "I need men—any
men—and
I must have you both! How else can I win this
war?
Bellam cares little who is Cheysuli and who is
Homanan—he
will slay everyone, do we give him the
chance!
I cannot afford to divide my army because of my
uncle's
madness."
"It
has infected most of Homana." Duncan shook his
head,
his mouth a flat, hard line. "I do not say all of them
hate us.
Does Torrin? But it remains that you must fight
your
own men before Bellam, do you let this hostility
flourish.
Look to your army first, Carillon, before you
count
your host."
"I
do what I can." I felt old suddenly, and very tired.
My face
ached from its bruising. "Gods—I do what I can
. . .
what else is there to do?"
"I
know." He studied his stalk of wheat. "I know. But I
have
put my faith in you."
I
sighed and clumped down against my mossy throne,
feeling
the weight of my intentions. "We could lose."
"We
could. But the gods are on our side."
I
laughed shortly, with little humor in the sound. "Ever
so
solemn, Duncan. Is there no laughter in you? And do
you not
fear the Ihlini gods are stronger than your own?"
He did
not smile. His eyes appraised me in their quiet,
competent
way, and I knew again the chafing of youth
before
an older, wiser man. "I will laugh again when I do
not
fear to lose my son because his eyes are yellow."
I
flinched beneath the bolt as it went cleanly home in
my
soul. In his place, I might be like him- But in my
place,
what would he do?
"Were
you Mujhar—" I began, and stopped when I saw
the
flicker in his eyes. "Duncan?"
116
Jennifer Roberson
"I
am not." No more than that, and the flicker was
gone.
I
frowned at him, sitting upright again on my rock. "I
will
have an answer from you: were you Mujhar, what
would
you do?"
He
smiled with perfect calm. "Win back my throne. We
are in
accord, my lord—you have no need to fear your
throne
is coveted. You are welcome to the Lion."
I
thought of the throne. The Lion Throne, ensconced
within
Homana-Mujhar. In the Great Hall itself, crouched
down
upon the marble dais, dark and heavy and brooding.
With
its crimson cushion and gilt scrollwork, set so deeply
in the
old, dark wood. How old? I could not say. Ancient.
And
older still.
"Cheysuli,"
I said, without meaning to.
Duncan
smiled more warmly. The smile set creases
around
his eyes and chased away the gravity, stripping his
face of
its age. "So is Homana, my lord. But we welcomed
the
unblessed, so long ago. Will you not welcome us?"
I set
my face against my hands. My eyes were gritty; I
scrubbed
at them and at my skin, so taut with worry and
tension.
So much to do—and so little time in which to do
it.
Unite two warring races and take a realm; a realm held
by
sorcery so strong I could not imagine the power of it.
"You
are not alone," Duncan said quietly. "Never that.
There
is myself, and Finn . . . and Alix."
I sat
hunched, eyes shut tightly against the heels of my
hands
as if the pressure might carry me past all the pain,
past
all the battles, past all the necessities of war to the
throne
itself. Could it be done, I would not have to face
the
risks and the losses and the fears.
But it
could not be done so easily, and a man learns by
what he
survives, not by passing o'er it.
I felt
a hand on my shoulder. I turned my face away
from my
hands and looked into Duncan's eyes, so wise
and sad
and compassionate. Compassion, from him; for a
man who
wished to be his king. It made me small again.
"Tahlmorra
lujhalla mei wiccan, cheysu," he said qui-
etly,
making the gesture with his right hand. "Now, my
lord,
come and sup with me. Wars are lost on empty
bellies."
THE
SONG OF HOMANA I 117
I
pushed myself off the rock with a single thrust of my
hand.
The fate of a man rests always within the hands of
the
gods.
My
gods? I wondered. Or Bellam's?
ELEVEN
Cai sat
upon a polished wooden perch sunk into the ground
next to
Duncan's slate-gray tent. His massive wings were
folded
with perfect precision, not a single feather was out
of
place. The great hooked beak shone in the dim firelight
and the
red glow of the setting sun: dark and sharp and
deadly.
And his eyes, so bright and watchful, missed not a
single
movement within the Keep.
I stood
outside the tent. Duncan, Finn and the boy
remained
within, finishing what supper there was: hot
stew,
fresh bread, cheese and Cheysuli honey brew. And
Alix,
who had come up from Tori-in's croft with the bread,
had
gone off to another tent.
I had
put on a Cheysuli cloak, wrapping myself in the
harsh
woollen folds to ward off the chill of dusk. TTie fabric
was so
deep a green I melted into the surrounding dark-
ness,
even with the light from the firecairns on me. No
longer
did I wonder how the Cheysuli achieved their
secrecy;
a man, standing still, can hide himself easily
enough.
He need only affect the proper coloration and
wait,
and the enemy wilt come to him.
Cai
turned his head. The great hawk looked directly at
me,
dark eyes glittering in the dying light. He had the
attentiveness
of a man in his gaze, and yet more, for he
was a
Ur and a lir is better than a man, or so the Cheysuli
claim.
I had no reason to dispute it. I had known Storr
I 118 I
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 119
long
enough to acknowledge his virtues, and be thankful
for his
service.
I
shivered, though it was not from the evening chill- It
was
from the pervasive sense of destiny within the Cheysuli
Keep,
for a Keep is where a man is, with his lir, and here
sat a
lir beside me. Cai, the great dark hawk with the
wisdom
of the ages, and the knowledge of what was to
come.
Divulging it never, to no man, not even Duncan,
who served
his gods better than any I had known. Such a
harsh
service, I thought, requiring death and sacrifice.
What
the Cheysuli bore in their bones was a weight I
could
not carry. The shapechange was magic indeed, but I
would
not pay its price. ,
I turned
away and pulled aside the doorQap. The dim
light
from the small iron brazier filled the tent with shad-
ows,
and I saw three pairs of yellow eyes fixed upon my
face.
Beast
eyes. . . .
Even
friendship does not dampen the residual fear en-
gendered
by such eyes.
"I
will go up to the army encampment. I have spent
enough
time away from my men."
Finn
rose at once, handing his cup to Duncan. The light
glittered
off the Steppes knife in his belt, and suddenly I
recalled
I had none to wear at my own. The bone-hilted
Caledonese
weapon lay in the snowfields near Joyenne.
Finn
caught up a night-black cloak and hung it over his
shoulders.
It hid the gold on his arms entirely, turning
him
black from brown in the dim glow of light. His hair
swung
forward to hide his earring, and all I saw was the
yellow
of his eyes. Suddenly, in the presence of three
Cheysuli,
I found myself lacking, and I the Prince of
Homana.
Finn
smiled. "Do we go?"
I
needed no weapon, with him. He was knife and bow
and
sword.
"We
go." I looked past him to Duncan with his son by
his
side. "I will think well on what you have said. I will
speak
to Rowan and see what pain is in his heart, so I may
have a
man beside me free of such cares."
He
smiled. In the dim light he seemed older, but the
120
Jennifer
Robwon
THE
SONG OF HOMANA
121
boy by
his side made him young again. The future of his
race.
"Perhaps it will be enough for Homana to know her
Mujhar
again."
I
stepped aside and Finn came out. Together we walked
through
the darkness to our horses, still saddled at the
picket
line. The Cheysuli trust no one this close to Mujhara;
nor do
I.
"The
army will not be far." Finn ducked a low branch.
"I
think even Homanans know the value in three hundred
Cheysuli." »
"They
will when we are done with them." I,
He
laughed softly, nearly invisible in the deepening ||
night.
•S
I
untied and mounted my dark Ihlini horse. Finn was
up on
his mount a moment later, heading through the ^
trees,
and I followed. Storr slipped along behind me, ||
guarding
my back as Finn preceded his lord. It is an
iJ^
exacting
service, and one they perform with ease. %
The
moon rose full above us, above the stark black, ^
skeletal
trees: a silver plate in the dark night sky. I looked .^
through
the screen of trees that arched over my head. ^
Beyond
the screen were the white eyes of the stars, star" ||
ing
down. I heard the snap of twigs and branches broken j|
by the
hooves and the soft thunk of iron shoe against turf ^
track.
The forest sang with scent and the nightsounds I ^
had so
long taken for granted. Crickets called out our ^
passage:
a moth fluttered by my face on its journey toward ^
the
light. But there was no light. Not here, so deep among ^~
the
trees. H-
And
then such joy at being in Homana again rose up in H,
my
chest that I could hardly breathe. It did not last, and JP-
for a
moment I was taken aback, but then I gave myself ^
over to
it. Finn was welcome to his ftr-bond and the magic ^,
of his
race, I longed only for Homana. Even an exiled ^
Mujhar
can find joy in such exile, does it bring him home _':
again, j
We rode
along the crest of a hill, rising upward through A^
the
trees, and then down it, like water down a cobbled ^
spillway
Finn took me down into a tiny bowl of a valley,
skirting
the edges so the trees gave cover. Clustered amid
the
night and darker shadows were pinpoints of flickering
light.
Tiny lights, little more than the luminance shed by
the
flame moths. Like the Cheysuli, my army kept itself to
subtle
warmth and illumination. One would have to look
hard to
see it; expecting it, it was not so hard for me to
discover.
A pinpoint here and there, lost within the shad-
ows,
screened by trees and brush.
A
circlet of light rimmed the bowl-like valley It crowned
the
crests like a king's fillet crusted with glowing gem-
stones,
glittering against the darkness. We rode closer,
still
clinging to the trees, and then I learned how well-
guarded
was the army.
"Hold!"
shouted a voice. I heard the rustling in the
leaves
and placed each man, a semi-circle of five, 1 thought.
"Say
who is your lord." The order was clipped off, lacking
the
smoothness of aristocratic speech, but Homanan all
the
same.
"Carillon
the Mujhar." I said quietly, knowing Finn's
accent
would give away his race. In the darkness, the men
might
slay him out of hand.
"How
many?" came the voice.
"Three."
I smiled. "One Homana, one Cheysuli . . .
and one
lir."
I felt
the indrawn breath in five'throats, though I heard
nothing.
Good men. I was grateful for that much, even
though
I grew cold upon my horse.
"You
are Homanan?"
"I
am. Would you have me speak more for you, to
discern
my accent?" I thought it a worthwhile test; the
Solindish
speech does not mimic ours and would give
away an
enemy.
"You
have said enough. What weapons do you bring?"
"A
sword and a bow, and a Cheysuli warrior. Weapons
enough,
I think."
A
grunt. "Come ahead, with escort."
We went
on, Finn first, surrounded by the men. Not
enough
to gainsay Finn did he seek to slay them all; I
could
account for at least two myself, possibly three And
Storr a
few more. It would take ten to stop us, perhaps
more. I
found I liked such odds.
More
rustles in the bushes and the crunching of night-
crisped
snow. At last we halted near the outer rim of a
122
Jiuittar Robwon
firecairn's
light, and I saw the glint of weapons. Silent,
shadowed
men, grave-faced and wary-eyed, watching. Storr
they
watched the most, as any man will, knowing only a
wolf.
And Finn, cloaked in black with raven hair, dark-
faced
and yellow-eyed. Me they hardly marked at all, save
perhaps
to note my size.
The
leader stepped forward into the firelight. He wore a
long-knife
in his belt and a sword upon a baldric. He was
squat,,
well-proportioned, with close-cropped, graying red
hair
and bright green eyes. His body cried out for a
soldier's
leather and mail, though he wore only wool. He
had the
calm authority of a born leader, I knew at once he
was a
veteran of my uncle's wars against Solinde.
Other
men had gathered around the tiny firecaim. There
was not
enough light to see them all clearly, merely arms
and
legs and faces, shadowed in the darkness. Silence and
waiting
and wariness, the mark of hunted men. Bellam
had
made them so.
"What
do you call yourselP" I asked the leader.
"Zared,"
he said calmly. "And you?"
I
grinned. "Mercenary. And Finn, with Storr the wolf."
I
shifted in the saddle and saw hands move to hilts. "Put
up your
weapons, for I am Homanan-bom and wish only
to go
to war. 1 am impressed by your competence, but
enough
of it for now." I paused. "I am Carillon."
Zared's
green eyes narrowed. "Come down from that
horse."
I did
so and stood before the man while he looked
closely
at my face.
"I
fought with Prince Fergus, Carillon's father," he said
abruptly.
"I saw the son taken by Throne himself. Do you
tell me
you are that boy?"
His
tone was dubious, but there was no humor in that
moment.
I put out both hands and pushed back the sleeves
from my
wrists. In the dim firelight the scars were nearly
black,
ridged bracelets in my flesh. Zared's eyes were on
them,
then rose to my face again. They narrowed once
more.
"Stories have it you were slain in exile."
"No.
I am as you see me " I put my arrns down again.
"Is
there more proof you would see?"
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 123
"Many
men have been chained." An odd argument, but
I
understood him.
"Take
the sword from my saddle."
He
flicked a finger. One man stepped to the far side of
my
horse and unhooked the scabbard, then brought it to
Zared.
He pulled the blade partway free of the sheath so
the
runes writhed upon the metal, but the hilt, wrapped
again
in taut leather, looked an unmade thing.
"Cut
it free," I said, yet again.
He did
so with his knife, freeing the gold at last. The
rampant
lion clawed upon the metal as the shadows shifted
upon
it. The lion of Homana. And in the pommel glowed
the
ruby.
'That I
know," he said in satisfaction. And he gave the
sword
to me.
"If
you thought I was dead, why did you join the army?"
I asked
curiously
"I
am a soldier," he said simply. "I serve Homana.
Even
without a Mujhar to follow—a Homanan Mujhar—I
will
fight to defend my land. But I could not do it alone,
and
before now few were willing to risk themselves." He
smiled
a little, and it put lines in his rough-worked face.
"Now
we have more than a thousand men, my lord, and at
last a
prince to lead them."
I saw
the others staring at me. They had just heard their
leader
admit I was their lord. It is sometimes an awesome
thing
for men to see who rules, when often he is only a
name.
I
turned back to my horse and hooked my scabbarded
blade
to it again. "Direct me to Rowan."
"Rowan?"
Zared sounded surprised. "You wish to speak.
to
him?"
"Why
should I not? It was he who began this army." I
swung
up into the saddle again. "Would you have it said
another
has done it, when it was Rowan?"
Dull
color flushed his face. "My lord—it is said he is
Cheysuli
. . Cheysuli do not lead Homanans." The tone
was
harsh, the words clipped off, he did not look at Finn.
The
nakedness of it stunned me. Zared I judged a fair
man, a
good soldier, worthy of any rank I chose for him.
124
Jennifer Roberson
And he,
even knowing the skill of the Cheysuli, could
continue
to resent their presence.
I drew
in a steadying breath and spoke exceedingly
calmly.
"We will dismiss any man who chooses to hate the
Cheysuli.
Any man. We will not argue with what my
uncle's
purge has put into your mind—he worked hard
enough
to do it—but we do not have to tolerate it in our
anny.
Those of you who wish to continue Shame's policy
of
Cheysuli extermination may leave now. We will have
none of
you with us."
Zared
stared, openly stunned. "My lord—"
"We
want none of you," I repeated. "Fight Bellam and
Tynstar,
but no other. Not Cheysuh. They serve us too
well."
I gathered in my reins. "Direct us to Rowan at
once."
Zared
pointed toward a distant flicker. "There, my lord.
There."
"Think
on what I have said," 1 told him. "When we
have
won this war the Cheysuli will know freedom again
We will
begin that policy now."
"My
lord—"
I heard
nothing more of his comment, for I left his fire
as fast
as the horse would take me.
Rowan
sat alone by his tiny firecairn He was sur-
rounded
by clustered trees, as if he had gathered about
himself
a royal guard, stolid and silent. And yet within his
guard
he was a man alone, untouched by all save his grief.
He had
been found out, and no more was the secret kept.
The
firecairn was not enough to warm him, I knew;
probably
not enough to warm the leathern cup of wine he
held in
rigid fingers. But the tiny light threw illumination
over
his face in the thick darkness, and I saw the gaunt
expression
of loss.
I swung
off my horse and moved toward the caim so
that he
had to acknowledge me. His head came up For a
moment
he stared, still lost in his reverie, and then slowly
he
moved forward onto his knees. It was an old man's
ungainly
movement.
I saw
past the shock. I saw past the outer shell of loss to
the
resignation beneath.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 125
He had
known
"How
long?" I asked. "And why did you hide it from
?"
mer
"All
my life," he said dully, still kneeling on the ground,
"As
for hiding it from you—what choice did I have? Few
Homanans
are like you, my lord ... 1 thought they would
revile
me. And they have."
I
dropped the reins and moved closer yet, motioning
him up
from his knees. Slowly he sat again upon the
campstool.
The cup in his hands shook. 'Tell me," I said
calmly.
He shut
his eyes a moment. In the stark light he was the
image of
a childhood demon. Cheysuli.
"I
was five," he said quietly. "I saw the Mujhar's men
murder
my kin. All save me." A quiver passed over his
young
face. "They came on us in the trees, shouting they
bad
found a nest of demons. I ran. Myjehan SLndjehana—
and my
rujhoHa—could not run in time. They were slain."
The
Cheysuli words from Rowan's mouth were a shock
to me.
He had always spoken with the accent of Homana,
lacking
the Old Tongue entirely—and now I knew he had
more
claim to it than most.
1 heard
Finn come up beside my horse. I did not look at
him,
but Rowan did. They were as much alike as two
leaves
from the same vine; like enough to be father and
son.
Perhaps they were even kin.
"I
had no choice," Rowan said. "I was found by a couple
who had
no children. They were EIIasian. but they had
come to
live in Homana. The valley was distant, insular,
and
there were none there who had seen Cheysuli. I was
safe.
And I kept myself so, until 1 came here."
"You
must have known you would be discovered."
He
shrugged. "I knew there was the chance. In Mujhara,
I was
careful. But the men interested in fighting Bellam
were
young, like myself, and they had never seen a Cheysuli
shapechanger.
So I named myself Homanan, and they
believed
it. It has been so long since the Cheysuli were
free to
go where they choose—much of Homana does not
know
her ancient race." Briefly he looked at me. "Aye. I
have
known what I am. And what I am not." He turned
his
face to the fire. "I have no lir."
126
Jennifer Roberson
I did
not fully understand. And then I thought of Finn's
link
with Storr and the price it carried, and I knew what
Rowan
meant "You cannot mean you will seek out your
death'"
"There
is no need for that," Finn said. He swung down
from
his horse and came into the firelight with Storr
pacing
at his side "He never had a Hr, which is somewhat
different
from losing one. Where there is no loss, a man is
not
constrained to the death-ritual."
Rowan's
face was leached of color, painted bleak by the
firelight.
"The ritual is already done, though it be a
Homanan
one. I am named shapechanger, and stripped of
what
honor once I had."
I
thought of the men in the tavern where Lachlan and I
had
found Rowan. Those men had followed him willingly.
It was
Rowan who had gathered most of those who were
here.
Word of mouth had gathered the others and still
did,
but Rowan had begun it alt.
"Not
all of them," I told him, ignoring Zared's attitude.
"Those
who are men, know men. They do not judge by
eyes
and gold." I realized, too, he wore no fir-gold. He
had not
earned the right.
"The
gods are blind to you," Finn said quietly
I
stared at him in shock. "Do you seek to destroy what
is left
of him?"
"No.
I tell him what he knows. You have only to ask
him."
Finn's voice and eyes were implacable. "He is lirless,
Unwhole.
Haifa man, and lacking a soul. Unblessed, like
you,
though he be Cheysuli instead of Homanan." He
went
on, ignoring the beginnings of my protest "He is not
a warrior
of the clan, lacking a lir. He will have no passage
to the
old gods "
My hand
was on his arm. I felt the hard sinews beneath
his
flesh as my fingers clamped down. I had never before
put my
hand on him in anger.
He
stopped speaking. He waited. And when I took my
hand
away he explained the words to me. "He gave it up
willingly,
Carillon. Now he must suffer for it."
"Suffer!"
"Aye."
His eyes flicked down to Rowan's hunched fig-
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 127
ure-
"Had it been me with the choice, I would have taken
the
risk."
"And
died," I returned angrily.
"Oh,
aye," he said matter-of-factly. "but I could not
have
lived with it, else."
"Do
not listen," I told Rowan wearily. "Finn sometimes
speaks
when he would do better to hide his sentiments."
"Let
him speak," Rowan said wearily. "He says what I
have
expected all my life. My lord—there is much of the
Cheysuli
you do not know. Much / do not know, having
given
up my soul." A bitter, faint smile twisted his mouth
into a
travesty of the expression. "Oh aye, I know what I
am.
Soulless and lirless, unwhole. But it was the choice I
made,
too frightened to seek my death. And I thought I
would
die, when the time for the fir-bond came."
"You
knew?" I stared at him. "You knew when the time
had
come?"
"How
could I not? I was sick for days, until my foster
parents
feared I would die. The longing, the need, the
emptiness
within me." A terrible grimace twisted his face.
"The
pain in the denial—"
"You
had only to answer that need," Finn said harshly.
"The
gods fashioned a lir for you, an'd you gave it over into
death.
Ku'reshtin! You should have died for what you
did."
"Enough!"
I shouted at him. "Finn—by the gods!—I
want
support from you! Not condemnation for a man I
need."
Finn's
hand stabbed out to point at Rowan's lowered
head.
"He lived, while the lir died. Can you not see what
it
makes him? A murderer. Carillon—and what he slew
was a
gift of the gods themselves—"
"Enough,"
I repeated. "No more."
"Look
at Storr," Finn snapped. "Think how your life
would
have been had / ignored my chance to link with
him. He
would have died, for a lir who does not link when
the
need is upon him gives himself over to death. It is the
price
they pay, as a warrior does when his lir is slain." His
teeth
showed briefly in a feral baring, like a wolf prepared
to
leap.
A
wolf—Finn.
1Z8
Jennifer Robarson
"Leave
Rowan be," I said at last. "You have said more
than
was required."
"I
would say it all again, and more, did I think it would
make
him see what he has done."
"I
know what I have done!" Rowan was on his feet at
last,
his arms coming up as if to ward off the words Finn
said.
"By the gods, do you think I have not suffered? Do
you
think I have not cursed myself? I live with it each day,
shapechanger!
The knowledge will never go away."
I saw
then that each suffered. Rowan, for what he never
had;
Finn, for what he could not comprehend: that a
Cheysuli
could give up his birthright and continue to
survive.
It was not Rowan who was left out, but myself.
Carillon.
The Homanan, who could not possibly know
what it
was to have a lir, or what it was to give one up.
"I
need you both," I told them finally as they faced one
another
across the firelight. "I will have no disharmony
among
my men. Neither Cheysuli-Homanan conflict, nor
that
between men of a single race, blessed or not." I
sighed,
suddenly disgusted. "By the gods, do I know
anything
at all of the Cheysuli? I begin to think I cannot."
"This
much I know," Rowan said, still looking at Finn.
"No
man, unblessed, can ever know the grace of the gods
or
understand the prophecy."
Finn
laughed, though it had a harsh sound. "Not so
soulless
after all, are you? You have enough blood in you
for
that much."
' The
tension lessened at once. They still faced one an-
other
like predatory beasts: one a wise wolf, the other a
man who
lacked the gifts of the fir-bond, and yet claimed
all the
eerie charisma of the race.
"Unblessed,"
I growled. "By the gods, now there are
two of
you prating this nonsense. ..." I turned away to
my
horse, my Ihlini horse, who was as much a stranger as
I to
the world of the Cheysuli.
I
mustered my forces in the valley the following day,
Cheysuli
and Homanan alike. I watched them come, silent
upon my
horse, and waited until they filled the bowl-
shaped
valley. It was a small place and made my army
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 129
look
smaller still, I had so few men beneath my standard.
And yet
more came each day, trickling in with the thaw.
I
thought of haranguing them with all the arguments
and
commands until all went away with the taste of Caril-
lon in
their mouths. I was angry enough that my Homanans
could
disregard the Cheysuli when we needed every man;
did
they wish to lose this war? And yet I understood, for I
too had
been raised to hate and fear the race. 1 had
learned
my lesson, and well, but only in adversity. Many
of the
Homanans I faced had lacked the teacher I had.
Instead
of haranguing, I talked. Shouted, rather, since I
could
not reach them all by merely speaking, but I left my
anger
behind I told them what we faced; told them how
badly
we were outnumbered. I would have none of them
saying
later I had led them unknowing into war. Did a
man go
to his death, I wanted him to know the risks.
I broke
them into individual units, explaining my strat-
egy to
them, We could not afford the pitched battles we
had
ever known before, there being too few of us, and
none I
could spare in such futile attacks. Instead we would
go in
bit by bit, piece by piece, harrying Bellam's patrols.
They
would be fewer now, with .harvest, and we would
stand a
better chance of catching them unawares.
The
units I kept separate, knowing better than to mix
Cheysuli
with Homanan. Many of our Homanans were
veteran
enough to recall the days before the qu'mahlin,
and
they readily accepted the Cheysuli as expert fighting
men,
these men I put in charge of raiding parties. I
counted
on them to quash the rumbles of discontent. All
men
knew the ferocity and incredible abilities of the
Cheysuli;
I thought, in the end, they would prefer to have
them
with us than against us.
Few
questions were asked. I wondered how many men
came
out of a true conviction of my goal, or merely desir-
ing a
change from daily life. Some, I did not doubt, were
like
Zared in their desire to free Homana from Bellam's
rule.
But others likely sought a release from what they had
known,
wanting merely a different life. I could promise
them
that much. They would go home vastly different, did
they go
home at all.
I named
my captains. Rowan was one of them. Him I
130
Jennifer Roberson
placed
with the men he had gathered in the tavern, know-
ing he
could not lead other Homanans until he had proved
himself.
The Cheysuli would not accept him either, I
thought,
judging by Finn's reaction.
I
dismissed the men into their units, tasking the cap-
tains
with the goal I wanted: superior raiding parties. Men
willing
to sweep down quickly on Solindish patrols, slaying
as they
could, and sweeping away again as quickly as they
had
come. No time wasted; fewer lives lost. Cheysuli
warfare,
and more effective than most. I knew it could
work,
if they were willing to act as I desired.
"You
have mastered them." This from Finn, sitting
behind
me on his horse.
I
smiled, watching the army depart. "Have I? Then you
are
deaf to all the mumbled complaints."
"Men
will ever complain. It is the nature of the beast."
He
kneed his mount forward and came up next to me. "I
think
you have won their hearts."
"I
need that and their willingness to fight."
"And
I think you will have it." He pulled something
from
his belt and held it out. A knife. A Cheysuli long-
knife
hilted in silver, with a gleaming wolfs-head pommel.
It was
my own, given to me by Finn so many years before.
"I
took it from your things," he said quietly. "A Mujhar
ever
carries one."
I
thought of the one I had left behind. The piece of
bone. I
thought of the one I had replaced it with: a
Homanan
knife of army issue, when there was my own.
But I
had hidden it so long— Abruptly I put out my hand
and
accepted the Cheysuli knife. And then I told Finn
how it
was I had lost the other. I told him of the sorcerer,
and of
the lion-beast.
His
brows drew down as he listened. Gone was the calm
expression
of the loyal liege man, although even then
there
was the hint of mockery. Now he listened, thinking
even as
I spoke, and when I was done with words he
nodded
a little, as if I had told him nothing new.
"Ihlini,"
he said on a sigh, as if there were need for
nothing
more,
"That
was obvious."
For a
moment his eyes were on me, but he saw some-
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 131
X
thing
more than myself. Then his gaze cleared and he
looked
at me, smiling in a grim parody of the Finn I knew.
"So
obvious? —no. That he was Ihlini, no doubt—but not
that he
had used so much of his sorcery."
"So
much?" It puzzled me. "There are degrees in it?"
He nodded,
shifting in the saddle. "There is much of
the
Ihlini I do not know. They hide themselves in mys-
tery.
But it is known they have gifts similar to our own."
I
stared at him, struck by the revelation. "Do you mean
to say
they shift their shapes?"
"No.
That is a Cheysuli thing." His thoughtful frown
was
becoming a scowl. "But they can alter the shapes of
other
things, such as weapons." He looked at the Cheysuli
knife I
held in my hand. "Had you borne that, he could
have
conjured no beast. Do you see? He touched that
which
was not alive—nor made of Cheysuli skill—and
fashioned
it into an enemy for you." He shook his head. "I
had
heard . . . but I have never seen it."
I felt
my gorge rise. I had faced the lion, knowing it was
a
sorcerous thing, and yet I had fought it as if it had been
real, a
thing Homanan-bom, to be slain before it slew me.
I had
known it had grown out o£ the Caledonese bone
hilt—how
else would it have appeared?—but somehow I
had
ignored the implications of it. If the Ihlini had such
power
over objects, I faced a more dangerous foe than I
had
thought.
"What
else can they do?" I demanded. "What magic
should
I expect?"
A stray
breeze lifted a lock of black hair from Finn's left
shoulder.
The earring glittered. Seated on his dark horse
in his
dark leathers, he reminded me of the stories I had
heard
of man-horses, half of each, and inseparable. Well,
so was
Finn inseparable. From his lir, if not from his
horse.
"With
the Ihlini," he said, "expect anything."
The
last of the Homanans disappeared into the trees to
gather
with their captains. To plan. To do as I wished,
which
was to strip Beltam of men and power until I could
steal
it all back from him.
I felt
a roll of trepidation in my belly "I am afraid," I
said
flatly, expecting ridicule—or worse—from him.
132
Jennifer Roberson
"No
man, facing what you face, denies his fear," Finn
said
calmly "Unless he lies. And you are not a liar."
I
laughed, albeit oddly. "No, not a liar A fool, perhaps,
but not
a liar." I shook my head, tasting the sharp tang of
apprehension
in my mouth. "What we face—
"—we
face," he finished. "As the gods desire." He
made
the familiar gesture. "Tahlmorra, my lord. It will go
He
closed his hand abruptly, the gesture banished.
on.
His
hand was a fist, a hard brown fist of flesh and bone,
and the
promise of death to come.
TWELVE
Our
first strikes against Bellam were successful. My raid-
ing
parties caught the Solindish patrols by complete sur-
prise,
as I had intended, slaying everyone rapidly and
then
departing more quickly than they had come. But
Bellam
was no fool; soon enough he put up a defense. In
two
months the Solindish patrols had cut down many of
my men.
But still more flocked to join me, won over by
the
knowledge I had come home at last to take back my
throne.
In those first days I had had thirteen hundred
men,
Cheysuli and Homanan alike. Now the number was
four
times that many, and still more came.
Carefully
I split my raiding parties and sent them out to
harry
Bellam from all directions. I took several of my best
captains,
experienced veterans all, and dispatched them
with
their men to distant parts of Homana. Slowly, from
all
four directions, they would work their way toward
Mujhara
and Bellam's principal forces. Little by little they
would
gnaw their way inward, chewing holes in Bellam's
martial
fabric, until the cloth was weakened. Even a large
army
can be defeated by small insects.
Much of
my time was taken up with army matters,
allowing
me small chance to do any fighting myself, but I
was not
unready to take the field and I did whenever I
could.
Finn fought with me, and Storr, along with Rowan
and his
men. And when I could not fight, too busy with
f 133 I
134
JannffT Roberson
other
matters, I practiced when I could against sword and
bow and
knife.
Zared
was often my partner, for the red-haired soldier
had
proved an invaluable fighter. He had come to me not
long
after the first few strikes, offering apology for his
words
concerning Rowan. I had listened in silence, allow-
ing him
what he would say, and then ordered Rowan
fetched
so Zared could say it again to the one who de-
served
the words. Rowan had come, listened in a silence
similar
to mine, and accepted the apology. I thought he
felt
better for it.
Since
then Zared and I had been on friendly terms, and
I had
come to know him better. He knew much of war,
having
fought for years under my father, and for that alone
I was
grateful. There were not many left who could recall
the man
who sired me, for with him had perished thou-
sands.
The memory still hurt, for I had been spared where
my
father had not. And all because I was heir to Shaine
the
Mujhar. Unexpendable, while my father was not.
Zared
and I, between strikes against Bellam's patrols,
sparred
within a clearing in the forest. We did not main-
tain
the camp in the same place for longer than a few days
at the
most, knowing more permanency would make us
easier
to track down. We moved constantly but with little
grumbling.
The army understood that our safety remained
in
secrecy.
I had
stripped to breeches and boots, bare-chested in
the
late spring warmth and extra activity. Zared wore little
enough
as well, concentrating on footwork; I outweighed
him
considerably and towered over him, so though to
most we
seemed unevenly matched, it merely afforded us
a
chance to fight against different styles. He was a superb
swordsman,
and I still had need of such tutors. Finn had
taught
me nothing of the sword, for the Cheysuli do not
believe
in using a sword where a knife will do. What I had
learned
I had learned from arms-masters within Homana-
Mujhar,
and from exile in foreign lands.
The
bout had gone on for a considerable length of time.
My
thighs burned and my arms ached. And yet I dared
not
call halt, or Zared would claim himself the victor.
More
often than not I won, being younger and stronger,
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 135
but
when he took a bout it was with great finesse and
much
shouting to let the others know he had beaten his
Mujhar.
My pride stood it well enough, after the first
time,
but my battered body did not like it so much. I
fought
to win.
Zared,
on the point of thrusting at me with his sword,
suddenly
fell back. I followed with a counterthrust, nearly
drove
the blade through when he did not move to deflect,
and
stopped short. Zared remained in one spot. staring
past
me. His sword drooped in his hand. I saw the
expression—shock
and awe and utter desire—and turned
to see
what had caused it.
A
woman. Women are not unheard of in an army camp—
even I
had taken my ease in camp followers—but this one
was
different. This one was no light woman or crofter's
daughter
seeking a soldier in her bed.
I
forgot I held a sword. I forgot I was half-naked and
sweaty,
wet-haired and smelling of exertion. I forgot who I
was
entirely, knowing only I was a man, and a man who
wanted
that woman.
I felt
the fist knot up deep in my belly, making me
aware
of what I needed. Wanted, aye. but needed as well.
With
the sudden recognition of such things, I knew I
wanted
to bed the woman before the day was done.
She had
not come of her own volition. That much was
clear.
Finn held her arm roughly, and he brought her to
me with
infinite satisfaction in his demeanor. I had never
seen
him so pleased before, and yet his pleasure was not
something
others—certainly not the woman—could see. It
showed
only in the deep feral light in his eyes and the set
of his
mouth, too calm for Finn. He did not smile, but I
saw the
laughter in his soul.
He
brought her to me. I remembered all at once what it
was she
saw, and for once I was displeased with my liege
man. No
doubt the woman was a prisoner, but surely he
could
have done me the courtesy of allowing me time to
put on
fresh clothing and wipe the sweat from my face. It
dripped
from my hair and beard to trickle down my bare
chest.
She was
stiff and clumsy with rage- White-blond hair
spilled
free of its sheer silken covering, tumbling past
136
Jennifer Rotrrson
slender
shoulders clad in slate-gray velvet. Her gown was
torn
and stained; flesh showed through the rents, but her
pride
was undiminished. Even as she stood before me in
obvious
disarray, in the open for all to see, the sight other
pride
struck the smile from my face.
Her
eyes fixed themselves upon me. Wide-spaced eyes,
gray
and cool as water, long-lidded and filled with virulent
scorn.
An apt emotion for the man who stood before her,
rank
from exertion, a bared blade in his callused hand.
I saw
again the wild light in Finn's eyes. "We took a
procession
out of Mujhara, bound for Solinde."
I
looked at the woman again. Her skin was pale as
death,
but that changed as color crept into her face. An-
ger, I
knew, and defiance.
And
then she spoke. "Do you mean to tell me, shape-
changer,
this man is the pretender-prince?"
"Carillon
of Homana," I informed her, and a suspicion
formed
in my mind. I looked at Finn for confirmation and
saw his
satisfied smile. At that I had to add my own.
"Pretender-prince,
am I? When I was born to that throne?
I think
not, lady. I think it is your father who pretends. A
usurper
king, and you his daughter." I laughed then, into
her
angry face. "Electra!" I said. "Oh, aye, you are well
come to
this camp. And I thank the gods for their gift."
Her
teeth showed briefly in a faint, feral baring, much
as I
had seen in Finn from time to time. But there was
nothing
of the Cheysuli in her. She was pale, so pale, like
winter
snow. White on white, with those ice-gray eyes.
Gods,
what a woman was this!
"Electra,"
I said again, still smiling. Then I gestured
toward
Finn. "Take her to my tent. Guard her well—we
dare
not lose this woman."
"No,
my lord." I saw the appraisal in his eyes. No
doubt
it was obvious what I wanted. To her as well as him.
I
watched her move away with him, one slim arm still
caught
in his sun-bronzed hand. The torn gown hid little
of her
body. It was with great effort that I dispatched
Zared
for cloth and fresh wine. When he came back I
dried
myself as best I could, drank down two cups of harsh
red
wine and put on my shirt and leather jerkin. Little in
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 137
my
apparel made me a prince, but I thought it would not
matter.
There was more on my mind than rank.
I went
into my tent at last. Electra stood precisely in
the
center, resolutely turned away from Finn, and now
myself.
The tent boasted little of fine things, being a field
pavilion.
There was a rude bed, a table and stool, tripod
and
brazier. There was little room for more.
Except,
perhaps, Electra.
Finn
turned. He was unsmiling now, but I saw some-
thing
in the set of his mouth and the tautness of his face. I
wondered
what she had said or done to set him so on
edge. I
had seen him like this rarely, especially with a
woman.
We
measured each other in that moment. But it was
Electra
who broke the silence by turning to face us both.
"This
is ill-done, Homanan. You take me from my women
and
leave him to the shapechangers."
"See
to your men," 1 told Finn briefly "You may leave
her
with me."
He knew
dismissal when he heard it. More often than
not we
played at lord and liege man, being better friends
than
most men of such rank, but this time he heard the
command.
I had not meant it to come out so baldly, but
there
was nothing for it. There was no room for Finn in
this.
He
smiled grimly. "Beware your weapon, my lord
Mujhar."
The
euphemism brought crimson flags to her face as he
left
and I wondered how much she knew of men. No
doubt
Bellam claimed his daughter a virgin, but I thought
it
unlikely. She did not look at me with any of the virgin's
fear or
curiosity. She was angry still, and defiant, but
there
was also the look of a woman who knows she is
wanted
by a man.
The
tent was of thin, pale fabric. Though the doorflap
hung
closed, enough light crept through the gap to lend a
dusky
daylight to the interior. The roof draped down from
the
ridgepole, nearly brushing my head, and the breeze
billowed
the side panels. She stood very still in the cen-
ter,
head raised and arms at her sides, keen-edged as any
138
Jennifer Roberson
blade.
It reminded me that I bore a sword, unsheathed,
and no
doubt she took it as a threat.
1 moved
past her to the table and set the blade upon it.
I
turned back, watching as she turned, and saw the seduc-
tiveness
in her movements. She knew well enough what
she
did: she watched me as well as I watched her.
"Electra."
Her eyes narrowed as I spoke. "Do you know
what
men call you?"
Her
head, on her pale, slender neck. lifted. Gold glim-
mered
in her ears and at her throat. She smiled back at
me
slowly, untouched by the insinuation in my tone. "I
know."
I
poured a cup of wine and deliberately kept it for
myself,
offering her none- She made no indication she
cared,
and suddenly I felt ludicrous. I set down the cup so
hard
the wine slopped over the rim and spilled, crawling
across
the parchment map upon the table like a crimson
serpent
seeking its lair.
'Tynstar's
light woman," I said, "An Ihlinfs whore."
Her
pale eyes were still and cool in her flawless face.
She
appraised me from head to toe, even as I assessed
her,
and I felt the heat creep up from my belly to engulf
my
face. It was all I could do to keep my hands from her.
"You
are a princess of Solinde," I reminded her, per-
haps
unnecessarily. "1 know it, even if you have forgotten.
Or is
it that Bellam does not care what men say about his
daughter?"
Electra
smiled. Slowly she reached out and took up the
forgotten
wine cup, lifting it to her mouth. She held my
eyes
with her own and drank three sips, then threw down
the cup
with a gesture of condescension. The red wine
colored
her lips and made me all the more aware of her,
when I
needed no reminding.
"What
else have they said, my lord?" Her tone was
husky
and slow. "Have they said I am more witch than
woman?"
"You
are a woman. Do you require more witchcraft than
that?"
I had not meant to say it. It had given her a
weapon,
though perhaps she had held it all along.
She
laughed deep in her throat. Her accent was exqui-
site-
"Aye, pretender-prince, perhaps it is. But I will tell
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 139
you
anyway." One slender, fine-boned hand smoothed a
pale
strang of hair away from her face. "How old am 1,
Carillon?"
The
Solindish accent made the syllables of my name
sing.
Suddenly I wanted her to say it again, in my arms, in
my bed,
as she assuaged the knot in my belly. "How old?"
I
asked, distracted.
"Surely
you can give me an age."
The
vanity of women. "Perhaps twenty."
Electra
laughed. "When Lindir ofHomana—your cousin,
I
believe?—was promised to my brother, I was ten years
old."
She paused. "In case you cannot count, my lord—
that
was thirty years ago."
The
grue slid down my spine. "No."
"Aye,
Carillon." Two fingers traced the gold around her
throat.
It was a twisted piece of wire. simple and yet
elegantly
suitable. "Are not Tynstar's arts impressive?"
My
desire began to spill away like so much unwanted
seed.
Tynstar's arts—Tynstar's light woman. Gods. "Elec-
tra."
I paused. "I think you have a facile tongue. But you
undervalue
my intelligence."
"Do
I? Do you disbelieve me?" The velvet on her
shoulders
wrinkled in a shrug. "Ah well, believe as you
will.
Men do, for all they claim themselves an intelligent
race."
She smiled. "So—this is what you face: this poor
little
tent, in your desire to seek my father's throne."
^' "My throne, lady."
"Bellam
took it from Shame," she said calmly. "It be-
longs
to the House of Solinde."
i
' I smiled with a confidence I did
not entirely feel, facing
her.
"And I will take it back."
"Will
you? How? By selling me?" Her cool eyes nar-
rowed.
The expression did not suit their long-lidded, som-
nolent
slant. "What will you do with me, my lord?"
"I
have not decided."
"Ransom
me? Stay me?"
' I frowned. "Shy you—I? Why should 1
desire your
death?"
"Why
not? I am your enemy's daughter."
; I laughed. "And a woman such as I
have never seen.
140
Jennifer Roberson
Slay
you? Never. Not when there is so much I would
rather
do."
I saw
the subtle change in her mouth; in the shape of
her
jaw. She had me, not 1 her, and she knew it. She
smiled.
It was a faint, slow, seductive smile, and went
straight
to the knot in my belly. The long-lidded eyes took
their
measure of me, and I wondered if she found me
lacking
somehow.
Electra
moved swiftly, diving for the Cheysuli sword on
the
table next to me, I spun and caught her waist as she
slipped
by; she clawed for the sword even as my hands
closed
on her. She had it in her hands, both hands,
jerking
it from the table. The blade flashed in the pale,
muted light
and I caught her wrist, knocking her arm
against
my upraised leg. She hissed in pain and lost the
sword,
dropping it to the hard-packed earth.
The
white-blond hair was a curtain across her face,
hiding
it from me as the fine strands snagged on the
leather
of my jerkin. I released one of her arms and
smoothed
away the hair from her angry face, drawing her
inexorably
closer. And then, even as she caught my neck
in her
arms, I ground my mouth onto hers.
She was
like the finest wine, subtle and heady and
powerful.
She went straight to my head, blurring my
senses
and addling my wits. I could do nothing but drown,
drinking
more even as I drowned, wanting only to take
her
with me. I could not think of letting her go. And she did
not
insist upon it, reaching up to catch my damp hair in
two
doubled fists. But her teeth sank into my bottom lip,
tearing,
and I cursed and jerked my face free.
"Rape?"
she demanded.
"Who
rapes?" I asked. "You or I? I think you have as
much
interest in this as I."
I had
not let her go. I did not, even as I set the back of
one
hand against my bleeding lip. The other hand was
caught
in the fabric of her gown, one arm locked around
her
spine. I could feel every line of her body set so hard
against
mine. Gods, but it would be easy to simply bear
her
down and take her here—
"Electra,"
I said hoarsely, "are you Tynstar's light
woman?"
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 141
"Does
it matter?" Her breasts rose against my chest.
"Does
it matter so much, pretender-prince?"
My Up
still bled. And yet I cared little enough for the
pain. I
wanted to share it with her. "Oh aye, it matters.
For he
will pay dearly for you."
She
stiffened at once. "Then you will seek ransom—"
"I
seek what I can get," I told her bluntly. "By the
gods,
woman, what do you seek to do? Ensorcell me?"
She
smiled. "I do what I can." She touched my lip with
a
gentle finger. "Shall I take the pain away?"
"Witch,"
I accused.
"Woman,"
This time she was the aggressor as much as
I, and
she did as she had offered. She took the pain from
my
mouth and centered it much deeper, where I could
not
control myself,
"How
much will you ask for me?" she whispered against
my
mouth.
"My
sister."
Her
head rose. "Tourmaline?"
"Aye.
I care little enough for gold. It is my sister I
want."
"My
father will never pay it."
"He
will. I would." And I knew as I said it, she had had
the
truth from me.
Electra
laughed. "Carillon, oh Carillon—such words from
you
already? Do you give in to my witchcraft so soon?"
I set
her away with effort. I felt unsteady, as if sickening
from
some fever. I was hot and cold and ringing with the
tension
as well as the demand.
I
realized, with a sense of astonishment, that the sword
still
lay on the ground between us. I had not recovered it.
It had
lain there, blade bare, as if in promise of what
might
lie between us in the future.
Electra
stood by the table. Her mouth was still red from
the
wine and stained by my blood. The long-lidded eyes
regarded
me calmly, assessively, as if she judged me within
her
mind. I dared not ask what she saw; I had not the
courage.
I bent
and picked up the sword. Slowly I slid it home in
the
scabbard and set it on the table. Within reach. She
had
only to pick it up again.
142
Jennifer Roberson
Electra
laughed. "You are too quick for me, my lord,
and far
too strong. You are a man, you see, and I merely a
woman."
"Merely,"
I said in disgust, and saw her contented
smile.
"No rape," I told her, "though I doubt—judging by
what 1
have tasted—you would be so unwilling. But no
rape."
I smiled. "I do not rape what I will have in marriage."
"Marriage!"
she shouted, and I knew I had broken
through
her guard at last.
"Aye,"
I agreed calmly. "When I have slain your father—
and
Tynstar—and once again hold my throne ... I will
make
you Queen of Homana."
"No!"
she shouted. "I will not allow it!"
"Do
you think I care what you will allow?" I asked her
gently.
"I will take you to wife, Electra. None can gainsay
me,
now."
"I
will gainsay you!" She was so vividly angry I could
scare
draw breath. "You puling fool, 7 will gainsay you!"
I
merely smiled at her, and offered more wine.
Finn,
seated on a stool within my tent, nearly dropped
his cup
of wine. "You will do wW?"
"Wed
her." I sat on the edge of my army cot, boots
kicked
oS and wine in my wooden cup. "Would you have
a
better idea?"
"Bed
her," he said curtly. "Use her, but do not wed
her.
The Mujhar of Homana wed to Bellam's daughter?"
"Aye,"
I agreed. "That is how alliances are made."
"Alliance!"
he lashed. "You are here to take back the
throne
from the man who usurped it, not win his approval
as a
husband for his daughter. By the gods, what has put
this
foolishness in your head?"
I
scowled at him. "You name me a fool? Are you blind?
This is
not just a thing between a man and a woman, but
between
realms and people as well." I shifted on the cot.
"We
cannot force war on Homana forever. When I have
slain
Bellam and won back the Lion, there will still be
Solinde.
The realm is large and strong, and I would prefer
not to
fight it forever. Do I wed Electra to cap my victory,
I may
well settle a lasting peace."
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 143
It was
Finn's turn to scowl. His wine was untouched.
"Do
you recall, my lord, how it was the qu'mahlin was
begun?"
"I
recall it well enough," I snapped impatiently. "And I
do not
doubt Electra will also refuse to wed with me, as
Undir
refused to wed with Ellic, but she will have no
choice
when the throne is mine."
Finn
said something in a tone of deep disgust, but it
was in
the Old Tongue and I could not understand it. He
reached
down and tugged at one of Storr's ears as if
seeking
guidence. I wondered what the wolf told him.
"I
know what I am doing," I said quietly.
"Do
you? How do you know she is not Tynstar's min-
ion?
How do you know she will not slay you in your
wedding
bed?"
It was
my rum to swear, though I did it in Homanan.
"When
I am done with this war, Tynstar will be dead."
"What
will you do with her now?"
"Keep
her here. Bellam will send word concerning Terry's
release,
and then we shall see to returning his daughter to
him."
I smiled. "If he is not dead by then himself."
Finn
shook his head. "Keeping her I can see, for it is a
tool to
use against your rujholla's captivity. But wedding
her?
No. Seek your cheysula elsewhere."
"Would
you have me wed a Cheysuli, then?" I scoffed.
"The
Homanans would never allow it."
"Cheysuli
women wed Cheysuli men," he said flatly.
"No
woman would look outside her clan."
"What
of the men?" I asked. "I have not seen the
warriors
keeping to their clan. Not even you." I smiled at
his
wary expression. "There was Alix, only half Cheysuli,
and not
knowing it at all." I paused. "And now, perhaps,
Electra?"
He sat
upright so quickly wine slopped over the rim of
his cup
and splashed across Storr's head. The wolf sat up
as
quickly as Finn, shaking his head to send droplets flying
in all
directions. The look he flashed Finn was one of such
grave
indignation I could not help but laugh, though Finn
found
little humor in it.
He rose
and set the cup down on the table, still scowl-
ing.
"I want none of Electra."
144
Jennifer Roberson
"Yon
forget, I know you. I have seen you with women
before.
She touched you, Finn, as much as she touched
me."
"I
want none of her," he repeated.
I
laughed at him. And then the laughter died, and I
frowned.
"Why is it we are attracted by the same women?
There
was Alix first, and the red-haired girl in Caledon,
and
now—"
"A
liege man knows his place." The comment overrode
me-
"Do you truly think he seeks what woman his lord
will
make his queen?"
"Finn."
I rose as he turned away. "Finn, I know you
better
than that."
"Do
you?" His face was uncommonly grave. "I think
not. I
think not at all."
I put
down my cup of wine. "I take her to wife because
she is
worthy of that much. I will not get her another
way."
"Put
out your hand and take her." Finn said. "She will
come to
you like a cat to milk."
The
wall went up between us, brick by brick. Where
once
its name had been Alix, now it was Electra. And,
though
I thought what he felt for Electra was closer to
dislike
than anything akin to love, I could not see the way
of
tearing it down again. Kingdoms take precedence even
over
friendships.
"There
are things a king must do," I said quietly.
"Aye.
my lord MuJhar." This time he did leave, and the
wolf
went with him.
THIRTEEN
I
jerked aside the doorflap and went out, buckling on my
swordbelt
with its weight of Cheysuli gold. No longer did
I wrap
the hilt in leather to hide the crest and ruby. All
men
knew I had come at last—including Bellam—and no
longer
did I wish to hide my presence or my identity.
Finn
stood waiting with the horses. He, like myself,
wore
his warbow slung across one shoulder, But he wore
no
ringmail or boiled leather, trusting instead to his skill
to keep
him free of harm. No Cheysuli wore armor. But
perhaps
I too would leave it off, did I have the chance to
wear an
animal's form.
I took
the reins from him and turned to mount. But I
stopped
the motion and turned back as Rowan called to
me.
"My
lord—wait you!" He hastened toward me in a rattle
of mail
and sword. Like us, he prepared to lead an attack
against
one of Bellam's patrols. "My lord, the lady is
asking
for you." He arrived at last, urgency in face and
voice.
"Electra
asks for nothing," I told him mildly. "Surely
you
mean she has sent."
Color
rose in his face. "Aye," he said, "she has sent."
He
sighed. "For you."
I
nodded. Electra sent for me often, usually two or
more
times in a single day. Always to complain about her
captivity
and to demand her immediate release. It had
I 145 I
146
Jennifer Roberson
become
a game between us—Electra knew well enough
what
she did to me when I saw her. And she played upon
that
effect.
In the
six weeks since Finn had captured her, nothing
had
been settled between us except out mutual attraction.
She
knew it as well as 1. Ostensibly enemies, we were also
eventual
bedmates. It was simply a matter of time and
circumstance.
Did I wish to, I could have her before her
internment
was done. But I gambled for higher stakes—-
permanency.
in reign and domesticity—and she knew it.
She
used it. And so the courtship rite went on, bizarre
though
it was.
"She
waits,' Rowan reminded me.
I
smiled. "Let her." I swung up on my horse and
gathered
the reins, marking how my men waited. And
then I
was gone before Rowan could speak again.
Finn
caught up to me not far from the camp. Behind us
rode
our contingent of soldiers: thirty Homanans armed to
the
teeth and ready for battle once more. Scouts had
already
brought reports of three Solindish patrols; I would
take
one, Rowan another, Duncan the third. Such warfare
had
worked well in the past months; Bellam already shouted
impotent
threats from his stolen throne,
"How
much longer do we keep her?" Finn asked.
No
reference was necessary. "Until I have Tony back."
I
squinted against the sun. "Bellam's last message said he
would
send Torry out of Mujhara with an escort—and
Lachlan
also. Electra will be back with her father soon
enough."
"Will
you let her go?"
"Aye,"
I said calmly. "It will be no hardship to let her
go when
I will have her back so soon."
He
smiled. "No more hedging, from you. No more
modesty."
"No,"
I agreed, grinning. "I have come home to take
my
uncle's throne, and I have every intention of doing it.
As for
Betlam, we have harried him long enough. In a
month,
or two or three, he will come out of Mujhara to
fight.
This thing will be settled then."
"And
his daughter?"
I
looked directly at him, tasting the dust of warfare in
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 147
my
mouth as we moved toward our battle- "She is Tynstar's
light
woman, by all accounts—including her own. For that
alone,
I will make her mine."
"Revenge."
He did not smile. "I understand that well
enough,
Carillon, having tasted it myself—but I think it is
more
than that."
"Political
expediency," I assured him blandly. "She is a
valuable
tool."
A scowl
pulled his face into grim lines. "In the clans, it
is not
the same,"
"No,"
I agreed quietly. "In the clans you take women as
you
will and care little enough for the politics of the
move."
I glanced back at my soldiers. They followed in a
tight
unit, bristling with swords and knives and ringmail.
"Men
have need of such things as wives and children," I
told
him quietly. "Kings have need of more."
"More,"
he said in disgust, and his eyes were on Storr.
The
wolf loped by Finn's horse, silver head turned up so
their
eyes locked: one pair of eerie, yellow eyes; one pair
of
amber, bestial eyes. And yet I could not say who was
truly
the beast.
Or if
either of them were.
Our
attack swept down on Bellam's patrol and engulfed
the
guardsmen. I halted my horse some distance from the
melee
and set about loosing arrow after arrow into se-
lected
targets. The Atvian longbow, for all its range was
good,
lacked the power of my Cheysuli bow; until my
arrows
were gone, I would be well-nigh invincible.
Or so 1
thought, until one Atvian arrow, half-spent,
struck
the tender flesh of my horse's nose and drove him
into a frenzy
of pain. I could not control him. Rather than
lose
myself to a pain-crazed horse in place of an Atvian
arrow,
I jumped from the horse and set about doing what
I could
on foot.
My
Homanans fought well, proving their worth. There
was no
hesitation on their part. even facing the archers
who had
so badly defeated them six years before. But we
were
greatly outnumbered. Bellam's men turned fiercely
upon my
own, slashing with swords, stabbing with knives,
screaming
like utter madmen as they threw themselves
148
Jennifer Roberson
into
the fight. So many times we had swarmed upon them
like
gnats; at last they swatted back.
I
discarded my bow when my arrows were gone, turn-
ing
instead to my sword. I waded into the nearest knot of
men, slashing
at the enemy. Almost instantly I was en-
gaged
by an Atvian wielding a huge broadsword. I met
blade
with blade and gasped as the jar ran up through my
arms to
my shoulders, lodging in knotted muscles. I disen-
gaged,
counterthrust, then sank my own blade deep in his
chest.
The man
went down at once. I wrenched my sword free
and
staggered across the body, ducking another scything
sweep
near my head, swung around and cut loose the arm
that
swung the blade. The Solindishman went down scream-
ing,
spraying blood across matted grass already boggy with
gore.
One glance showed me the battle had turned decid-
edly in
Solindish favor.
The
trick was now to get out. My horse had been left
behind.
But most of the enemy was on foot as well, since
we
struck first at their mounts, and a foot race is more
commonly
won by men with greater reason to run. 1 had
reason
enough.
I
looked for Finn and found him not far from me, as
ever,
shouting something as he closed with a Solindish
soldier.
He wore his human form, eschewing the savagery
that
accompanies the shapechange in the midst of battle.
It was
a matter of balance, he had told me once; a Cheysuli
warrior
remains himself even in fir-shape, but should he
ever
lose himself in the glory of a fight, he could lose
himself
forever. It was possible a warrior, crossing over
the
boundaries of balance, might remain a beast forever.
I did
not care to think of Finn locked into his wolf-
shape.
Not forever. I needed him too much as himself.
And
then I saw Storr running between two men. His
tail
was straight out as he streaked across the bloodied
field.
His ears were pinned back against his head and his
teeth
were bared. I knew then he ran to aid Finn, and I
knew he
was too late.
The
sword came down and bit into the wolfs left shoul-
der.
His yelp of pain pierced through the din of battle like
a
scythe. Finn heard it at once, or else he heard some-
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 149
thing
more within the link. Helplessly 1 watched him turn
away
from his enemy to look for Storr.
"No!"
I roared, trying to run through the slippery grass.
"Finn—look
to yourself."
But he
did not. And the Atvian spear drove into his
right
leg and buried itself in the hillside.
1 threw
myself over dead and wounded, enemy and
Homanan
alike. Finn was sprawled on his back against the
ground,
trying to wrench the spear from his thigh. But it
had
gone straight through, pinning him down, even as he
sought
to break the shaft with his hands.
The
Atvian spearman, seeing his advantage, pulled his
knife
from its sheath and lunged.
1
brought down my sword from the highest apex of its
arc,
driving it through leather and mail and flesh. The
body
toppled forward. I caught it before it fell across Finn
and dragged
it away, tossing it to one side. And then I
cursed
as I saw the damage that had already been done;
how he
had laid open the flesh of Finn's face with his
knife.
The bloody wound bisected the left side from eye to
jaw.
I broke
the spear in my hands and rolled Finn onto one
side,
grateful he was unconscious. I pulled the shaft free
as the
leg twitched and jumped beneath my hands. Blood
ran
freely from the wound, pooling in the matted, tram-
pled
grass. And then I pulled my liege man from the
ground
and carried him from the field.
Finn
screamed Storr's name, lunging upward against
my
restraining hands. I pressed him down against the
pallet,
trying to soothe him with words and wishes alone,
but he
was too far gone in fever and pain. I doubted he
heard
me, or even knew I was there,
The
tiny pavilion was rank with heat and the stench of
blood.
The chirurgeons had done what they could, stitch-
ing his
face together again with silk thread and painting it
with an
herbal paste, but it was angry and swollen and
ugly.
The wound in his thigh they had drained and poul-
ticed.
but one man had gone so far as to say he thought it
must
come off. I had said no instantly, too shocked to
150
Jennifer Rober«on
consider
the amputation, but now that some time had
passed
I understood the necessity of the suggestion.
Did the
leg fill with poison, Finn would die. And I did
not
wish to give him over to such pain.
1 knelt
rigidly at his side, too stiff and frightened to
move
away. The doorflap hung closed to shut out the
gnats
and flies, the air was heavy and stifling. Rowan stood
beside
me in the dimness of the tent, saying nothing, but
I knew
he felt his own measure of shock and apprehen-
sion.
Finn had ever seemed invincible, even to those he
hardly
knew. To those of us who knew him best of all—
"He
is Cheysuli." Rowan meant to reassure me.
I
looked down on the pale, sweating face with its hid-
eous
wound. Even stitched closed, the thing was terrible.
It
snaked across his face from eye to jaw, puckering the
flesh
into a jagged, seeping serpent. Aye, he was Cheysuli.
"They
die,' I said in a ragged tone. "Even Cheysuli
die."
"Less
often then most." He moved forward a little. Like
me, he
was splattered with blood. Rowan and his men had
gotten
free without losing a single life. I had lost most of
my
unit, and now perhaps Finn as well. "My lord—the
wolf is
missing." H
"I
have dispatched men to search. . . ."I said nothing \
more.
Storr's body had not been found upon the field. *:
And I
myself had seen the sword cut into his shoulder.
"Perhaps—once
he is found—"
\s,
"For
a Cheysuli, you know little enough of your cus- ij,
toms."
Abruptly I cursed myself for my curtness. It was v
not my
place to chastise Rowan for what he could not
help. I
glanced up at his stricken face, realized he risked
as much
as I in this endeavor, and tried to apologize.
He
shook his head. "No. I know what you say. You have
the
right of it- If the wolf is already slain—or dies—you
will
lose your liege man."
"I
may lose him anyway." It seemed too much to hope ,,
he
would live. And if I gave the order to take his leg—
"Carillon."
It was Alix. pulling aside the doorflap, and I
stared
in blank astonishment. "They sent for me." She
came
into the tent, dropping the flap behind her, and I
saw the
pallor of her face. "Duncan is not here?"
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 151
"I
have sent for him."
She moved
closer and knelt down at my side, amber
eyes
fixed on Finn. Seeing him again through her vision, I
nearly
turned away. He wore a death's-head in place of his
own.
Alix
put out her hand and touched his bare arm. The
fir-gold
with its wolf-shape was smeared with blood, dulled
by
grime; it seemed a reflection of his death. But she
touched
his arm and then clasped his slack hand, as if she
could
not let him go.
I
watched her face. She knelt at his side and held his
hand so
gently. There was a sudden horrified grief in her
eyes,
as if she realized she would lose the man who had
given
her over to her heritage, and that realization broke
down
the wall between them. Ever had they been at one
another's
throats, cutting with knives made of words and
swords
made of feelings. They were kin and yet more than
that,
so much more, and I think she finally knew it.
She
tipped back her head. I saw the familiar detached
expression
enter her eyes, making them blank and black
and
odd. Suddenly Alix was more Cheysuli than I had
ever
seen her, and I sensed the power move into her soul.
So
easily she summoned it, and then she released a sigh.
"Storr
is alive."
I gaped
at her.
"He
is sorely hurt. Dying." Grief etched lines into her
smooth
face. "You must go. Fetch him back at once, and
perhaps
we can save them both."
"Where?"
"Not
far." Her eyes were on Finn again and still she
clasped
his hand. "Perhaps a league. Northwest. There is
a hill
with a single tree upon it. And a cairn marker." She
shut
her eyes a moment, as if she drew upon the memory
of the
power. "Carillon—go now ... I can reach Duncan
through
Cat."
I stood
up at once, hardly aware of the protests of my
body. I
did not need to tell her to tend him well. I merely
went out
in my bloody, crusted leather-and-mail and or-
dered a
horse at once.
152
Jennifer Roberson
Rowan
came out of the pavilion as I rode up with Storr
clasped
in my arms. I dismounted carefully, loath to give
the
wolf over to anyone else, and went in as Rowan pulled
aside
the doorHap. It was then I was conscious of the
harpsong
and Lachlan's nimble fingers.
He sat
on a campstool at Finn's side. His Lady was set
against
his chest, resting on one knee, and he played.
How he
played. The golden notes, so sweet and pure,
poured
forth from the golden strings. His head was bowed
and his
eyes were shut. His face was rigid with concentra-
tion.
He did not sing, letting the harp do it for him, but I
knew
what magic he sought.
A
healer, he had called himself. And now he tried to
heal.
I knelt
down and set Storr at Finn's side as gently as I
could.
Carefully I placed one limp brown hand into the
stiffened
silver fur. then moved back. The harpsong played
on,
dying away, and at last there was silence again.
Lachlan
shifted a little, as if he awoke "He is—beyond
my aid.
Even Lodhi's, I fear. He is Cheysuli—" He stopped,
for
there was little left to say.
Alix
was in the shadows. She had left Finn's side as I
entered,
making room for Storr, and now she stood in the
center
of the tent. Her braids were coiled and pinned
against
her head but glittered not, for it seemed there was
no
light within the tent. No light at all.
"Duncan
comes," she said softly.
"In
time?"
"I
cannot say."
I
crossed my arms and hugged my chest as if I could
keep
the pain from showing on my face. "Gods—he is my
right
hand! I need him still—"
"We
all need him." Her quiet words reproved me for
my
selfishness, though I doubt she meant them to.
A single
note rang out from the harp as Lachlan shifted
again
on his stool. He silenced it at once, very grave of
(ace.
"How do you fare. Carillon?"
"Well
enough," I said impatiently, and then I realized
he
referred to the blood on my mail. "I am unharmed. It
was
Finn they struck instead." The wolf lay quietly at his
side,
still breathing; so, thank the gods, was Finn.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 153
"My
lord." It was Rowan's tentative voice. "Shall I tell
the
princess the harper is come?"
For a
moment I could not understand him. And then I
knew.
Lachlan had come from Bellam to direct the ex-
change.
Electra for Tourmaline. And now I could hardly
think.
Lachlan's
eyes were on me. "Your sister is well. Caril-
lon.
Somewhat weary of being held in Bellam's command,
but she
has taken no harm. None at all." I was aware of an
odd
note in his voice. "She is well indeed . . . and lovely."
I
looked more sharply at him. But I had no time to
untangle
the subtleties I heard, or the emotions of the
moment.
There were other things more pressing. "Where
is
she?"
"Not
far from here. Bellam sent her out with a Solindish
guard,
and myself. They wait with her. I am to bring the
Princess
Electra, and then escort Tony back," He caught
himself
at once. "The Princess Tourmaline,"
I did
not wish to think of Electra, nor even Tourmaline.
And yet
I must. Impatiently I nodded at Rowan. 'Tell her
Lachlan
is come, and to ready herself. When there is
time,
the exchange will be made." '
Rowan
bowed and left at once, perhaps grateful for a
task.
There is nothing so helpless as a man who must
watch
another die.
The
flap was ripped aside. Duncan stood in the open-
ing,
backlighted by the sunlight, and suddenly the pavil-
ion was
filled with illumination. He was a silhouette against
die
brilliance until he came in, and then I saw how harshly
set was
his face.
"Alix."
She went to him at once. Duncan hardly looked
at me,
for his attention was fixed on Finn. "Harper," he
said,
"I thank you. But this is Cheysuli-done."
Lachlan
took the dismissal with good grace, rising in-
stantly
from the stool and moving out of the way. Duncan
pushed
the campstool away and knelt down with Alix at
one
side. He said nothing at all to me.
"I
have never done this." There was fear in Alix's voice.
The
heavy gold on Duncan's arms glowed in the shad-
ows,
reflecting the light that crept in through the gaps in
the
door-flap. "You have the Old Blood, cheysula. You
154
Jennifer Roberson
need
fear nothing of this. It is the earth magic we seek.
You
need only ask it to come, and it will use you to heal
Finn.
And Storr." Briefly he cupped her head in one hand
and
pressed it against one shoulder. "I promise you—it
will be
well done."
She
said nothing more. Duncan released her and set
one
hand against the wound in the wolfs side. Of the two,
Storr
seemed to have a more fragile hold on life. And if he
died
before they healed Finn, the thing was futile indeed.
"Lose
yourself," Duncan said. "Go down into the earth
until
there is nothing but the currents of life. You will
know
it—be not afraid. Tap it, Alix, and let it flow through
you
into the wolf. He is lir. He will know what we do for
him."
I
watched the changes in Alix's face. At first she was
hesitant,
following Duncan's lead, and then I saw the first
indication
of her own power. She knelt beside the wolf
with
her hands clasped lightly in her lap, eyes gone in-
ward to
face her soul. For a moment her body wavered
and
then it straightened. I saw the concentration and the
wonder
as she slipped from this world into another.
I
nearly touched her then. I took two steps, intending to
catch
her in my arms, but the knowledge prevented me.
What
she did was beyond my ken—what she was, as
well—but
I knew Duncan. I knew he would never risk
her.
Not even to save his brother.
A tiny
sound escaped her mouth, and then she was
gone.
Her body remained, so still and rigid, but Alix was
gone.
Somewhere far beneath the earth she roamed, seek-
ing the
healing arts her race claimed as their own, and
Duncan
was with her. I had only to look at his face and
see the
familiar detachment. It was profoundly moving,
somehow,
that a man and woman could link so deeply on a
level
other than sexual, and all to save a wolf.
Cheysuli
magic goes into the earth, taps the strength of
the
ancient gods and lends it to the one who requires the
healing.
The sword wound in Storr's shoulder remained,
but it
lacked the unhealthy stink and appearance. His
breathing
steadied. His eyes cleared. He moved, twitch-
ing
once all over, and came into the world again.
Alix
sagged. Duncan caught her and clasped her against
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 155
his
chest, much as Lachlan clasped his Lady. I saw the
fear
and weariness etched in his face and wondered if he
had
lied to her, saying it was safe when such magic took a
part of
the soul away. Perhaps, for Finn, he would risk
Alix.
It made
me profoundly angry. And then the anger died,
for I
needed them both. I needed them all.
"No
more," Duncan told her. "Storr is well enough. But
now it
is my task to heal Finn."
"Not
alone!" She sat up, pulling out of his arms. "Do
you
think I will give you over to that when I have felt it
myself?
No, Duncan—call the others. Link with them all.
There
is no need for you to do this alone."
"There
is," he told her gently. "He is my rujho. And I
am not
alone . . . there is Cai." He smiled. "My thanks for
your
concern, but it is unwisely spent. Save it for Finn
when he
wakens."
And
then he slipped away before she could protest,
sliding
out of our hands like oil. The shell we knew as
Duncan
remained, but he was gone. Whatever made him
Duncan
had gone to another place, and this time he was
gone
deeper and longer, so deep and so long I thought we
had
lost them both.
"Alix!"
I knew she meant to follow. I bent to pull her
from
the ground.
She
turned an angry face to me. "Do not keep me from
him,
Carillon! Do you think I could bear to lose him like
this?
Even for Finn—"
"You
risked yourself for me, once, when I did not wish
you
to," I told her harshly. "When I lay chained in Atvian
iron,
and you came as a falcon to free me. Do you think I
would
have given you permission for such a thing?" I
shook
my head. "What Duncan does is for him to do. Did
he want
you with him, he would have asked it."
She
wrenched her head around to stare again at her
husband.
He knelt by Finn's side, there and yet not. And
Finn,
so weak upon the pallet, did not move.
"I
could not make a choice," she said in a wavering
voice.
"I ever thought I would say Duncan before anyone
else,
but I could not. I want them both. ..."
"I
know. So do I. But it is for the gods to decide."
156
Jennifer Robarson
"Has
Lachlan turned you priest?" She smiled a little,
bitterly.
"I never knew you to prate of such things."
"I
do not prate of them now. Call it tahlmorra, if you
will."
I smiled and made the gesture. "What is there for
us to
do but wait and see what will happen?"
Duncan
said something then. It was garbled, tangled up
in the
Old Tongue and his weariness, but it was a sound.
He
moved as if to rise, could not, and fell back to knock
his
head against the campstool. Lachlan set down his Lady
and
knelt at once to give him support, even as Alix
wrenched
herself free of me.
"You
fool," Finn said weakly. "It is not for a man to do
alone."
I
stared at him, unsure I had heard him correctly. But it
was
Finn, white as death, and I saw tears in his eyes.
Duncan
pushed himself upward with Lachlan's help,
He sat
half-dazed, legs sprawled, as if he could not come
back to
himself. Even as Alix knelt down before him he
seemed
not to know her.
I saw
Finn push an elbow against the pallet to lever
himself
up. And again it was myself who pushed him
down.
"Lie you still."
"Duncan—"
he said thickly, protesting ineffectively.
"Come
back!" Alix shouted. "By the gods, you fool—"
And she
struck Duncan hard across the face with the flat
of her
hand.
It set
up brilliant color in his face, turning his cheek
dark
red. But sense was in his eyes again. He looked at
Alix,
at me, at Finn, and then he was Duncan again.
"Gods,"
he said weakly. "I did not know—"
"No,"
Finn agreed, with my hand upon his shoulder in
case he
moved again. "You did not, you fool. Did you
think I
would wish to trade your life for mine?" He gri-
maced
then, and instantly hissed as the expression pulled
the
stitches against his swollen flesh. "By the gods—that
Atvian—"
"—is
slain," I finished. "Did you think 1 would let him
finish
what he had begun?"
Finn's
hand was in Storr's matted pelt. His eyes were
shut in
a gray-white face. I thought he had lost conscious-
ness
again.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA
157
"Rujfw,"
Duncan said, "there is something you must
do."
"Later,"
Finn said through the taut line of his mouth.
"Now."
Duncan smiled. "You owe thanks to Carillon."
I
looked at him in surprise. Finn's eyes opened a slit,
dilated
black and glittering with the remnants of his fever.
"It
was you who—"
"Aye,"
Duncan interrupted, "but it was Carillon who
carried
you from the field. Else you would still be there,
and
dead."
I knew
what he did. Finn has never been one for
showing
gratitude, though often enough I knew he felt it.
I
myself had trouble saying what I meant; for Finn it was
harder
still. I thought of protesting, then let Duncan have
his
way. He it was who had had the raising of Finn, not
me.
Finn
sighed. His eyes closed again. "He should have
left
me. He should not have risked himself."
"No,"
Duncan agreed, "but he did. And now there are
the
words to be said."
I
thought Finn was asleep. He did not move, did not
indicate
he heard. But he had. And at last he looked at me
from
beneath his heavy lids. "Leijhana tu'sai," he muttered.
I
blinked. And then I laughed. "In the Old Tongue, I
would
not know if you thanked me or cursed me."
"He
thanked you," Duncan said gravely. And then,
"Leijhana
tu'sai. Carillon."
I
realized I was the only one standing. Even Lachlan
knelt,
so close to Duncan, with his Lady gleaming on the
table.
It was an odd sensation to have such people in such
postures,
and to know one day it would be expected.
I
looked at Lachlan. "We have an exchange to conduct."
He rose
and gathered his harp. But before we left the
tent I
glanced back at Finn.
He
slept. "Leijhana tu'sai," I said, "for living instead of
dying."
FOURTEEN
I left
the tent, my legs trembling with the aftermath of
fatigue
and tension. I stopped just outside, letting the
doorfiap
fall shut behind me. For a moment I could only
stare
blankly at the few pavilions scattered across the turf
in
apparent confusion, lacking all order. I had taken the
idea
from the Cheysuli, although here we lacked the trees
to hide
ourselves adequately, We had camped on a grassy
plain,
leaving the forests behind as we moved closer to
Mujhara;
closer to Bellam and my throne. The encamp-
ment
was little more than a scattering of men with cookfires
here
and there. But it had served us well.
I
sucked in a deep breath, as deep as I could make it,
filling
my lungs with air. The stink of the army camp faded
to
nonexistence as I thought how close I had come to
losing
Finn. I knew perfectly well that had my chirurgeons
pressed
to take his leg. he would have found another way
to die.
A maimed warrior, he had told me once, was of
little
use to his clan. In Finn's case, it was worse; he
would
view himself as useless to his Mujhar as well, and
that
would pervert his tahlmorra and his very reason for
living.
Lachlan
slipped through the entrance. I heard the hiss
of
fabric as he moved, scraping one hand across the woven
material.
Few of us had tents to claim as shelter, I, being
Mujhar,
had the largest, but it was not so much. This one
served
as a temporary infirmary; the chirurgeons had kept
I 158 I
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 159
all
others free of it when I had brought Finn. He would be
nursed
in private.
Lachlan's
arms were empty of harp for once. "Finn will
live.
You need fear no more."
"Have
you consulted Lodhi?"
He made
no indication my comment bothered him.
"There
is no need for that. I asked His help before, but
there
was nothing in Finn I could touch. He was too far
from
this world, too lost in his pain and Storr's absence.
But
when Duncan and Alix worked their magic—" He
broke
off, smiling a little. "There is much I cannot under-
stand.
And until I know more of the Cheysuli, I cannot
hope to
make songs of them."
"Most
men cannot understand the Cheysuli," I told
him.
"As for songs—I doubt they would wish it. There are
legends
enough about them." I stared at the tiny field
pavilion
farthest from where we stood. It was guarded by
six
soldiers, "How many men are with my sister?"
"Bellam
sent a guard of fifty with her." His face was
grave.
"My lord—you do not intend to go yourself—"
"She
is my sister." I set off toward the saffron-colored
tent as
Lachlan fell in beside me. "I owe Tourmaline what
honor
there is, and of late there is little. I will send no
man in
my place."
"Surely
you will take some of your army with you."
I
smiled, wondering if he sought the information for
simple
curiosity's sake. "No."
"Carillon—"
"If
it is a trap, the teeth will close on air." I signaled to
the
soldiers guarding Electra's tent. They stepped away at
once,
affording me privacy, though they remained within
earshot.
"You would know, perhaps, what Bellam intends
for
me."
Lachlan
smiled as I paused before the tent. "He did not
divulge
his plans to me, unfortunately. He welcomed me
as a
harper, not a confidant I cannot say he sends men to
take
you, but I think it very likely." His eyes went past
me to
study the scattered encampment "You would do
well to
take a substantial escort."
"No
doubt," I said blandly.
I
turned and pulled aside the door-flap, but did not go in
160
Jennifer Roberson
at
once. I could not. The sunlight was brilliant as it slashed
into
the interior, illuminating the woman who sat within.
She wore
a dark brown gown laced with copper silk at
throat
and cuffs. A supple leather belt, clay-bleached to a
soft
yellow, bound her slender waist, fastened with a
copper
buckle. The gown was from Alix, fashioned by her
own
hands, given freely to replace the soiled gray velvet
Electra
had worn the day Finn caught her. The new one
fit
well enough, for they were of a like size, though noth-
ing
like in coloring.
Electra
waited quietly, seated on a three-legged camp-
stool
with the folds of her dark skirts foaming around her
feet
like waves upon a shore. She sat erect, shoulders put
back,
so that the slender, elegant line of her neck met the
jaw to
emphasize the purity of her bones. She had braided
her
hair into a single loose-woven rope that hung over one
shoulder
to spill into her lap, coiled like a serpent. The
smooth,
pale brow cried out for a circlet of beaten gold,
or—perhaps
better—silver, to highlight the long-lidded,
magnificent
eyes.
I knew
Rowan had been here to tell her. She waited,
hands
clasped beneath the rope of shining hair. Silently
she sat
upon the stool as the sunlight passed through the
weave
of the saffron-colored tent to paint her with a pas-
tel,
ocherous glow. She wore the twisted gold at her
throat,
and it shone.
By the
gods, so did she. And I wanted so much to lose
myself
in it. In her. Gods, but what a woman can do to a
man—
Even
the enemy.
Forty
years, this woman claimed. And I denied it, as
ever.
I put
out my hand to raise her from the stool. Her
fingers
were still, making no promises, though I had had
that of
her, as well.
"You
have been in battle." Her voice was cool as ever,
with
its soft, Solindish cadence.
1 had
not put off the blood-crusted leather-and-mail. My
hair,
dried now from the sweat of my exertions, hung
stiffly
against my shoulders. No doubt I smelled of it as
well,
but I wasted no time on the niceties of such things
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 161
while I
had a war to fight. "Come, lady—your father
waits."
"Did
you win your battle?" She allowed me to lead her
from
the tent, making no move to remove her hand from
my
grasp.
I shook
my head. Rowan stood outside with four horses.
I saw
no good in gaming with her, denying my loss to
gain a
satisfaction that would not last. I had lost, but
Bellam
still lacked his pretender-prince.
Electra
paused as she saw the empty saddles. Four
horses
only, and no accompaniment. "Where are my
women?"
"I
sent them back long ago." I smiled at her. "Only you
were
brought here. But then you were compromised the
moment
Finn took you captive. What should it matter,
Electra—you
are an Ihlini's light woman.*'
Color
came into her face. I had not expected to see it,
from
her. She was a young woman suddenly, lacking the
: wisdom
of experience, and yet I saw the glint of knowl-
edge in
her eyes. I wondered, uneasily, ifTynstar's arts
had
given her youth in place of age. "Does it grate within
your
soul?" she asked. "Does it make you wish to put your
stamp
upon me, to erase Tynstar's?" She smiled, a mere
curving
of the perfect mouth. "You fool. You could not
begin
to take his place."
"You
will have the opportunity to know." I boosted her
into
the saddle without further comment, and felt the
rigid
unyielding in her body. I had cut her, somehow: but
then
she had cut me often enough. I nodded at Rowan.
"Send
for Zared, at once."
When
Zared came he bowed respectfully. His gray-red
hair
was still cropped closely against his head, as was
common
in soldiery. I had not taken up the custom be-
cause
it had been easy enough, in Caledon, to braid it and
bind it
with the scarlet yarn of a mercenary. It had been
what I
was.
"See
to it the camp is dispersed," I told him. "I want no
men
here to receive Bellam's welcome, for you may be
quite
certain his daughter will tell him where we have
been."
I did not look at her, having no need; I could sense
162
Jennifer Roberson
her
rigid attention. "When I am done with this exchange,
I will
find the army."
"Aye,
my lord Mujhar." He bowed, all solemn servi-
tude,
and stepped away to follow orders.
Lachlan
mounted next to me, and Rowan next to Electra.
She was
hemmed in on both sides, closely kept. It would
not do
to lose her now, before I claimed my sister.
Electra
looked at us all. "No army to escort you?"
"Need
I one?" I smiled. I glanced to Lachlan and saw
his
gesture. Westward, toward Mujhara, and Tourmaline,
my
sister.
The sun
beat down upon our heads as we waited on the
hilltop.
We silhouetted ourselves against the horizon, a
thing I
had not done in the long months of bitter war, but
now I
did it willingly. I wanted Tourmaline to see us
before
the exchange was made, so she would know it was
us in
truth, and not some trick of Bellam's.
The
plains stretched below us. No more spring; it was
nearly
midsummer. The sun had baked the green from the
land,
turning it yellow and ocher and amber, and the dust
rose
from the hooves of more than fifty horses to hang in
the air
like smoke. Through the haze I could see the men,
in
Sotindish colors, glittering with ringmail and swords. A
troop
of men knotted about a single woman like a fist
around
a hilt.
I could
not see Tourmaline well. But from time to time
I saw
the dappled gray horse and the slender, upright
figure,
wearing no armor but a gown instead, an indigo-
colored
gown and no traveling mantle to keep the dust off
her
clothing; Even her head was bared, and her tawny-
dark
hair hung down freely to tangle across the horse's
gray
rump.
I heard
Lachlan's quiet, indrawn breath. I heard my
own as
well, but it lacked the note I heard in his. I
glanced
at him a moment, seeing how avidly he watched
the
troop approach; how intent were his eyes upon the
woman.
Not my sister, in that instant, but a woman.
I knew
then. beyond any doubt at all, that Lachlan plot-
ted no
treachery, no betrayal. I was certain of it, in that
instant.
To do so would endanger Tourmaline, and that he
163
THE
SONG OF HOMANA
would
never countenance. I had only to look at his face as
he
looked for hers, and at last I had my answer.
If for
nothing else, he would be loyal to me out of
loyalty
to my sister. And what a weapon he gave me, did I
find
the need to use it.
The
SoUndish troop stopped at the foot of the hill. The
sun
glittered off their trappings; off their ringmail; off their
intention.
Fifty men bent on taking Bellam's enemy. And
that
enemy with only a token escort at his side.
; It was warm on the hilltop. The air was
quite still; the
'^
silence was broken only by the jingle and clash of horse
^
trappings and the buzzing hum of an occasional insect.
|| The
dust was dry in my mouth and nose; I tasted the flat,
y"
bitter salt of summer-swept plains. Come fall, turf would
H
spring up beneath a gentler sun. Come winter, snow
I-
would blanket the world. Come spring, I should be King.
^ If not before.
^ I looked through the clustered troop to the
treasure
^ they
guarded so closely. Tourmaline, a princess of Homana.
^ The
woman Bellam had threatened to wed; the woman he
^;
could not because I had taken his daughter. A princess for
f. a
princess.
?a She sat quite still upon her horse, her
hands holding the
^
reins. But she was not entirely free. A soldier flanked her
:s
directly on either side; a lead-rope tied her horse to a man
^ who
rode before her. They meant not to lose her so easily,
t- did
I give them cause to fight.
^ Lachlan's breath was audible in his
throat. It rasped,
sliding
through the constriction slowly, so that Rowan
''"•
glanced at him. There was curiosity in Rowan's eyes;
.
knowledge in Electra's. She would know. She would know
what he
felt; a man in love with a woman, looking at her
with
desire.
"Well?"
I said at last. "Are we to confront one another
in
silence all day, or is there a thing I must do?"
Lachlan
wrenched his attention back to me. "I am to
escort
Electra down, and bring Torry back with me."
;, "Do it"
• He rubbed at the flesh beneath the silver
circlet on his
^ brow.
Nothing more?"
|f "Am I to think you seek to warn me of
some treachery?"
164
Jennifer Roberson
I
smiled. "Do what you have said must be done. I want
my
sister back."
His jaw
tightened. Briefly he glanced at Electra. She sat
very
still on her horse, like Torry, hardly moving her
hands
upon the reins. But I saw her fingers tense and the
subtle
shift other weight. She meant to run, with Tourma-
line
still held.
I
reached out and caugh't one of her wrists, clamping
down
tightly. "No," I said calmly. "Do you forget 1 have a
bow?"
Her
eyes went to the Cheysuli bow at once. And my
quiver,
freshly filled. "You might slay some," she con-
ceded
coolly, "but I doubt you could slay them all before
they
took you."
"No,"
I agreed, "but have I spoken of slaying men?"
She
understood at once. I saw the color move into her
face
swiftly, setting flags of anger into her cheeks. The
somnolent,
ice-gray eyes were blackened with frustration,
but
only for a moment. She smiled. "Slay me, then, and
you
purchase your fate from Tynstar."
"I
do not doubt I have done so already," I told her
calmly.
"I think my sister is worth dying for. But are
you?"
"So
long as you do the dying." She did not look at me.
She
looked instead at the troop of men her father had sent
to
fetch her.
1
laughed and released her wrist. "Go, then, Electra.
Tell
your father—and your sorcerer—whatever you wish
to say.
But remember that I will have you as my wife."
Loathing
showed on her face. "You will have nothing,
pretender-prince.
Tynstar will see to that."
"My
lord." Rowan sounded uneasy. "They are fifty to
our
three."
"So
they are." I nodded to Lachlan. "Take her down,
and
bring my sister back."
Lachlan
put out his hand to grasp Electra's rein. But
she did
not let him. She pulled the horse away and set
him to
walking down the hill. Lachlan fell in close beside
her
almost at once, and I watched as they rode toward the
troop.
I unstrapped the bow so the captain could see it,
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 165
though
I did not intend to use it. I did not think I would
need
it.
Electra
was swallowed almost at once by the Solindish
soldiers
and I was left without a target. Unless one counted
the
captain and his men. But Electra had the right of it; I
could
not slay them all. Even with Rowan at my side.
He
shifted in his saddle. "My lord—"
"Be
patient," I chided gently.
Lachlan
waited at the edge of the hard-eyed throng.
The sun
on his dyed hair treated it poorly, turning it dull
and
lifeless. Only the glint of silver on his brow lent him
authenticity,
and that only won through his harp. I won-
dered
again what made him the man he was, and how it
was to
be a priest.
The
troop parted. Tourmaline came forward on her
dappled
gray horse. Like Electra, she did not hasten, but
I saw
the tension in her body. Doubtless she feared the
trade
would not be finished.
Well,
it was not finished yet.
Lachlan
put out his hand to her. Briefly she held it
tightly
with her own, as if thanking him for his care; I
watched
in bemusement. It was all well and good for a
harper
to love a princess—that happened with great regu-
larity,
to judge by the content of their lays—but I was not
certain
Tourmaline's apparent regard for him pleased me
one
whit. He was a harper, and she was meant for a
prince.
"They
come," Rowan said softly, more to himself than
to me.
They
came. Side by side, no longer clasping hands,
their
shoulders rigid against the Solindish guard. Dust
rose up
from the ground and enyeloped them in a veil;
Tourmaline's
eyes were squinted against it as she came yet
closer
to me. And then she was laughing, calling out my
name,
and kicked her horse into a run.
I did
not dismount, for all it would have been an easier
greeting
on the ground. She set her horse into mine, but
gently,
and our knees knocked as she reached out to hug
my
neck. It was awkward on horseback, but we got it
done.
And then, as she opened her mouth to speak again,
I waved
her into silence.
166
Jennifer Roberson
"My
lord!" It was Rowan as Lachlan rode up. "They
come!"
And so
they did- Almost all fifty of them, charging up
the
hill, to swallow us within their ringmailed fist.
I
smiled grimly, unsurprised. I saw the frustrated, im-
potent
anger on Rowan's young face as he put his hand to
his
sword; he did not draw it because he saw no reason to.
We were
too soundly caught.
Lachlan
said something in his Ellasian tongue. A curse,
I
thought, not recognizing it, or perhaps a plea to his
All-Father;
whatever it was, it sounded like he meant to
chew up
their bones, did they bother to come close enough.
Tourmaline,
white-faced, shot me a glance that said she
understood
the brevity of our greeting. What fear I saw in
her
face was not for herself, but for me. Her brother, who
had
been sought for six long years, was home at last. And
caught.
The
Solindish captain wore a mail coif that hid all of his
head
but his face. A wide, hard, battle-scan-ed face, with
brown
eyes that had undoubtedly seen everything in war,
and yet
now expressed a bafflement born of disbelief. His
Homanan
was twisted by his Solindish accent, but I un-
derstood
him well enough. "Surely a boy would know
better."
My
horse stomped beneath me, jarring my spine against
the
saddle. I did not answer.
"Carillon
of Homana?" the captain asked, as if he could
not
believe he had caught the proper quarry.
"The
Mujhar," I agreed calmly. "Do you mean to take
us to
the usurper on his stolen throne?"
Tourmaline
drew in a sudden breath. Lachlan moved
his
horse closer to my sister's, as if to guard her. It was for
me to
do, not him, but I was occupied at the moment.
"Your
sword." the captain said. "There is no hope of
escape
for you."
"No?"
I smiled. "My sword is my own to keep."
The
first shadow passed over my face, moving on quickly
to blot
out the captain's face- Then another. Yet a third,
and the
ground was suddenly blotched with moving dark-
ness,
as if a plague of shadows had come to settle across us
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 167
all.
All men, save me, looked up, and saw the circling
birds.
There
were dozens of them. Hawks and eagles and
falcons,
owls and ravens and more. With wings outstretched
and
talons folded, they danced upon the air. Up, then
down,
then around and around bent upon some goal.
Rowan
began to laugh. "My lord," he said at last, "for-
give me
for doubting you."
They
stooped. They screamed. They slashed by the
enemy
and slapped wings against staring eyes, until the
Solindish
soldiers cried out in fear and pain. No man was
slain;
no man was even wounded, but their skill and pride
and
dignity was completely shredded. There are more
ways of
overcoming the enemy than merely by slaying
him.
With the Cheysuli, half the defeat comes from know-
ing
what they are.
Half
the birds broke away. They dipped to the ground
with a
rustle of outspread wings; the soughing of feathers
folded
away. They were birds no more, but men instead,
as the
shapechange swallowed them all.
I heard
the outcries of utter panic from the Solindish
troop.
One or two retched and vomited against the earth,
too
frightened to hold it in. Some dealt with horses threat-
ening
to bolt. Others sat perfectly still in their saddles,
staring,
with no hands upon their weapons.
I
smiled. With Rowan, my sister and Lachlan at my
back, I
broke passage through the enemy to the freedom
outside
the shattered fist. And when we were free again,
guarded
against attack by more than half a hundred war-
riors,
I nodded. "Put them to death," I said. "All but five.
They
may escort the lady to her father."
"My
lord?" It was Rowan, questioning the need for
sparing
even five Solindishmen to fight us another day.
"I
want Bellam to know," I said. "Let him choke upon
what I
have done."
"Do
you leave him his daughter?" Lachlan asked.
I
looked past the silent troop to the five men who
guarded
Electra so closely at the bottom of the hill. I saw
the
tension in their bodies. Hands rested on their swords.
Electra,
too distant for me to make out her expression, sat
168
Jennifer Roberson
equally
still. No doubt she thought I would take her back,
No
doubt she knew I wanted to.
"I
leave him his daughter," I said at last. "Let her spend
her
time in Homana-Mujhar wondering when I will come."
I
looked at the Cheysuli warriors surrounding the cap-
tured
Solindish. Horses trembled, so did men. I thought it
a
fitting end
And
then I saw Duncan. He stood to one side with Cai
upon
his shoulder. The great hawk sat quietly, a mass of
gold
and brown next to the blackness of Duncan's hair.
The
clan-leader seemed to support him effortlessly, though
I could
imagine the weight of the bird. In that instant I
thought
back to the time, six years before, when I had
been
imprisoned by the Cheysuli; when Finn had held
and
taunted me. Duncan it was who had ruled, as the
Cheysuli
are ruled, by numbers instead of a single man.
But
there was no doubting who held the power in the
clan.
There was no doubting it now.
Cai
lifted and returned to the air, stirring the fine veil of
dust
with his great outspread wings, and soared into the
heavens
along with the other lir. The shadows continued
to
blotch the land and the fear continued to live.
Duncan
was unsmiling. "Shall I begin with the captain?"
I
released a breath and nodded. Then I looked at Tour-
maline.
"It is time we found the camp."
Her
eyes, blue as my own, were wide and staring as she
looked
upon the Cheysuli. I recalled she had seen none
before,
though knew of them as I had for so many years.
To her,
no doubt, they were barbaric. To her, no doubt,
they
were worse than beasts.
She
said nothing, knowing better than to speak freely
before
the enemy, but I did not doubt she would when we
were
free.
"Come."
I said gently, and turned her horse away.
FIFTEEN
The
wind came up at sunset as we rode into the newly
settled
encampment. It blew dust in our faces and tangled
Tourmaline's
hair, until she caught it in one hand and
made it
tame, winding it through her fingers. Lachlan
muttered
something in his Ellasian tongue—it had to do
with
Lodhi, as usual—and Rowan blinked against the grit.
As for
me, I relished it. The wind would blow away the
taste
of blood and loss. For I had led my men into death,
and I
would not forget.
"A
storm," Tony said. "Rain, do you think?"
The
cookfires, which pocked the open landscape, whipped
and
strained against the wind. I smelled the aroma of
roasting
meat and it set my mouth to watering. I could not
recall
when last I had eaten—surely it was this morning?
"No
rain," I said finally "Only wind, and the smell of
death."
Tourmaline
looked at me sharply. I saw a question
forming
in her face, but she asked nothing. She glanced
instead
at Lachlan, seeking some assurance, then turned
her
attention to her horse as I led them to my pavilion
when I
had asked directions of a passing soldier.
I
jumped from my horse by the door-flap and turned to
Terry's
mount- She slid out of the saddle and into my
arms,
and I felt the weariness in her body. Like me, she
was in
need of rest, sustenance and sleep. I thought to set
her
down and take her inside, to get her properly settled,
I 169 I
170
Jennifer Rotwson
but she
wrapped her arms around my neck and hugged
with
all her strength. There were tears, warm against my
flesh,
and I knew she cried for us both.
"Forgive
me," she whispered into my sweat-dried hair.
"I
prayed all these years that the gods would let you live,
even as
Bellam sought you, yet when you come I give you
thoughtless
welcome. I thought you grown harsh and cruel
when
you ordered them slain, but I—of all—should know
better.
Was not our father a soldier?"
"Torry—"
She
lifted her head and looked me in the face, for while
I held
her she was nearly as tall as I. "Lachlan told me
what
odds you face, and how well you face them; it is not
my
place to reprove you for your methods. Harsh times
require
harsh measures, and the gods know war is not for
gentle
men."
"You
have not reproved me. As for gentle, no. There is
little
room in me for that." I set her on her feet and
reached
out to tousle her hair. It was an old game be-
tween
us, and I saw she recalled it well. Ever the older
sister
telling the youngest child what to do. Except the
boy had
grown up at last.
"In
my heart," she said softly, "I reproved. Ifis my fault
for
having expectations. I thought, when you came, it
would
be the old Carillon, the one I used to tease. But I
find it
is the new one, and a different man who faces me."
There
were strangers among us, though I knew their
names,
and we could not say precisely what we wished.
But for
the moment it was enough to see her again and
know
her safe, as she had not been safe for years- So I said
something
of what I felt. "I am sorry. I should have come
home
sooner. Somehow, I should have come—"
She put
her hand across my mouth. "No. Say nothing.
You are
come home now." She smiled the brilliant smile
of our
mother and the lines of tension were washed from
her
face. I had forgotten the beauty of my sister, and I saw
why
Lachlan was smitten.
The
wind cracked the folds of the pavilion beside us.
Lachlan's
horse stepped aside uneasily; he checked it with
a
tightened rein. I looked up at Rowan and squinted against
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 171
the
dust. "See you she has food and wine. It will be your
task to
make certain she is well."
"My
lord," he said, "your pavilion?"
"Hers,
now." I smiled. "I have learned these past years
what it
is to make my bed upon the ground."
Lachlan,
laughing, demurred at once. "Are you forget-
ting
harpers are given their own sort of honor? Pavilions
are
part of it. Does it not ruffle your Mujhar's pride and
,-„
dignity, you may share mine with me."
"It
ruffles nothing," I retorted. "And will not, so long as
^ you
refrain from singing—or praying—in your sleep." I
-
looked at Torry again. "This is an army encampment, rude
-.. and
rough. There is little refinement here. I must ask you
;.' to
forgive what you hear."
; She laughed aloud with the pleasure other
retort. "Well
^
enough, I shall forgive your men. But never you."
* The wind blew a lock of her unbound hair
against my
,-.
chest. It caught on the links of my ringmail, snagging, and
\'!
sought to free it without tearing the strands. I felt the
^ clean
silk against my callused, blood-stained hands, and
{"'.
knew again what manner of man her brother had become.
It was
no wonder she had reproved me, even in her
^
heart.
I
pulled aside the doorflap and gestured her within-
¥
"Rowan will bring food and wine, and anything else you
^ might
require. Sleep, if you will. There will be time for
Stelking
later."
, I saw the questions in her eyes and her
instant silencing
^ of
them. She nodded and ducked inside, and I saw the
^ glow
of a lighted candle. She would not be left in darkness.
H, I
glanced up at Lachlan, who watched her disappear as
* the
flap dropped down behind her. Inwardly I smiled,
^knowing
the edge of the weapon; outwardly I was casual.
;b"'"No
doubt she would welcome company."
^'J His
face colored, then blanched. He had not realized
H'how
easily I saw his feelings. His hands touched his silver
||,Circlet
as if to gather strength. "No doubt. But yours, I
11|'think,
not mine."
^ I let
it go, knowing I might use it later to bind him to
|a;Bae.
Through Tourmaline, at least, I could know the har-
L'per's
intentions. "Come, then. We must tell Finn what
17Z
Jennifer Roberson
has
happened. It was his plan, not mine, and he should
know.'
Rowan
started. "His?"
I
nodded. "We made it in Caledon one night, or some-
thing
like it, when we had nothing better to do." I smiled
with
the memory. "It was a summer night, like this one,
but
lacking the wind, and warmer. The evening before a
battle.
We spoke of plots and plans and strategies, and
how it
would be a fitting trick to set loose in Bellam's
midst."
My smile faded. "But that night we did not know
if we
would one day come home again, or if there would
be so
many Cheysuli."
Again
the pavilion fabric cracked. Lachlan stepped down
from
his horse, hair tamed by the circlet. "But there are
Cheysuli,
my lord . . . and you have come home again."
I
looked at him and saw again the dull brown hair. I
thought
of him in love with my sister. "Will you harp for
me
tonight?" I asked. "Give me The Song of Homana."
It was
the harp I saw first as I entered the infirmary
tent;
Lachlan's Lady, with her brilliant green eye. She
stared
at us both as the doorflap fell behind us, and I
thought,
oddly, the harp was like a lir. That Lachlan
served
her I did not wonder, that she served Lachlan, I
knew. I
had felt the magic before when they wove it
between
them,
"Ah,"
said Finn, "he has not forgotten me. The student
recalls
the master."
I
grinned, relieved past measure to hear his voice so full
of
life. Yet even as I looked at him I could not help but
wince,
at least inwardly; the stitches held his face to-
gether,
but the scar would last forever. It would be that
men—and
women—saw before anything else.
Lachlan
slipped past me to gather his harp into his
arms.
He had spent much of the day without his Lady; I
wondered
if it hurt.
As for
Finn, he did not smile. But, knowing him, I saw
the
hint of pleasure in his eyes and, I thought, relief. Had
he
thought I would not come back?
"Have
they all left you alone?" I hooked the stool over
with a
foot.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 173
' '
: v
Finn's
laugh was a breath of sound. He was weak still, I
could
see it. But I thought he would survive. The magic
had
given him that much, even had it not made him fully
well.
"Alix has spent all day with me. Only now have I
managed
to send her away." He shifted slightly on the
pallet,
as if the leg yet pained him. "I told her I needed
time
alone, and I do. There is no need to coddle me."
"Alix
would hardly coddle you." I looked more closely
at his
face and saw the sallow tinge. It was better than the
ashy hue
of death, but he lacked the proper color. There
was no
fever, that much I could tell, but he was obviously
weary.
"Is there aught I might bring you?"
"A
Mujhar, serving me?" This time there was a smile,
.though
it was very faint. "No, I am well, Alix has done
more
than enough. More than I ever expected."
"Perhaps
it is her way of compensation," I suggested
without
a smile.
"Perhaps,"
he agreed in his ironic manner. "She knows
what
she lacks. 1 have impressed it upon her on several
occasions."
Lachlan,
leaning against the table, struck a note on his
harp.
"I could put it to song. How you wooed and lost a
maiden;
how the brother was the victor."
Finn
cast him a scowl, though it lacked its usual depth.
"Harper,
you would do well to think of your own women,
and
leave mine to me."
Lachlan's
smile froze, then grew distracted, and I knew
he
thought of Torry. His fingertips brushed the glowing
golden
strings and I heard the breath of sound. It con-
jured
up the grace and elegance in a woman, and I thought
at once
of Electra. No doubt he thought of my sister;
Finn—no
doubt Finn remembered Alix. Alix before she
knew
Duncan.
"The
exchange was accomplished," I said quietly. "My
sister
is safe, and Electra returns to her father."
"I
thought you might keep her."
I
scowled at the ironic tone. "No. I have set my mind to
winning
the throne before I win the woman. Did it come
to a
choice, you know which one I would take."
Finn's
brows lifted a bit. "There have been times, of
late, I
have not been so sure." He shifted a little, restless,
174
Jennifer Roberson
and I
saw the twinge cross his face. Storr, lying next to
him,
settled his body closer. One brown arm with its
weight
of gold cradled the wolf as if Finn feared to release
him.
"Will
you be well?" I asked it more sharply than I
intended.
"Has the earth magic not healed you fully?"
He
gestured briefly with a limp hand. "It does not
always
restore a body completely, it merely aids the heal-
ing. It
is dependent on the injury." For a moment tenta-
tive
fingers touched the bandage binding the thigh. "I am
well
enough—for a man who should have died."
I took
a deep breath and felt the slow revolution of the
shadows
in the tent. I was so tired . , . "The plan we
made
was ideal. Duncan brought all the winged lir. The
Solindish
stood no chance."
"No,"
he agreed. "It is why I suggested it."
Lachlan
laughed softly. "Does Carillon do nothing with-
out
your suggestion?"
For a
moment Finn's expression was grim, for a face
that
was mostly ruined by swelling and seeping stitches.
"There
are times he does too much."
"As
when I decide whom to wed." I smiled at Lachlan's
expression
of surprise. "The lady who goes to her father
will
become the Queen of Homana."
His
eyebrows rose beneath the circlet. "Bellam might
not be
willing."
"Bellam
will be dead when I wed his daughter." I rolled
my head
to and fro, popping the knots in my neck. My
back
was tense as wefl, but there was no help for that. I
would
have to work it out with proper sleep and exercise;
the
former I would not see, no doubt, but the latter was a
certainty.
"I
had heard she was offered to High King Rhodri's
heir."
Lachlan's fingers brought a singing cadence from
the
strings.
I
shrugged. "Perhaps Bellam offered, but I have heard
nothing
of Rhodri's answer. You, being Ellasian and his
subject,
might know better,"
Lachlan's
mouth twisted thoughtfully. "I doubt he would
stand
in your way. What I know of Cuinn I have learned
mostly
first-hand, from being hosted in the castle. The
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 175
High
Prince is an idle sort. though friendly enough, with
no mind
to marriage so soon." He shrugged. "Rhodri has
strength
of his own; I doubt he will demand his heir's
marriage
as yet. But then who am I to know the minds of
tangs?'
He grinned at me. "There is only you, my lord,
and
what do I know of you?"
"You
know I have a sister."
His
face went very still. "Aye. I do." Briefly he glanced
at
Finn. "But if we speak of it more, you will set your
liege
man to laughing.
Finn
smiled. "Has a princess caught your eye? But what
else?—you
are a harper."
The
golden notes poured forth, and yet Lachlan did not
smile.
"So I am, with thanks to Lodhi's power. But there
are
times I could wish myself more ..."
So a
princess might look his way? No doubt. But though
harpers
hold high honor in the courts of kings, they do not
have
enough to wed a woman ofTorry's rank.
I
leaned forward a moment and scrubbed at my gritty,
burning
eyes. And then I heard the scream.
Finn
tensed to rise and then fell back; no doubt he
feared
it was Alix. But at once I "knew it was not. The
. sound
belonged to my sister.
I do
not recall how I got from Finn's tent to my own,
nor do
I recall Lachlan at my side holding his gleaming
harp.
He was simply there, clasping his Lady, and the
curses
poured from his mouth. I hardly heard them. In-
stead I
heard the echo ofTorry's scream and the pounding
of my
blood.
Men
stood around my pavilion. Someone had pulled the
Awrflap
aside and tied it. I saw shadows within, and
silhouettes;
I tore the throng apart and thrust myself in-
side,
not caring whom I hurt.
Tourmaline
stood in one comer, clutching a loose green
|,robe
of my own around her body. A single candle filled
Idle
tent with muted, smoky light; it painted her face rigid
r and
pale and glowed off the gold in her hair.
I She saw me and put up a hand at once, as if
to stay me.
| As if
to tell me she had suffered no harm. It passed
|through
my mind then that my sister was a stronger
176
Jennifer Roberson
woman
than I had supposed, but I had no more time for
that.
It was Rowan I looked at, and the body he bent over.
"Dead?"
I demanded.
Rowan
shook his head as he reached down to pull a
knife
from the man's slack hand. "No, my lord. I struck
him
down with the hilt of my sword, knowing you would
have
questions for him."
I moved
forward then, reaching to grasp the leather-and-
mail of
the man's hauberk. The links bit into my hands as I
jerked
him over and up, so I could see him clearly. I
nearly
released him then, for the light fell on Zared's face.
He was
half-conscious. His eyes blinked and rolled in
his
head, which lolled as I held him up. "Well?" I asked of
Rowan.
"You were set to guard her."
"Against
Zared?" His tone was incredulous. "Better to
guard
against me."
I felt
the bum of anger in my belly. "Does even that
need
doing, I will do iti Answer the question 1 asked!"
The color
fell out of his face. I heard Tourmaline's
sound
of protest, but my attention was taken up with
Rowan.
For a moment there was a Hare of answering
anger
in his yellow Cheysuli eyes, and then he nodded.
He did
not seem ashamed, merely understanding, and
accepting.
It was well; I did not want a man who put his
tail
between his legs.
"I
heard her cry out," he said. "I came in at once and
saw a
man standing over the cot, in the darkness. He held
a
knife." Rowan lifted a hand and I saw it. "And so I struck
him
down. But it was not until he fell that I saw it was
Zared."
"Tourmaline?"
I asked, more gently than I had of Rowan.
"I
had put the candle out, so I could sleep," she told me
quietly.
"I heard nothing; he was very quiet. And then
suddenly
there was a presence, and a shape, and I
screamed.
But I think, before that last moment, he knew it
was not
you."
Zared
roused in my hands and I tightened my grip. The
ring-mail
was harsh against my fingers but I did not care. I
dragged
him up, thrust him out of the pavilion and saw
him
tumble through the throng. He was left alone to fall;
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 177
they
closed him within a circle of glittering, ringmailed
leather
but did not touch. They waited for me to act.
Zared
was fully conscious. He shifted as if to rise, then
„ fell
back to kneel upon the ground as the throng took a
?
single step forward. He knew the mettle of the men. He
-! knew
me.
He
touched fingers to the back of his neck where Rowan
had
struck him. Briefly he looked at Torry, standing in the
open
doorflap, and then he looked at me. "I did not mean
. to
harm the lady," he told me calmly. "I admit freely: it
^ was
you I wanted."
^ "For that, my thanks," I said
grimly. "If I thought it was
\ my
sister you meant to slay, your entrails would be
r
burning."
1\
"Get it done," he returned instantly. "Give me over to
^,the
gods."
^ I looked at him, kneeling there. At the
compact, power-
^ fill
veteran of my uncle's Solindish wars. My fathers man,
' once,
and now he sought to slay his son. "After an expla-
nation,"
I agreed.
He
turned his head and spat. "That for your explana-
•I
tion." He sucked in a breath as the gathered men mut-
W-
tered among themselves. "I owe you nothing. I give you
t
"nothing. There will be no explanation."
I took
a step forward, angry enough to strike him as he
%
knelt, but Lachlan's hand was on my arm. "No," he said,
I
"let me—"
'r He said nothing more. He did not need to.
His fingers
had
gone into the strings of his Lady, plucking them, and
the
sound silenced us all.
The
pavilion cracked behind me- I heard the breath of
(he
wind as it whipped at nearby fires. Torry said a word,
a
single sound, and then not another one was made.
^ The harp music took us all. I felt it more
than heard it
as it
dug within my soul, and there it stayed. So did I. The
^ wind
blew dust into my eyes, but I not blink. I felt the
I*
beating of grit against my face, but did not move to wipe it
"
away. I stood quite still as the others did, and listened to
Lachlan's
soft promise.
A
"You misjudge, Zared." he said. "But how you misjudge
178
Jennifer Roberaon
my
Lady. She can conjure visions from a blind man . . .
words
from a dumb man. And put madness in its place. ..."
Zared
cried out, cringing, and clapped his hands to his
ears.
The song went on, weaving us all in its spell. His
fingers
dug rigidly into his flesh, as if he could block the
sound.
But it sang on, burrowing into his mind even as it
blanked
ours out.
"Lachlan,"
I said, but no sound came out of my mouth.
Zared's
hands fell away from his head. He knelt and
stared,
transfixed as any child upon an endless wonder:
jaw
sagging, drool falling, eyes bulging open in a terrible
joy-
The
harp sang on, a descant to the wind. So subtle,
seductive
and sly. Lachlan himself, with his dyed hair
blowing
and his blue eyes fixed, smiled with incredible
power.
I saw his face transfigured by the presence of his
god, he
was no more the harper but an instrument of
Lodhi,
perhaps the harp herself, and a locus for the magic.
Pluck
him and she sounded, sharp and sweet. Pluck her
and he
quivered, resonating in the wind.
I
shivered. It ran over me like a grue, from scalp to
toes,
and I shivered again. I felt the hair stand up from my
flesh
and the coldness in my soul. "Lachlan," I begged,
"no—"
The
harpsong reached out and wrapped Zared in a
shroud
And there he sat, soundless, as it dug into his
mind
and stripped it bare, to make his memories visible.
A
pavilion. The interior. Ocher and amber and gray.
One
candle glowed in the dimness. It glinted off the
ringmail
hauberk and tarnished sword hilt. The man stood
in
silence with his ruddy head bowed. He dared not look
upon
the lady.
She
moved into the light. She wore a brown gown and a
yellow
belt. She glowed at throat and wrists from the
copper-dyed
silk But it was the hair that set her apart,
that
and her unearthly beauty.
She put
up a hand. She did not touch him. He did not
look at
her. But as she moved her fingers they took on a
dim
glow. Lilac, I thought. No—purple. The deep purple
r ill.
. . ~ c- r r
or
Ihlmi magic.
She
drew a rune in the air. It hissed and glowed,
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 179
clinging
to the shadows, spitting sparks and tails of flame,
Fearfully
Zared raised his head.
His
eyes fastened upon it. For a moment he tried to
look
away, to look at her, but I could see he had not the
power.
He could stare only at the rune. The delicate
tracery
of purest purple glowed aginst the air, and as
Electra
bid him he put up his hand.
"Touch
it," she said. "Take it. Hold it. It will give you
the
courage you need."
Zared
touched a trembling fingertip to the rune. In-
stantly
it spilled down across his flesh, consuming his hand
in
livid flame, until he cried out and shook his arm as if to
free
it. But by then it was done. I saw the rune, so lively
and
avid, run up his arm to his face, his nose, and then it
slid
into his nostrils-
He
cried out, but it was a noiseless sound. His body was
beset
by tremors. His eyes bulged out and blood ran from
his
nose, two thin trails of blackened blood. And then, as
he
reached for his knife, the trembling was gone and
Electra
touched his hand.
b
"It is done," she said calmly. "You have watched me so
Mcmg,
desiring me so, that I could not help but give you
your
wish. I will be yours, but only after this thing is
done.
Will you serve me in this?"
Zared
merely nodded, eyes transfixed on her face. And
Electra
gave him his service.
"Slay
him," she said. "Slay the pretender-prince."
The
harp music died. Lachlan's Lady fell silent. I heard
Ae wind
strike up the song and the echo in my soul. So
easily
she had done it.
Zared
sat slumped against the earth. His head sagged
upon
his chest as if he could not bear to meet my eyes.
Perhaps
he could not. He had meant to slay his lord.
I felt
old. Nothing worked properly- I thought to cross
to the
man and speak to him quietly, but the muscles did
not
answer my intentions. And then I heard the harp
again,
and the change in the song, and saw the change in
Lachlan's
eyes.
"Lachlani"
I cried, but the thing was already done.
He
conjured Electra before us. The perfect, fine-boned
face
with its fragile planes and flawless flesh. The winged
180
Jennifer Roberson
brows
and ice-gray eyes, and the mouth that made men
weak.
Lachlan gave us all the beauty, and then he took it
from
her.
He stripped
away the flesh. He peeled it from the bone
until
it fell away in crumpled piles of ash. I saw the gaping
orbits
of vanished eyes, the ivory ramparts of grinning
teeth.
The hinge of the jaws and the arch of her cheeks,
bared
for us all to see. And the skull, so smooth and
pearly,
stared upon us all.
No man
moved. No man could. Lachlan had bound us
all.
The
music stopped, and with it Zared's heart.
I
wavered, caught myself, and blinked against the dust.
I put a
hand to my face to wipe it free of grit, and then I
stopped,
for I saw the tears on Lachlan's face.
His
hands were quite still upon the strings. The green
stone
in the smooth dark wood was dim and opaque. And
his
eyes looked past me to Torry.
"Could
I undo it, I would," he said in toneless despair.
"Lodhi
has made me a healer, and now I have taken a life.
But for
you, lady, for what he nearly did to you . . . there
seemed
no other way."
Torry's
hand crept up to crush a fold of the green
woolen
robe against her throat. Her face was white. But 1
saw the
comprehension in her eyes.
"Lachlan."
My voice was oddly cramped. I swallowed.
clearing
my throat, then tried again to speak. "Lachlan, no
man
will reprove you for what you have done. Perhaps the
method
was—unexpected, but the reasons are clear
enough."
"I
have no dispute with that," he said. "It is only that I
thought
myself above such petty vengeance." He sighed
and
stroked two fingers along his Lady, touching the green
stone
gently. "Such power as Lodhi bestows can be used
for
harm as well as good. And now you have seen them
both."
I cast
an assessive glance around at the staring throng.
There
was still a thing to be said. "Is there yet a man who
would
slay me? Another man willing to serve the woman's
power?"
I gestured toward Zared's body on the ground. "1
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 181
'charge
you to consider it carefully when you think to
strike
me down."
I
thought there was need for nothing more, though
something
within me longed to cry out at them all, to
claim
myself inviolate. It was not true. Kings and princes
„ are
subject to assassination more often than death from old
^ age.
And yet I thought it unlikely more would strike now,
rafter
what had just occurred.
|f 1
looked at the body. It resembled that of a child within
^ the
womb, for I had seen a stillbirth once; the arms were
!
wrapped around the double-up knees, fingers clawed. The
feet
were rigid in their boots. Zared's head was twisted on
his
neck and his eyes were open. Staring. I thought I
might
get myself the reputation of a man surrounding
,
himself with shapechangers and Ellasian sorcerers, and I
fought
it just as well. Let any man who thought to slay
|llis
king think twice upon the subject.
^
"Go," I said, more quietly. "There are yet battles to be
I'fought,
and winejugs to be emptied."
| I saw
the smiles. I heard the low-voiced comments.
'What
they had seen would not be forgotten, used instead
| to
strengthen existing stories. They would drink them-
:
selves to sleep discussing the subject of death, but at least
.they
would sleep. I thought it unlikely I would.
g, I
touched Lachlan on the shoulder. "It was best."
P But
he did not look at me. He looked only at my sister
iwhile she
stared at Zared's corpse.
,
"Does it please you," asked Finn, "to know how much
;the
woman desires your death?"
I spun
around. He was pale and sweating, white around
I the
mouth, and his lips were pressed tightly closed. I saw
|
immense tension in the line of his shoulders. The stitches
I-stood
out like a brand upon his face. He stood with such
frigidity
I dared not touch him, even to help, for fear he
I-might
fall down.
|
"It does not please me," I answered simply. "But it
|does
not surprise me, either. Did you really think it
||would?"
I shook my head. "Still ... I had not known she
^neld
such power."
f-
"She is Tynstar's meijha," Finn said clearly. "A whore,
l.to
keep from dirtying the Old Tongue with her name. Do
182 Jennifer
Roberson
you
think she will let you live? Be not so blind. Carillon—
you
have now seen what she can do. She will fill your cup
with
bitter poison when you think to drink it sweet."
"Why?"
Torry asked sharply. "What is it you say to my
brother?"
I
lifted a hand to wave him into silence, then let it drop
back to
my side. Finn would never let silence rule his
tongue
when there was something he wished to say.
"Has
he not told you? He means to wed the woman."
The
robe enveloped her in a cloud of bright green wool
as she
came from the tent to me. Her hair spilled down
past
her waist to ripple at her knees, and she raised a
doubled
fist. "You will do no such thing! Electra? Carillon—
have
sense! You have seen what she means to do—Electra
desires
your death!"
"So
does Bellam and Tynstar and every other Solindish-
man in
Homana. Do you think I am blind?" I reached out
and
caught her wrist. "I mean to wed her when this war is
done,
because to do so will settle peace between two lands
that
have warred too long. Such things are often done, as
you
well know. But now, Tourmaline, now—perhaps we
can
make it last."
"Alliance?"
she asked. "Do you think Solinde will agree
to any
such thing? With Bellam dead—"
"—Solinde
will be without a king," I finished. "She
will
have me instead, and no more Ihlini minions. Think
you
what Shaine meant to do when he betrothed Lindir
to
Ellic! He wanted a lasting peace that would end these
foolish
wars. Now it is within my grasp to bring this peace
about,
and I have every intention of accomplishing it. I
will
wed Electra, just as you, one day, will wed a foreign
prince."
Her arm
went slack in my hand. Color drained from her
face.
"Carillon—wait you—"
"We
will serve our House, Tourmaline, as all our ances-
tors
have done," I said clearly. "Shall I name them for
you?
Shaine himself wed Ellinda of Erinn, before he took
Homanan
Lorsilla. And before that—"
"I
know\" she cried. "By the gods. Carillon. I am older
than
you! But what gives you the right to say whom I will
have in
marriage!"
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 183
"The
right of a brother," I said grimly, disliking to hurt
her so.
"The right of the last surviving male of our House.
But
most of all ... the right of the Mujhar."
Her arm
was still slack in my hand. And then it tight-
ened
and she twisted it free of my grasp. "Surely you will
let me
have some choice—"
"Could
I do it, I would," I said gently. "But it is the
Mujhar
of Homana the envoys will approach, not his spin-
ster
sister." I paused, knowing how much I hurt her, and
knowing
whom she wanted, even as he heard me. "Did
you
think yourself free of such responsibility?"
"No,"
she said finally. "No - . . not entirely. But it
seems
somewhat precipitate to discuss whom I will wed
"
when you still lack the Lion Throne."
:, "That is a matter of time." I
rubbed at my aching brow
•:. and
shifted my attention to Finn. "If I give you an order,
. wi\\
you obey it?"
^ One black brow rose slightly. "That is
the manner of my
k
service . . . usually."
,€ "Then go to the Keep as soon as you
are able." He
IK
opened his mouth to protest, but this time 1 won. "I am
y
sending Torry, so she will be safe and free of such things
^' as
she has encountered tonight." I-did not say she would
4 also
be separated from Lachlan, whom I thought might
'•'r
offer too much succor for his sake as well as hers. "You I
^'want
healed," I went on. "Alix will no doubt wish to
I''
return to Donal, so she can give Torry proper escort.
^itemain
until you are fully recovered. And there, my liege
^man,
is the order."
„,' He was not pleased with it, but he did not
protest. I
^•had
taken that freedom from him. And then, before I
^ could
put out a hand to aid him as I intended, he turned
~
."and limped away.
S3
;/ The
wind rippled Torry's hair as we watched him go. I
^
.heard surprise and awe in her voice, and recalled she
i^fenew
little of the Cheysuli. Only the legends and lays.
^'That,"
she said, "is strength. And such pride as I have
l^iever
seen."
I
smiled. That." I said merely, "is Finn."
SIXTEEN
It was
bright as glass as I sat outside my pavilion, and the
sunlight
beat off my head. I sat on a three-legged camp-
stool
with my legs spread, Cheysuli sword resting across
my
thighs. I squinted against the brilliant flashes of the
mirrored
blade and carefully checked its edges. From
elsewhere,
close by, drifted the curl of Lachlan's music.
Come,
lady, and sit down beside me,
settle
your skirts in the hollowed green hills
and
hear of my song
for 1
am a harper
and one
who would give of himself
to you.
Rowan
stood at my right, waiting for my comment. He
had
spent hours honing and cleaning the blade. At first I
had not
thought to set him to the task, for in Caledon I
had
learned to tend my weapons as I tended my life, but
this
was not Caledon. This was Homana, and I must take
on the
behaviors of a king. Such things included in that
were
having men to tend my weapons, mail and horse.
Still,
it had been only this morning that I had trusted my
sword
to another.
The
ruby, the Mujhar's Eye, glowed brilliantly in the
pommel.
The gold prongs holding it in place curved snuggly
around
it, like lion's claws; apropos, I thought, since it
I 184 I
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 185
was the
royal crest. The rampant beast depicted in the hilt
gleamed
with a thorough cleaning, and I thought overall it
would
do. I touched fingertips to the runes, feeling the
subtle
ridges beneath my flesh, and nodded. "Well done,
Rowan.
You should have been an arms-master."
"I
prefer being a captain," he said, "so long as it is you I
serve,"
I
smiled and used a soft cloth to rub the oil of my
fingers
from the glory of the steel. "I am not a god,
Rowan.
I am as human as you."
"I
know that." Some of his awe had faded, that was
obvious.
"But given the choice, I would continue to serve
(he
Mujhar. Human or not," I glanced up and saw his
smile.
A thin
veil of dust hung in the air to layer the men who
caused
it. I heard the sound of arms-practice, wrestling,
argument
and laughter. But I also heard the harp, and
Lachlan's
eloquent voice.
Come,
lady, and hear of my harp;
I wiU
sing for you, play for you,
wait
for you, pray for you
to say
you love me, too,. . .
as much
as I love you.
I
lifted my swordbelt from the ground and set the tip of
the
blade against the lip of the sheath. Slowly I slid it
ithome,
liking the violent song. Steel against leather, boiled
and
wrapped; the hissing of blade against sheath. Better, I
thought,
than the chopping of blade hacking flesh or the
. grate
of steel against bone.
"Hallooo
the camp!" called a distant voice. "A message
from
Bellam!"
The
dust cloud rolled across the encampment. Four
..men
rode in: three were guards, the fourth a Homanan I
^had
seen only once before, when I had set him to his task.
' The
guards brought him up, taking away his horse as he
;
jumped from the mount and dropped to one knee in a
quick,
impatient gesture of homage. His eyes sparkled
-.with
excitement as I motioned him up. "My lord, I have
t:word
from Mujhara."
186
Jennifer Roberson
"Say
on."
"It
is Bellam, my lord. He desires a proper battle, two
armies
in the field, with no more time and blood spent in
pointless
skirmishes." He grinned; he knew what I would
say.
I
smiled. "Pointless, are they? So pointless now he begs
me hold
back my men, because we have undermined his
grip
upon Homana. So pointless he wishes to settle the
thing
at last." I felt the leap of anticipation within my
chest.
At last. At last. "Is there more?"
He was
winded, trying to catch his breath. I had taken
up the
practice of posting men in relays along the major
roads,
ostensibly itemerants or crofters or traders; any-
thing
but soldiers. Some had even been sent to Mujhara
to leam
what they could firsthand, and to expand on the
insight
Lachlan had given us as to Bellam's mind.
"My
lord," the man said, "it seems Bellam is angry and
impatient.
He is determined to bring you down. He chal-
lenges
you, my lord, to a battle near Mujhara. A final
battle,
he claims, to end the thing at last."
"Does
he?" I grinned at Rowan, "No doubt there were
assorted
insults to spice these words of his."
The
messenger laughed. "But of course, my lord! What
else
does a beaten man do? He blusters and shouts and
threatens,
because he knows his strength is failing." Color
stood
high in his face. "My lord Carillon, he claims you
fight
such skirmishes because you are incapable of com-
manding
an entire army within a proper battle. That you
rely on
the Cheysuli to ensorcel his patrols, having no skill
yourself.
My lord—do we fight?"
His
eagerness was manifest. I saw others gathering near;
not so
close as to intrude, but close enough to hear my
answer.
I did not mind. No doubt all my men felt some of
the
impatience that nipped at Bellam's heels.
"We
will fight," I agreed, rising from my stool. The
cheer
went up at once. "Seek you food and rest, and
whatever
wine you prefer. Tonight we will feast to Bellam's
defeat,
and tomorrow we shall plan."
He
bowed himself away and went off to do my bidding.
Others
hastened away as well to spread the word, I knew
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 187
the
army grapevine would do what I could not, which was
speak
to every man- There were too many now.
Rowan
sighed. "My lord—it is well. Even I would relish
a
battle."
"Though
you may die in it?"
"There
is that chance each time I lead a raid," he
answered.
"What difference to me whether I die with
twenty
men or two hundred? Or even twenty thousand?"
The
hilt of my sword was warm against my palm and the
royal
ruby glowed. "What difference, indeed?" I stared
across
the encampment with its knots of clustered men.
"Is
a Mujhar's strength measured by the number of men
whose
blood is spilled—or merely that it spills?" Then I
frowned
and shook the musing away. "Find me Duncan.
Last I
saw, he was with Finn, now that his brother is back.
There
are things we must discuss."
Rowan
nodded and went off at once. I buckled on my
swordbelt
and turned to go inside my pavilion, intending
to
study my maps, but I paused instead and lingered.
Come,
lady, and taste of my wine,
eat of
my fruit
and
hear of my heart,
for I
long for you, cry" for you,
ache
for you, hate for you
to say
you will not come.
I
grimaced and scrubbed fingers through my beard to
scratch
my tight-set jaw. It was not Tony who was saying
she
would not come, but her brother commanding it. And
in the
eight weeks since 1 had sent her to the Keep,
Lachlan
had kept himself to his thoughts and his Lady,
forgoing
the confidences we once had shared.
"A
fool," I muttered. "A fool to look so high". . . and
surely
a harper knows it."
Perhaps
he had, once. He had spent his time with
kings.
But a man cannot always choose where he will love,
no more
than a princess may choose what man she will
wed.
The
harpsong died down into silence. I stood outside
188
Jmntfur Robwon
my
pavilion and heard the hissing of the wind across
the
sandy, beaten ground. And then I cursed and went
inside.
"Carillon."
It was
Finn at the doorflap, but when I called to him to
enter,
he merely pulled the flap aside. He stood mostly in
shadow
with the darkness of fall night behind him.
I sat
up, awake at once—for I had hardly slept in the
knowledge
I would face Bellam at last—and lighted my
single
candle. I looked at Finn and frowned. Of a sudden
he was
alien to me, eerie in his intensity.
"Bring
your sword and come."
I
glanced at the sword where it lay cradled in its sheath.
It
waited for me now as much as it waited for the morning;
the
morning. And, knowing Finn did nothing without
sound
reason, I put on my boots and stood up, fully
clothed
as was common in army camps. "Where?" I pulled
the
sword from its sheath.
"This
way." He said nothing more, merely waited for
me to
follow. And so I went with him, following Storr, to
the
hollow of a hill. We left the encampment behind, a
dim,
smoky glow across the crest of the hill, and I waited
for
Finn to explain.
He said
nothing at first. I saw him look down at the
ground,
searching for some mark or other indication, and
then I
saw it even as he did.
Five
smooth stones, set in a careful circle. He smiled
and
knelt, touching each stone with a fingertip as if he
counted,
or made himself known to all five. He said some-
thing
under his breath, some unknown sentence; the Old
Tongue,
and more obscure than usual. This was not the
Finn I
knew.
Kneeling,
he glanced up. Up and up, until he tipped
back
his head. It was the sky he stared at, the black night
sky
with its carpet of shining stars, and the wind blew his
hair
from his face. I saw again the livid scar as it snaked
across
cheek and jaw, but I also saw something more. I
saw a
man gone out of himself to some place far beyond.
"Ja'hai,"he
said. "Ja'hai, cheysu, Mujhar."
The
wolf walked once around the circle. I saw the
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 189
•mber
glint of his eyes. Finn glanced at him briefly with
the
unfocused detachment of fir-speech, and I wondered
what
was said.
The
night was cool. The wind blew grit against my face,
catching
in my beard. I put one hand to my mouth,
intending
to wipe my lips clean, but Finn made a gesture
( had
never seen and I stopped moving altogether, I
looked
up, as he did, and saw the garland of stars-
Five of
them. In a circle. Like a torque around a wom-
an's
neck. A moment before they had been five among
many,
lost in the brilliance of thousands, and now they
stood
apart.
Finn
touched each stone again with a gentle fingertip.
Then he
placed one palm -flat against the earth as if he
gave—or
sought—a blessing, and touched the other hand
to his
heart.
'Trust
me." I realized this time he spoke to me.
It took
me a moment to answer. The very stillness made
me
hesitate. "When have I not trusted you?"
"Trust
me." I saw the blackness of his eyes, swollen in
die
darkness.
I
swallowed down my foreboding. "Freely. My life is
yours."
He did
not smile. "Your life has ever been mine. For
now,
the gods have set me a farther task ..." For a
moment
he closed his eyes. In the moonlight his face was
all
hollows and planes, leached free of its humanity. He
was a
shadow-wraith before me, hunched against the
ground.
"You know what we face tomorrow." His eyes
were on
my face. "You know the odds are great. You know
f also,
of course, that should we fail—and Bellam keeps
'
Homana—it is the end of the Cheysuli race."
'The
Homanans—"
"I
do not speak of Homanans." Finn's tone was very
;
distant. "We speak now of the Cheysuli, and the gods who
"
made this place. There is no time for Homanans."
"/
am Homanan—"
"You
are a part of our prophecy." For a moment he
smiled
the old, ironic smile. "Doubtless you would prefer
•- it
otherwise, given a choice—no more than 1, Carillon—
; but
there is none. If you die tomorrow; if you die within a
190
week in
Bellam's battles, Homana and the Cheysuli die
with
you."
I felt
the slow churning in my belly. Finn—you set a
great
weight upon my shoulders. Do you wish to bow me
down?"
"You
are Mujhar," he said softly. "That is the nature of
the
task."
I
shifted uneasily. "What is it you would have me do?
Strike
a bargain with the gods? Only tell me the way."
There
was no answering smile. "No bargain," he said.
"They
do not bargain with men. They offer; men take, or
men
refuse. Men all too often refuse." He set one hand
against
the ground and thrust himself to his feet. The
earring
winked in the moonlight. "What I tell you this
night
is not what men prefer to hear, particularly kings.
But 1
tell you because of what we have shared together
. , .
and because it will make a difference."
I took
a deep, slow breath. Finn was—not Finn. And
yet I
knew no other name. "Say on, then."
"That
sword." He indicated it briefly. "The sword you
hold is
Cheysuli-made, by Hale, myjehan. For the Mujhar
it was
said he made it, and yet in the Keep we knew
differently."
His face was very solemn. "Not for Shaine,
though
Shaine was the one who bore it. Not for you, to
whom
Shaine gave it on your acclamation. For a Mujhar,
it is
true . . . but a Cheysuli Mujhar, not Homanan."
"I
have heard something of the sort before," I said
grimly.
"It seems these words—or similar ones—have been
often
in Duncan's mouth."
"You
fight to save Homana," Finn said. "We fight to
save
Homana as well, and the Cheysuli way of life. There
is the
prophecy. Carillon. I know—" he lifted a hand as I
sought
to speak— "I know, it is not something to which
you pay
mind. But I do; so do we all who have linked with
the
lir." His eyes were on Storr, standing so still and
silent
in the night. "It is the truth. Carillon. One day a
man of
all blood shall unite, in peace, four warring realms
and two
magic races." He smiled. "Your bane, it appears,
judging
by your expression."
"What
are you leading to?" I was grown impatient with
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 191
his
manner. "What has the prophecy to do with this
sword?"
"That
sword was made for another. Hale knew it when
he
fashioned the blade from the star-stone. And the prom-
ise was
put in there." His fingers indicated the runes
running
down the blade. "A Cheysuli sword, once made,
waits
for the hand it was made for, That hand is not yours,
and yet
you will carry the sword into battle."
I could
not suppress the hostility in my tone. "Cheysuli
sufferance?"
I demanded. "Does it come to this again?"
"Not
sufferance," he said. "You serve it well, and it has
kept
you alive, but the time draws near when it will live in
another
man's hands."
"My
son's," I said firmly. "What I have will be my
son's.
That is the nature of inheritance."
"Perhaps
so," he agreed, "do the gods intend it."
"Finn—"
"Lay
down the sword, Carillon."
I faced
him squarely in the darkness. "Do you ask me to
give it
up?" I weighted my words with care. "Do you
mean to
take it from me?"
"That
is not for me to do. When the sword is given over
to the
man for whom it was made, it will be given freely."
For a
moment he said nothing, as if listening to his words,
and
then he smiled. Briefly he touched my arm with a
gesture
of comradeship I had seen only rarely before.
"Lay
down the sword. Carillon. This night it belongs to
the
gods."
I bent.
I set the sword upon the ground, and then I rose
again.
It lay gleaming in the moonlight: gold and silver
and
crimson.
"Your
knife," Finn said.
And so
he disarmed me. I stood naked and alone, for all
I had a
warrior and wolf before me, and waited for the
answers.
I thought there might be none; Finn only rarely
divulged
what was in his mind, and this night I thought it
unlikely
I would get anything from him. I waited.
He held
the knife in his hand, the hand which had
fashioned
the weapon. A Cheysuli long-knife with its wolfs-
head
hilt; no Homanan weapon, this. And then I under-
stood.
192
Jennifer Roberson
This
night he was all Cheysuli, more so than ever be-
fore.
He put off his borrowed Homanan manners like a
soldier
slipping his cloak. No more the Finn I knew but
another,
quieter soul. He was full of his gods and magic,
and did
I not acknowledge what he was I would doubtless
regret
it at once. As it was, I had not seen him so often in
such a
way as to lose my awe of him.
Suddenly
I stood alone on the plains of Homana with a
shapechanger
waiting before me, and I knew myself afraid.
He
caught my left wrist in one hand. Before I could
speak
he bared the underside to the gods and cut deeply
into
the flesh.
I
hissed between my teeth and tried to pull back the
arm. He
held me tightly, clamping down on the arm so
that my
hand twitched and shook with the shock of the
cutting.
I had
forgotten his strength, his bestial determination
that
puts all my size to shame. He held me as easily as a
father
holds a child, ignoring my muttered protest. He
forced
my arm down and held it still, and then he loos-
ened
his fingers to let the blood well free and fast.
It ran down
my wrist to pool in my palm, then dropped
off the
rigid fingers. Finn held the arm over the patch of
smooth
earth with its circle of five smooth stones.
"Kneel."
A pressure on the captive wrist led me down-
ward,
and I knelt as he had ordered.
Finn
released my wrist. It ached dully and I felt the
blood
still coursing freely. I lifted my right hand to clamp
the cut
closed, but the look on Finn's face kept me from
it.
There was more he wanted of me.
He took
up my sword from the ground and stood before
me.
"We must make this yours, for a time," he said
gently.
"We will borrow it from the gods. For tomorrow,
for
Homana . . . you must have a little magic." He pointed
at the
bloodied soil. 'The blood of the man, the flesh of
the
earth. United in one purpose—" He thrust the sword
downward
until the blade bit into the earth, sliding in as if
he
sheathed it, until the hilt stood level with my face as I
knelt.
The clean, shining hilt with its ruby eye set so
firmly
in the pommel. "Put your hand upon it."
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 193
Instinctively
I knew which hand. My left, with its bloody
glove.
I
touched the hilt. I touched the rampant lion. I touched
the red
eye with the red of my blood, and closed my hand
v upon
it.
The
blood flowed down the hilt to the crosspiece and
then
down upon the blade. The runes filled up, red-black
in the
silver moonlight, until they spilled over. I saw the
scarlet
ribbon run down and down to touch the earth
where
it merged with the blood-dampened soil, and the
ruby
began to glow.
It
filled my eyes with crimson fire, blinding me to the
world.
No more Finn, no more me . . . only incarnadine
fire.
"ja'hai,"
Finn whispered unevenly, "ja'hai, cheysu,
Mujhar
..."
Five
stars. Five stones. One sword. And one battle to
be won.
", The stars moved. They broke free of their
settings and
•.moved
against the sky, growing brighter, trailing tails of
fire
behind them. They shot across the sky, arcing, like
arrows
loosed from bows, heading toward the earth. Shoot-
ing
stars I had seen, but this was different. This was—"
"Gods,"
I whispered raggedly. "Must a man ever see to
believe?"
f I wavered on my knees. It was Finn who
pulled me up
- and
made me stand, though I feared I would fall down and
shame
myself. One hand closed over the cut and shut off
, the
bleeding. He smiled a moment, and then the eyes
were
gone blank and detached, so that I knew he sought
the
earth magic.
When he
took his hand away my wrist was healed,
bearing
no scar save the shackle wound from Atvian iron, I
•
flexed my hand, wiggling my fingers, and saw the familiar
\ twist
to Finn's smile. "I told you to trust me."
"Trusting
you may give me nightmares." Uneasily I
*;'
glanced at the sky. "Did you see the stars?"
'^; "Stars?" He did not smile.
"Rocks," he said. "Only
^-
rocks."
^ He
scooped them up and showed me. Rocks they were,
194
Jennifer Roberson
in his
hand, I put out my own and held them, wondering
what
magic had been forged.
I
looked at Finn. He seemed weary, used up, and
something
was in his eyes. I could not decipher the ex-
pression.
"You will sleep." He frowned in abstraction.
"The
gods will see to that."
"And
you?" I asked sharply.
"What
the gods give me is my own affair." His eyes
were
back on the sky.
I
thought there was more he wished to say But he shut
his
mouth on it, offering nothing, and it was not my place
to ask.
So I put my free hand on the upstanding hilt and
closed
my fingers around the bloodied gold But I knew,
as I
pulled it from the earth, I would not ask Rowan to
clean
it.
"Rocks,"
Finn murmured, and turned away with Storr,
I
opened my hand and looked at the rocks. Five smooth
stones.
Nothing more.
But I
did not drop them to the ground. I kept them,
instead.
It was
Rowan who held the tall ash staff upright in the
dawn.
The mist clung to it; droplets ran down the staff to
wet the
fog-dampened ground, as my blood had run down
the
sword. The banner hung limply from the top of the
staff;
a drapery of crimson cloth that did not move in the
stillness.
Within its silken folds slept the rampant black
lion of
Homana, mouth agape and claws extended, waiting
for 'ts
prey.
The tip
of the staff bit into the ground as Rowan pushed
it. He
twisted, worked the standard into the damp, spongy
ground
until the ash was planted solidly. And then he took
his
hands away, waiting, and saw it would remain.
A cheer
went up. A Homanan cheer, the Cheysuli said
nothing
They waited on foot at my back, separated from
the
Homanans, and their standard was the lir who stood at
their
sides or rested on their shoulders.
I
tasted the flat, dull tang of apprehension tinged with
fear in
my mouth. I had never rid myself of the taste, no
matter
how many times I had fought. I sat on my horse
with my
sword in its sheath, ringmail shrouding my body,
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 195
and
knew I was afraid. But it was the fear that would drive
me on
in an attempt to overcome it, in doing so I would
also, I
prayed, overcome the enemy.
I
turned my back on that enemy. Bellam's troops lay in
wait
for us on the plains, the dawning sunlight glittering
off
weapons and mail. They were too far to be distinct,
were
merely a huge gathering of men prepared to fight.
Thousands
upon thousands.
I
turned my back so 1 could look at my army. It spread
across
the hill like a flood of legs and arms and faces.
Unlike
Bellam's hordes, we did not all boast ringmail and
boiled
leather Many wore what they could of armor, that
being
leather bracers, stiff leather greaves and a leather
tunic A
breastplate, here" and there; perhaps a toughened
hauberk
But many wore only wool, having no better, yet
willing
to fight. My army lacked the grandeur of Bellam's
silken-tunicked
legions, but we did not lack for heart and
determination.
I
pulled my sword from its sheath. Slowly I raised it,
then
closed my callused hand around the blade, near the
tip. I
thrust the weapon upright in the air so that the hilt
was uppermost,
and the ruby caught fire from the rising
sun.
"Bare
your teeth!" I shouted. "Unsheathe your claws!
And let
the Lion roar!"
SEVENTEEN
The
sun, I knew, was setting. The field was a mass of
crimson,
orange and yellow. But I could not be certain
how
much of the crimson was blood or setting sun.
The
ground was boggy beneath my knees, the dry grass
matted,
but I did not get up at once. I remained kneeling,
leaning
against my planted sword, as I stared into the
Mujhar's
Eye. The great ruby, perhaps, was responsible
for the
color Perhaps it painted the plains so red.
But I
knew better. The field was red and brown and
black
with blood, and the dull colors of the dead. Already
carrion
birds wheeled and settled in their eternal dance,
crying
their victory even as men cried their defeat It was
all
merely sound, another sound, to fill my ringing head.
The
strength was gone from my body. I trembled with a
weakness
born of fatigue that filled my bones, turning my
limbs
to water. There was nothing left in me save the
vague
realization the thing was done, and I was still alive.
A step
whispered behind me I spun at once, lifting the
sword,
and set the point at the man.
He
stood just out of range, and yet close enough had I
the strength
to try for a lunge. I did not. And there was no
need,
since Finn was not the enemy.
I let
the tip of the sword drop away to rest against the
ground.
I wet my bloodied lips and wished for a drink of
wine,
Better yet: water, to cool my painful throat. My
I 196 I
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 197
voice
was a husky shadow of my usual tone; shouting had
leached
it of sound.
"It
is done," Finn said gently.
"I
know it." I swallowed and steadied my voice. "I know
it."
"Then
why do you remain on your knees like a supplicant
to
Lachlan's All-Father creature?"
"Perhaps
I am one . . ." 1 sucked in a belly-deep breath
and got
unsteadily to my feet. The exertion nearly put me
down
again, and I wavered. Every bone in my body ached
and my
muscles were shredded like rags. I shoved a
mailed
forearm across my face, scrubbing away the sweat
and
blood. And then I acknowledged what I had not dared
say
aloud before, or even-within my mind. "Bellam is—
defeated.
Homana is mine."
"Aye,
my lord Mujhar." The tone, as ever, was ironic
and
irreverent.
I
sighed and cast him as much of a scowl as I could
muster.
"My thanks for your protection, Finn.' I recalled
how he
had shadowed me in the midst of the day-long
battle;
how he had let no enemy separate me from the
others.
In all the tangle of fighting, I had never once been
left
alone.
He
shrugged. "The blood-oath does bind me . . ." Then
he
grinned openly and made a fluid gesture that said he
understood.
Too often we said nothing to one another
because
there was no need.
And
then he put out a hand and gripped my arm, and I
accepted
the accolade in silence only because I had not
die
words to break it.
"Did
you think we would see it?" I asked at last.
"Oh,
aye. The prophecy—"
I cut
him off with a wave of one aching arm, "Enough.
Enough
of the thing. I grow weary of your prating of this
and
that." I sighed and caught my breath. "Still, there is
Mujhara
to be freed. Our liberation is not yet finished."
"Near
enough," Finn said quietly. "I have come to take
you to
Bellam."
I
looked at him sharply. "You have him?"
"Duncan—has
him. Come and see."
We
walked through the battlefield slowly. All around
198
Jennifer Robercon
me lay
the pall of death; the stench of fear and futility.
Men had
been hacked and torn to pieces, struck down by
swords
and spears alike. Arrows stood up from their flesh.
Birds
screamed and shrieked as we passed, taking wing to
circle
and return as we passed by their bounty. And the
men, enemy
and companion alike, lay sprawled in the
obscene
intercourse of death upon the matted, bloody
grass.
I
stopped. I looked at the sword still clutched in my
hand-
The Cheysuli sword. Hale-made, with its weight of
burning
ruby. The Mujhar's Eye. Or was it merely my
eye,
grown bloody from too much war?
Finn
put his hand on my shoulder. When I could, I
sheathed
the sword and went on.
Duncan
and Rowan, along with a few of my captains,
stood
atop a small hill upon which stood the broken
shaft
of Bellam's standard, trampled in the dust. White
sun
rising on an indigo field. But Bellam's sun had
set.
He was
quite dead. But of such a means I could not
name,
so horrible was his state. He was no longer pre-
cisely
a man.
Tynstar.
I knew it at once. What I did not know was the
reason
for the death. And probably never would.
It—Bellam
was no longer recognizably male—was curled
tightly
as if it were a child as yet unborn. The clothes and
mail
had been burned and melted off. Ash served as a
cradle
for the thing. Ringmail, still smoking from its
ensorcelled
heat, lay clumped in heaps of cooling metal.
The
flesh was drawn up tightly like brittle, untanned hide.
Chin on
knees; arms hugging legs; nose and ears melted
off.
Bellam grinned at us all from his lipless mouth, but his
eyes
were empty sockets.
And on
the blackened skull rested a circlet of purest
gold.
When I
could speak again without phlegm and bile
scraping
at my throat, I said two words: "Bury it."
"My
lord," Rowan ventured, "what do you do now?"
"Now?"
I looked at him and tried to smile. "Now I will
go into
Mujhara to claim my throne at last."
THE
SONG OF HOMANA I 199
"Alone?"
He was shocked. "Now?"
"Now,"
I said, "but not alone. With me go the Cheysuli."
We met
token resistance in the city. Solindish soldiers
with
their Atvian allies still fought to protect their stolen
palace,
but word spread quickly of Bellam's death and the
grisly
manner of it. It wondered at Tynstar's decision;
surely
the Solindish would hate and fear him for what he
had
done. Had he not broken the traditional bond be-
tween
Bellam and the Ihlini? Or would the sorcery prove
stronger
even than fear, and drive the Solindish to follow
him
still?
The
resistance at Homana-Mujhar broke quickly enough.
I left
behind the bronze-and-timber gates, dispatching
Cheysuli
and lir into the interior of the myriad baileys and
wards
to capture the turrets and towers along the walls,
the
rose-colored walls of Homana-Mujhar. I dismounted
by the
marble steps at the archivolted entrance and went
up one
step at a time, sword bare in my hand. By the
gods,
this place was mine . . .
By the
gods, indeed. I thought of the stars again.
Finn
and Duncan were a few steps behind me and with
them
came their lir. And then, suddenly, I was alone.
Before
me stood the hammered silver doors of the Great
Hall
itself. I heard fighting behind me but hardly noticed;
before
me lay my tahlvwrra.
I
smiled. Tahlmorra. Aye. I thought it was. And so I
threw
open the doors and went in.
The
memories crashed around me like falling walls.
Brick
by brick by brick. I recalled it all—
—Shaine,
standing on the marble dais, thundering his
displeasure
. , . Alix there as well, beckoning Cai within
the
hall, and the great hawk's passage extinguishing all the
candles.
. . . Shaine again, my uncle, defying the Cheysuli
within
the walls they built so long ago, destroying the
magic
that kept the ihlini out and alhwing Homana's
defeat.
. . My hand tightened on my sword. By the gods,
I did
recall that defeat!
I went
onward toward the dais. I ignored the Solindish
coats-of-arms
bannering the walls and the indigo draperies
with
Bellam's crest. I walked beside the unlighted firepit
200
JfinlfT Roberwon
as it
stretched the length of the hall with its lofty hammer-
beamed
ceiling of honey-dark wood and its carven animal
shapes.
No, not animal shapes. Lir-shapes. The Cheysuli
had
gone from carving the lir into castles to painting them
onto
pavilions. The truth had been here for years, even
when we
called them liars.
I
stopped before the dais. The marble, so different from
the
cold gray stone of the hall floor, was light-toned, a
warm
rose-pink with veins of gold within it. A proper
pedestal,
I thought, for the throne that rested on it.
The
Lion. It hunched upon its curling paws and claws,
its
snarling face the headpiece upon the back of the throne.
Dark,
ancient wood, gleaming with beeswax and gilt within
the
scrollwork. Gold wire banded the legs. The seat was
cushioned
in crimson silk with its rampant black lion walk-
ing in
its folds. That much Bellam had not changed. He
had
left the lion alone.
My
lion; my Lion.
Or was
it?
I
turned, and he stood where I expected.
"Yours?"
I asked. "Or mine?"
Duncan
did not attempt to dissemble or pretend to
misunderstand.
He merely sheathed his bloodied knife,
folded
his arms, and smiled. "It is yours, my lord. For
now.
I heard
the shouts of fighting behind him. Duncan stood
j'ust
inside the open doorway, framed by the silver leaves.
His
black hair hung around his shoulders, bloody and
sweaty
like mine, and he bore bruises on his face. But
even
for all the soiling of his leathers and the smell of
death
upon him, he outshone the hall he stood in.
The
breath rasped in my throat. To come so far and
know
myself so insignificant— "The throne," I said hoarsely,
"is
meant for a Cheysuli Mujhar. You have said."
"One
day," he agreed. "But that day will come when
you and
I are dead."
"Then
it is like this sword—" I touched the glowing
ruby.
"Made for another man."
"The
Firstborn come again." Duncan smiled, "There is
a while
to wait for him."
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 201
A soft,
sibilant whisper intruded itself upon us- "And
shall
you wait a while for me?"
I spun
around, jerking my sword from its sheath. Tynstar,
^
Tynstar, came gliding out of the alcove so near the throne.
He put
up his hand as Duncan moved. "Do not,
shapechanger!
Stay where you are, or I will surely slay
him."
He smiled. "Would it not grieve you to know you
* have
lost your Mujhar the very day you have brought him
1 to
the throne?"
He had
not changed. The ageless Ihlini was smiling. His
bearded
face was serene, untroubled, his hair was still
thick—black
touched with silver. He wore black leathers,
and
bore a silver sword.
I felt
all the fear and rage"and frustration well up within
my
soul. It was ever Tynstar, enforcing his will; playing
with us
like toys.
"Why
did you slay Bellam?" When I had control of my
voice,
I asked.
"Did
I?" He smiled. He smiled.
I
thought, suddenly, of Zared, and how he had died.
How
Lachlan had harped him to death upon his Lady. I
recalled
quite clearly how Zared's corpse had looked, all
doubled
up and shrunken, as Bellara's had been.
For
only a moment, I wondered. And then I knew
better
than to let Tynstar bait me. "Why?"
An
eloquent shrug of his shoulders. "He was—used up.
I had
no more need of him. He was—superfluous." A
negligent
wave of the hand relegated Bellam to nonexist-
ence.
But I recalled his body and the manner of his going.
"What
more?" 1 asked in suspicion. "Surely there was
more."
Tynstar
smiled and his black eyes held dominion. On
one
finger gleamed a flash of blue-white fire. A ring. A
crystal
set in silver. "More," he agreed. "A small matter of
a
promise conveniently forgotten- Bellam was foolish enough
to
desire an Ellasian prince for his lovely daughter, when
she was
already given to me." Amusement flickered across
' the
cultered, guileless face. "But then, I did tell him he
would
die if he faced you this day. There are times your
gods
take precedence over my own."
The
sword was in my hand. I wanted so to strike with it,
202
JannlfT Robot-son
and yet
for the moment I could not. I had another weapon.
"Electra,"
I said. "Your light woman, I have heard. Well,
I shall
forget her past while I think of her future—as my
wife
and Queen of Homana."
Anger
glittered in his eyes. "You will not take Electra to
wife.'
"I
will." I raised the sword so he could see the glowing
ruby.
"How will you stop me, when even the gods send
me
aid?"
Tynstar
smiled. And then, even as I thrust, he reached
out and
caught the blade. "Die," he said gently. "I am
done
with our childish games."
The
shock ran through my arm to my shoulder. The
blade
had struck flesh, and yet he did not bleed. Instead
he
turned the sword into a locus for his power and sent it
slashing
through my body.
I was
hurled back against the throne, nearly snapping
my
spine. The sword was gone from my hand. Tynstar
held it
by the blade, the hilt lifted before my eyes, and I
saw the
ruby go dark.
"Shall
I turn this weapon against you?" His black eyes
glittered
as brightly as his crystal ring- "I have only to
touch
you—gently—with this stone, and poor Carillon's
reign
is done."
The
sword came closer. My sword, that now served
him. I
slid forward to my knees, intending to dive and
roll,
but Tynstar was too fast.
And yet
he was not. Even as the ruby, now black and
perverted,
touched my head, a knife flew home in Tynstar's
shoulder.
Duncan's, thrown from the end of the hall. And
now
Duncan was following the blade.
I found
myself face-down against the marble. Somehow
I had
fallen, and the sword lay close at hand. But the
ruby,
once so brilliant, now resembled Tunstar's eyes.
Duncan's
leap took Tynstar down against the dais, not
far
from where I lay. But Tynstar struggled up again, and
Duncan
did not. He lay, stunned by the force of his
landing,
sprawled across the steps. One bare brown arm
with
its gleaming far-band stretched across the marble,
gold on
gold, and blood was staining the floor.
"Tynstar!"
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 203
It was
Finn, pounding the length of the hall, and I saw
the
knife in his hand. How apropos, I thought, that Tynstar
would
die by a royal Homanan blade.
But he
did not die. Even as Finn raced toward him, the
Ihlini
pulled Duncan's knife from his shoulder and hurled
it down.
Then he sketched a hurried rune in the air,
wrapped
himself in lavender mist, and simply disappeared.
I swore
and tried to thrust myself upright, I failed
miserably,
flopping hard against the dais. And so I gave up
and lay
there, trying to catch my breath, as Finn knelt
beside
his brother.
Duncan
muttered something. I saw him press himself
up off
the floor, then freeze, and it was Finn who kept him
from
falling. "A rib, I think," Duncan said between tight-
locked
teeth. "I will live, rujho."
"All
this blood—"
"Tynstar's
" Duncan winced as he settled himself upon
the top
step, one hand pressed to his chest. "The knife
was
mostly spent by the time it reached him, or he surely
would
have died." He glanced at me briefly, then ges-
tured to
his brother. "Finn—see to Carillon."
Finn
heaved me up into a sitting position and leaned
me
against the throne. One curving, clawed paw sup-
ported
my head. "1 thought perhaps I could slay him," I
explained,
"and save us all the worry of knowing he is
free."
Finn
picked up the sword. I saw the color spill out of
his
face as he looked at the ruby. The black ruby. "He did
this?"
"Something
did." I swallowed against the weariness in
my
bones. "He put his hand on the blade and the stone
turned
black, as you see it."
"He
used it to fix his power," Duncan said. "All of
Carillon's
will and strength was sucked out through the
sword,
then fed back with redoubled effect. It carried the
sorcery
with it." He frowned. "Rujho, the sword has ever
been
merely a sword. But for it to become accessible to
Ihlini
magic, it had to have its own. What do you know of
this?"
Finn
would not meet Duncan's eyes. I stared at him in
204
Jennifer Robwon
astonishment,
trying to fathom his emotions, but he had
put up
his shield against us all.
"Rujho,"
Duncan said more sharply. "Did you seek the
star
magic?"
"He
found it. He found something." I shrugged, "Five
stones,
and blood, and the stars fell out of the sides. He
said—"
I paused, recalling the words exactly, "—ja'hai,
cheysu,
Mujhar."
Duncan's
bruised face went white. At first I thought it
was
fear, and then I saw it was anger. He spat something
out in
the Old Tongue, something unintelligible to me—
which I
thought best, judging by the fury in his tone.
Having
never seen Duncan so angry, I was somewhat
fascinated
by it. And pleased, very pleased, I was not the
focus
of it.
Finn
made a chopping motion with his right hand, a
silencing
gesture I had seen only rarely, for it was consid-
ered
rude. It did not have much effect on Duncan.
He did
not shout. He spoke quietly enough, but with
such
violence in his tone that it was all the more effective.
I
shifted uneasily against the throne and thought to inter-
rupt,
but it was not my afiair. It had become a thing
between
brothers.
Finn
stood up abruptly. Still he held the sword, and the
ruby
gleamed dull and black. Even the runes seemed
tarnished.
"Enough!" he shouted, so that it echoed in the
hall.
"Do you seek to strip me entirely of my dignity? I
admit I
was wrong—I admit it!—but there is no more
need to
remind me. I did it because I had to."
"Had
to!" Duncan glared at him, very white around the
mouth,
yet blotched from pain and anger. "Had the gods
denied
you—what then? What would we have done for a
king?"
"King?"
I echoed, seeing I had some stake in this fight
after
all. "What are you saying, Duncan?"
Finn
made the chopping motion again. And again Duncan
ignored
it. "He asked the gods for the star magic. I am
assuming
they granted it, since you are still alive."
"Still
alive^" I sat up straighter. "Do you say I could
have
died?"
Duncan
was hugging his chest. "It is a thing only rarely
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 205
done,
and then only because there is no other choice. The
risk
is—great. In more than six hundred years, only two men
have
survived the ceremony."
I
swallowed against the sudden dryness in my mouth.
"Three,
now."
Two."
Duncan did not smile. "I was counting you
before."
I stared
at Finn. "Why?"
"We
needed it for Homana." He looked at neither of us.
His
attention was fixed on the sword he held in his hands.
"We
needed it for the Cheysuli."
"You
needed it for you," Duncan retorted. "You know
as well
as I only a warrior related by blood to the maker of
the
sword can ask the gods for the magic. It was your
chance
to to earn your jehans place. Hale is gone, but
Finn is
not. So the son wished to inherit the jehans
power."
Duncan looked at me. "The risk was not entirely
your
own. Had the petition been denied, the magic would
have
struck you both down."
I
looked at Finn's face. He was still pale, still angered
by
Duncan's reaction, and no doubt expecting the worst
from
me. I was not certain he did not deserve it.
"Why?"
I asked again.
Still
he stared at the stone. "I wanted to," he said, very
low.
"All my life I have wanted to ask it. To see if I was
my
jehans true son." I saw bitterness twist his face. "I had
less of
him than Duncan ... his hu'sala. I wanted what I
could
get; to get it, I would take it. So I did. And I would
do it
all again, because I know it would succeed."
.
"How?" Duncan demanded. 'There is no guarantee."
"This
time there is. You have only to look at the
prophecy."
Silence
filled the hall. And then Duncan broke it by
laughing.
It was not entirely the sound of humor, but the
tension
was shattered at last. "Prophecy," he said. "By the
gods,
my rujholli speaks of the prophecy. And speaks to
me
gods." He sighed and shook his head. "The first I do
often
enough, but the second—oh, the second . . . not for
a
bu'sala to do. No. Only a blood-son, not a foster-son."
For a
moment Duncan looked older than his years, and
very
tired. "I would trade it all to claim myself Hale's
206 Jennifer
Roberson
blood-son.
And you offer it up to the gods. A sacrifice. Oh
Finn,
will you never learn?"
Finn
looked at his older brother. Half-brother They
shared
only a mother, and yet looking at them I saw the
father
in them both, though he had sired only one
I said
nothing for a long moment. I could think of
nothing
to fill the silence. And then I rose at last and took
my
sword back from Finn, touching the blackened ruby- I
returned
the weapon to my sheath. "The thing is done," I
said finally.
"The risk was worth the asking And I would
do it
all again "
Finn
looked at me sharply- "Even knowing?"
"Even
knowing." I shrugged and sat down in the throne.
"What
else was there to do?"
Duncan
sighed. He put out his hand and made the
familiar
gesture, a spread-fingered hand palm-up.
I
smiled and made it myself.
EIGHTEEN
•'- I
received the Solindish delegation dressed befitting my
•/
rank. Gone was the cracked and stained ringmail-and-
T
leather armor of the soldier; in its place I wore velvets and
^
brocaded satins of russet and amber. My hair and beard I
.^had
had freshly trimmed, smoothed with scented oil; I felt
^.,Bearly
a king for the first time in my life.
;aK,' I
knew, as the six Solindish noblemen paced the length
fc'bf
the Great Hall, they were not" seeing the man they
^expected.
Nearly seven years before, when Bellam had
^taken
Homana, I had been a boy. Tall as a man and as
^"strong,
but lacking the toughness of adulthood. It seemed
^.so
long ago as I sat upon my Lion. I recalled when
^
Keough's son had divested me of my sword and thrown me
^f into
irons. I recalled the endless nights when sleep eluded
"^fliy
mind. I recalled my complete astonishment when Alix
&faad
come to my aid. And I smiled.
^t- The
Solindishmen did not understand the smile, but it
X'did
not matter. Let them think what they would; let them
y judge
me as I seemed. It would all come quite clear in
'time.
s' I
was not alone within the hall. Purposely I had chosen
^B
Cheysuli honor guard. Finn, Duncan and six other war-
?riors
ranged themselves on either side of the throne,
treading
across the dais. They were solemn-faced. Silent.
/atoning
from impassive yellow eyes.
Rowan,
who had escorted the Solindish delegation into
I 207 I
208
Jennifer Roberson
the
Homanan-bedecked hall, introduced each man Duke
this.
Baron that; Solindish titles 1 did not know. He did it
well,
did my young Cheysuli-Homanan captain, with the
proper
note of neutrality in a tone also touched with
condescension.
We were the victors, they the defeated,
and
they stood within my palace.
Essien.
The man of highest rank and corresponding
arrogance.
He wore indigo blue, of course, but someone
had
picked the crest from the left breast of his silken
tunic.
I could see the darker outline ofBellam's rising sun,
a
subtle way of giving me insult, so subtle I could do
nothing.
Outwardly he did not deny me homage. Did I
protest,
he could no doubt blame the coffer-draining war
for the
loss of better garments. So I let him have his
rebellion.
I could afford it, now.
His
dark brown hair was brushed smoothly back from a
high
forehead, and his hands did not fidget. But his brown
eyes
glittered with something less than respect when he
made his
bow of homage. "My lord," he said in a quiet
tone,
"we come on behalf of Solinde to acknowledge the
sovereignty
of Carillon the Mujhar."
"You
are aware of our terms?"
"Of
course, my lord." He glanced briefly at the other
five.
"It has all been thoroughly discussed. Solinde, as
you
know, is defeated. The crown is—uncontested." I saw
the
muscles writhe briefly in his jaw. "We have no king
... no
Solindish king." His eyes came up to mine and I
saw the
bitterness in them. "There is a vacancy, my lord,
which
we humbly request you fill."
"Does
Bellam have no heirs?" I smiled a small, polite
smile
that said what I wanted to say. A matter of form,
discussing
what all knew. "Ellic has been dead for years,
of
course, but surely Bellam had bastards."
"Aplenty,"
Essien agreed grimly. "Nonetheless, none is
capable
of rallying support for our cause. There would
be—contention."
He smiled thinly "We wish to avoid
such
difficulties, now our lord is dead. You have proven—
sufficient—for
the task."
Sufficient.
Essien had an odd way of speaking, spicing
his
conversation with pauses and nuances easily under-
stood
by one who had the ears to understand it. Having
THE
SONG OF HOMANA Z09
grown
up in a king's court surrounded by his advisors and
courtiers,
I did.
"Well
enough," I agreed, when I had made him wait
long
enough. "I will continue to be—sufficient—to the
task.
But mere was another request we made."
Essien's
face congested. "Aye, my lord Mujhar. The
question
of proper primogeniture." He took a deep breath
mat
moved the indigo tunic. "As a token of Solinde's
complete
compliance with your newly won overlordship of
our
land, we offer the hand of the Princess Electra, Bellam's
only
daughter. Bellam's only surviving legitimate child."
His
nostrils pinched in tightly. "A son born of Solinde and
Homana
would be fit to hold the throne."
"Proper
primogeniture," I said reflectively. "Well enough,
we will
take the lady to wife. You may tell her, for Caril-
lon the
Mujhar, that she has one month in which to gather
the
proper clothing and household attendants. If she does
not
come in that allotted time, we will send the Cheysuli
for
her."
Essien
and the others understood quite clearly. I knew
what
they saw: eight warriors clad in leather and barbaric,
shining
gold, with their weapons hung about them. Knife
and
bow, and lir. They had only to-look at the lir in order
to
understand.
Essien
bowed his head in acknowledgment of my order.
?fi The
conversation was finished, it seemed, but I had one
^"
final question to ask. "Where is Tynstar?"
S^ Essien's head snapped up. He put one hand
to his hair
^ and
smoothed it; a habitual, nervous gesture. His throat
i^inoved
in a swallow, then again. He glanced quickly to the
^
others, but they offered nothing. Essien had the rank.
^ "I do not know," he said finally,
excessively distinct.
X-
"^° man can ^ wnere tne Ihlmi goes, no man, my lord.
^He
merely goes." He offered a thin smile that contained
^•'subtle
triumph as well as humor ... at my expense. "No
^ doubt
he plans to thwart you how he can, and he will, but
^1 can
offer you nothing of what he intends. Tynstar
^is—Tynstar."
^
"And no doubt he will be abetted," I said without
.'inflection.
"In Solinde, the Ihlini hold power—for now,
210
JenrrifT Roberson
But
their realm—his realm—shall be a shadow of what it
was,
for we have the Cheysuli now."
Essien
looked directly at Finn. "But even in Solinde we
have
heard of the thing that dilutes the magic. How it is a
Cheysuli
loses his power when faced with an Ihlini." His
eyes
came back to me. "Is that not true?"
I
smiled. "Why not ask Tynstar? Surely he could explain
what
there is between the races."
I
watched his expression closely. I expected—hoped—I
would
see the subtleties of his knowledge, betraying what
he
knew. He should, if he knew where Tynstar was, give
it away
with something in his manner, even remaining
silent.
But I saw little of triumph in his eyes. Only a faint
frown,
as if he considered something he wished to know,
and
realized he could not know it until he discovered the
source.
He had not lied.
I moved
my hand in a gesture of finality- "We will set a
Homanan
regency in the city of Lestra. Royce is a trusted,
incorruptible
man. He will have sovereignty over Solinde
in our
name, representing our House, until such a time as
we have
a son to put on the throne. Serve my regent well,
and you
will find we are a just lord."
Essien
shut his teeth. "Aye, my lord Mujhar."
"And
we send some Cheysuli with him." I smiled at
the
Solindman's expression of realization. "Now you may
go."
They
went, and I turned to look at the Cheysuli.
Duncan's
smile was slow. "Finn has taught you well."
"And
with great difficulty." The grin, crooked as usual,
creased
the scar on Finn's dark face. "But I think the time
spent
was well worth it, judging by what I have seen."
I got
up from the throne and stretched, cracking the
joints
in my back. "Electra will not be pleased to hear
what I
have said."
"Electra
will not be pleased by anything you have to say
or
do," Finn retorted. "But then, did you want a quiet
marriage
I doubt not you could have asked for someone
else."
I
laughed at him, stripping my brow of the golden
circlet.
It had been Shame's once, crusted with diamonds
and
emeralds. And now it was mine. "A tedious marriage
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 211
is no
marriage at all, I have heard." I glanced at Duncan.
"But
you would know better than I."
For a
moment he resembled Finn with the same ironic
grin.
Then he shrugged. "Alix has never been tedious."
I
tapped the circlet against my hand, thinking about the
woman.
"She will come," I muttered, frowning. "She will
come,
and I will have to be ready for her. It is not as if I
took
some quiet little virgin to tremble in my bed . . . this
is
Electra-"
"Aye,"
Finn said dryly. "The Queen of Homana, you
make
her."
I
looked at Rowan. He was very silent, but he also
avoided
my eyes. The warriors avoided nothing, but I had
never
been able to read them when they did not wish it.
As for
Duncan and Finn, I knew well enough what they
thought.
I wiU
take a viper to my bed ... I sighed. But then I
recalled
what power that viper had over men in general,
myself
in particular, and I could not suppress the tighten-
ing of
my loins By the gods, it might be worth risking my
life
for one night in her bed . . . well, I would.
I
looked again at Finn. "It brings peace to Homana."
He did
not smile. "Whom do you seek to convince?"
I
scowled and went down the dais steps. "Rowan, come
with
me, I will give you the task of fetching my lady
mother
from Joyenne as soon as she can travel And there
is Tony
to fetch, as well . . . though no doubt Lachlan
would
be willing to do it." I sighed and turned back.
"Finn.
Will you see to it Torry has escort here?"
He
nodded, saying nothing, I thought him still disap-
proving
of my decision to wed Electra. But it did not
matter.
I was not marrying Finn.
A sound.
Not
precisely a noise, merely not silence. A breath of
'
sound, subtle and sibilant, and I sat up at once in my bed.
My hand
went to the knife at my pillow, for even in
Homana-Mujhar
I would not set aside the habit. My sword
and
knife had been bedfellows for too long; even within
the
tester bed I felt unsafe without my weapons. But as I
-jerked
the draperies aside and slid out of the bed, I knew
212
J*nntfT Robwon
myself
well taken. No man is proof against Cheysuli
violence.
I saw
the hawk first. He perched upon a chair back,
unblinking
in the light from the glowing torch. The torch
was in
Duncan's hand. "Come," was all he said.
1 put
the knife down. Once again, a Cheysuli sum-
moned
me out of the depths of a night. But this one I
hardly
knew; what I did know merely made me suspi-
cious.
"Where? And why?"
He
smiled a little. In the torchlight his face was a mask,
lacking
definition. His eyes yellowed against the light,
with
pinpricks for pupils. The hawk-shaped earring glinted
in his
hair. "Would you have me put off my knife?
I felt
the heat and color running quickly into my face,
"Why?"
I retorted, stung. "You could slay me as easily
without."
Duncan
laughed. "I never thought you would/ear me—"
"Not
fear, precisely," I answered. "You would never
slay
me, not when you yourself have said how important a
link I
am in your prophecy. But I do suspect the motives
for
what you do,"
"Carillon,"
he chided, "tonight I will make you a king."
I felt
the prickle in my scalp. "Make me one?" I asked
with
elaborate distinctness, "or another?"
"Come
with me and find out."
I put
on breeches and shirt, the first things I could find.
And
boots, snugged up to my knees. Then I followed him,
even as
he bid Cat remain, and went with him as he led
me
through my palace.
He
walked with utter confidence, as a man does who
knows a
place well. And yet I knew Duncan had never
spent
excess time in Homana-Mujhar. Hale had, I knew,
brought
him to the palace at least once, but he had been a
child,
too young to know the mazes of hallways and cham-
bers.
And yet he went on through such places as if he had
been
bom here,
He took
me, of course, to the Great Hall, And there he
took
down a second torch from its bracket on the wall,
lighted
it with his own and handed them both to me.
"Where
we are going," he said, "it is dark. But there will
be air
to breathe."
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 213
I felt
the hair rise on the back of my neck. But I
refrained
from asking him where. And so I watched in
silence
and astonishment as he knelt by the firepit rim.
He
began to pull aside the unlighted logs. Ash floated
up to
settle on his hair. Suddenly he was an old man
without
the wrinkles, gray instead of black, while the gold
glowed
on his arms. I coughed as the ash rose high enough
to clog
my nose, and then I sneezed. But Duncan was
done
rearranging my firepit quickly enough; he reached
down
and caught a ring of iron I had never seen.
I
scowled, wondering what other secrets Duncan knew
of
Homana-Mujhar. And then I watched, setting myself to
be
patient, and saw him frown with concentration. It took
both
hands and all of his strength, but he jerked the ring
upward.
It was
fastened to a hinged iron plate that covered a
hole.
Slowly he dragged up the plate until the hole lay
open.
He leaned the cover, spilling its coating of ash,
against
the firepit rim, then grimaced as he surveyed the
ruin of
his leathers.
I
leaned forward to peer into the hole. Stairs. I frowned.
"Where—F
"Come
and see." Duncan took back his torch and stepped
down
into the hole. He disappeared, step by step. Uneas-
ily, I
followed.
There
was air, as he had promised. Stale and musty, but
air.
Both torches continued to burn without guttering, so I
knew we
would be safe. And so I went down with Dun-
can,
wondering how it was he knew of such a place.
The
staircase was quite narrow, the steps shallow. I had
to duck
to keep from scraping my head- Duncan, nearly as
tall,
did as well, but I thought Finn would fit. And then I
wished,
with the familiar frisson of unease, that he was
with me
as well. But no. I had sent him to my sister, and
left
myself to his brother's intentions.
"Here."
Duncan descended two more steps to the end
of the
staircase into a shallow stone closet. He put his
fingers
to the stone, and I saw the runes, old and green
with
dampness and decay. Duncan's brown fingers, now
gray
with ash, left smudges on the wall. He traced out the
214
J«nnKT Robfson
runes,
saying something beneath his breath, and then he
nodded.
"Here."
"What
do—" I did not bother to finish. He pressed one
of the
stones and then leaned against the wall. A portion of
it
grated and turned on edge, falling inward.
Another
stairway—? No. A room. A vault. I grimaced.
Something
like a crypt.
Duncan
thrust his torch within and looked. Then he
withdrew
it and gestured me to go first.
I
regarded him with distinct apprehension that increased
with
every moment.
"Choose,"
Duncan said. "Go in a prince and come out a
Mujhar
... or leave now, and forever know yourself
lacking."
"I
lack nothing!" I said in rising alarm. "Am I not the
link
you speak about?"
"A
link must be properly forged." He looked past me to
the
rising staircase. "There lies your escape. Carillon. But
I think
you will not seek it. My rujholli would never serve
a
coward or a fool."
I bared
my teeth in a grin that held little of humor.
"Such
words will not work with me, shapechanger. I am
willing
enough to name myself both, does it give me a
chance
to survive. And unless you slay me, as you have
said
you would not do, I will come out of here a Mujhar
even if
I do not to into that room." I squinted as my torch
sputtered
and danced. "You are not Finn, you see. and for
all I
know I should trust you—we have never been easy
with
each other."
"No,"
he agreed. "But what kept us from that was a
woman,
and even Alix has no place here. This is for you to
do."
"You
left Cai behind." Somehow it incriminated him.
"Only
because here, in this place, he would be a super-
fluous
lir."
I
stared at him, almost gaping. Superfluous lir? Had
Duncan
said this? By the gods, if he indicated such a
willingness
to dispense with the other half'of his soul,
surely
I could trust him.
I
sighed. I swallowed against the tightness in my throat,
thrust
the torch ahead of me, and went in.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 215
Superfluous.
Aye, he would have been. For here were
all the
lir of the world, and no need for even one more.
It was
not a crypt. It was a memorial of sorts, or perhaps
a
chapel. Something to do with Cheysuli and lir, and their
gods.
For the walls were made of lir, lir upon lir, carved
into
the pale cream marble.
Torchlight
ran over the walls like water, tracking the
veining
of gold. From out of the smooth, supple stone
burst
an eagle, beak agape and talons striking. A bear,
hump-backed
and upright, one paw reaching out to buffet.
A fox,
quick and brush-tailed, head turned over its shoulder.
And the
boar, tusks agleam, with a malevolent, tiny eye.
More.
So many more. I felt my breath catch in my
throat
as 1 turned in a single slow circle, staring at all the
walls.
Such wealth, such skill, such incomparable beauty,
and
buried so deeply within the ground.
/
A hawk,
touching wingtips with a falcon. A mountain cat,
so
lovely, leaping in the stone. And the wolf; of course,
the
wolf, Storr-like with gold in its eyes. Every inch, from
ceiling
to floor, was covered with the lir.
Superfluous.
Aye. But so was I.
I felt
tears burn in my eyes. Pain, unexpected, was in
my
chest. How futile it was, suddenly, to be Homanan
instead
of Cheysuli; to lack the blessings of the gods and
the
magic of the lir. How utterly insignificant was Carillon
of
Homana.
"Ja'hai,"
Duncan said. "Ja'hai, cheysu, Mujhar."
I
snapped my head around to stare at him. He stood
inside
the vault, torch raised, looking at the lir with an
expression
of wonder in his face. "What are those words?"
I
demanded. "Finn said those words when he talked to
the
gods, and even you said he should not have done it."
"That
was Finn." The sibilants whispered in the shad-
ows of
the lir. "This is a clan-leader who says them, and a
man who
might have been Mujhar." He smiled as my
mouth
flew open to make an instant protest. "I do not
want
it. Carillon. If I did, I would not have brought you
down
here. It is here, within thejehana's Womb, that you
will be
bom again. Made a true Mujhar."
"The
words," I repeated steadfastly. "What do they
mean?"
216
Jcnnffar Roberson
"You
have learned enough of the Old Tongue from Finn
to know
it is not directly translatable. There are nuances,
unspoken
words, meanings requiring no speech. Like
gestures—"
He made the sign oftahlmorra. "}a hai, cheysu,
Mujhar
is, in essence, a prayer to the gods. A petition. A
Homanan
might say; Accept this man; this Mujhar."
I
frowned. "It does not sound like a prayer."
"A
petition—or prayer—such as the one Finn made—
and now
/ make—requires a specific response. The gods
will
always answer. With life ... or with death."
Alarm
rose again. "Then I might die down here—?"
"You
might. And this time you will face that risk alone."
"You
knew about it," I said suddenly. "Was it Hale who
told
you?"
Duncan's
face was calm, "Hale told me what it was. But
most
Cheysuli know of its existence." A faint smile ap-
peared.
"Not so horrifying. Carillon. It is only the Womb
of the
Earth."
The
grue ran down my spine. "What womb? What
earth?
Duncan—"
He
pointed. Before, I had looked at the walls, ignoring
the
floor entirely. But this time I looked, and I saw the pit
in the
precise center of the vault.
Oubliette.
A man could die in one of those-
1 took
an instinctive step back, nearly brushing against
Duncan
just inside the door, but he merely reached out
and
took the torch from my hand.-! turned swiftly, reach-
ing for
a knife I did not have, but he set each torch in a
bracket
near the door so the vault was filled with light.
Light?
It spilled into the oubliette and was swallowed
utterly.
"You
will go into the Womb," he said calmly, "and
when
you come out, you will have been born a Mujhar."
I
cursed beneath my breath. Short of breaking his neck—
and I
was not at all certain even I could accomplish
that—I
had no choice but to stay in the vault. But the
Womb
was something else. "Just—go in? How? Is there a
rope?
Hand holes?" I paused, knowing the thing was
futile.
Oubliettes are built to keep people in. This one
would
oner no aid in getting out.
"You
must jump."
THE
SONG OF HOMANA Z17
"Jump."
My hands shut up into fists that drove my nails
into my
palms. "Duncan—"
"Sooner
in, sooner out." He did not smile, but I saw the
glint
of amusement in his eyes. "The earth is like most
jehanas.
Carillon: she is harsh and quick to anger and
sometimes
impatient, but she ever gives other heart. She
gives
her child life. In this case, it is a Mujhar we seek to
bring
into the world."
"I
am in the world," I reminded him. "I have already
been
born once, birthed by Gwynneth of Homana. Once
is more
than enough—at least that one I cannot remem-
ber.
Let us quit this mummery and go elsewhere; I have
no
taste for wombs."
His
hand was on my shoulder. "You will stay. We
will
finish this. If I have to, I will make you."
I
turned my back on him and paced to the farthest
corner,
avoiding the edge of the pit. There I waited,
leaning
against the stone, and fett the fluted wings of a
falcon caress
my neck. It made me stand up again.
"You
are not Cheysuli," Duncan said. "You cannot be
Cheysuli.
But you can be made to better understand what
it is
to think and feet tike a Cheysuli."
"And
this will make me a man?" I could not entirely
hide my
resentment.
"It
will make you, however briefly, one of us." His face
was
solemn in the torchlight. "It will not last. But you will
know,
for a moment, what it is to be Cheysuli. A child of
the
gods." He made the gesture oftahlnwrra. "And it will
make
you a better Mujhar."
My
throat was dry. "Mujhar is a Cheysuli word, is it
not?
And Homana?"
"Mujhar
means king," he said quietly. "Homana is a
phrase:
of all blood."
"King
of all blood," I felt the tension in my belly "So,
since
you cannot put a Cheysuli on the throne—yet—you
will do
what else you can to make me into one "
"Ja'hai,
cheysu," he answered, "ja'hai, cheysu, Mujhar."
'
No!" I shouted. "Will you condemn me to the gods?
Duncan—I
am afraid—"
The
word echoed in the vault. Duncan merely waited.
It
nearly mastered me. I felt the sweat break out and
218
Jennifer Roberson
run
from my armpits; the stench of fear coated my body. A
shudder
wracked my bones and set my flesh to rising. I
wanted
to relieve myself, and my bowels had turned to
water.
"A
man goes naked before the gods."
So, he
would have me strip as well. Grimly, knowing he
would
see the shrinking of my genitals, I pulled off my
boots,
my shirt, and lastly the snug dark breeches. And
there
was no pity in Duncan's eyes, or anything of amuse-
ment.
Merely compassion, and perfect comprehension.
He
moved to the torches. He took each from the brack-
ets and
carried them out into the stairway closet. The door
to the
vault stood open, but I knew it was not an exit.
"When
I shut up the wall, you must jump."
He shut
up the wall.
And I
jumped—
NINETEEN
Jahai,
cheysu, Mujhar—
The
words echoed in my head.
ja'hai,
cheysu, Mujhar—
I fell.
And I fell. So far. . . Into blackness; into a
^
perfect emptiness. So far. . . .
I
screamed.
The
sound bounced off the walls of the oubliette; the
round,
sheer walls I could not see. "Redoubled, the scream
came
back and vibrated in my bones.
I fell.
I
wondered if Duncan heard me. I wondered—I won-
dered—I
did not. I simply fell.
Ja'hai,
cheysu, Mujhar—
It
swallowed me whole, the oubliette; I fell back into
the
Womb. And could not say whether it would give me
;' up
again—
~ Duncan, oh Duncan, you did not give me
proper warning
, . .
But is there a proper way? Or is it only to fall and, in
falling,
learn the proper way?
Down.
' I was stopped. I was caught. I was halted
in mid-fall.
Something
looped out around my ankles and wrists. Hands?
No.
Something else; something else that licked out from
! the
blackness and caught me tightly at wrists and ankles,
^chest
and hips. And I hung, belly-down, suspended in
Ltotal
darkness.
I 219 I
220
Jennifer Roberson
I
vomited. The bile spewed out of my mouth from the
depths
of my belly and fell downward into the pit. My
bladder
and bowels emptied, so that I was nothing but a
shell
of quivering flesh. I hung in perfect stillness, not
daring
to move, to breathe; praying to stay caught by
whatever
had caught me.
Cods—do
not let me faU again—not again—
Netting?
Taut, thin netting, perhaps, hung from some
unseen
protrusions in the roundness of the oubliette. 1
had
seen nothing at the lip of the pit, merely the pit itself,
yet it
was possible the oubliette was not entirely smooth.
Perhaps
there was even a way out.
The
ropes did not tear my flesh. They simply held me
immobile,
so that my body touched nothing but air. I did
not sag
from arms and legs because of the ropes at chest
and
hips. I was supported, in a manner of speaking, and
yet
remained without it.
A
cradle. And the child held face-down to float within
the
Womb.
"Duncan?"
I whispered it, fearing my voice would upset
the
balance. "Is it supposed to be this way?"
But
Duncan was gone, leaving me completely alone,
and I
knew why he had done it. Finn had said little of
Cheysuli
manhood rites, since most warriors were judged
fully
grown by the bonding of the lir, but I thought there
might
be more. And I would remain ignorant of it, being
Homanan
and therefore unblessed, unless this was the
way to
discover what made the Cheysuli, Cheysuli.
Tonight
I will make you a king.
A king?
I wondered. Or a madman? Fear can crush a
soul.
I did
not move. I hung. I listened. I wondered if Dun-
can would
return to see how I fared, I would hear him. I
would
hear the grate of stone upon stone, even the subde
silence
of his movements. I would hear him because I
listened
so well, with the desperation of a man wishing to
keep
his mind. And if he came back, I would shout for him
to let
me out.
Probably
I would beg.
Co in a
prince and come out a Mujhar.
Gods,
would it be worth it?
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 221
•^
f
fr
^~
Air. I
breathed. There was no flavor to it, no stench to
make it
foul. Just air. From somewhere trickled the air
that
kept me alive; perhaps there were holes I could use
to
escape.
I hung
in total silence. When I turned my head, slowly,
I heard
the grating pop of spinal knots untying. I heard
my hair
rasp against my shoulders. Hardly sounds. Mostly
whispers.
And yet I heard them.
I heard
also the beating begin: pa-thump, pa-thump,
pa-thump.
Footsteps?
No. Duncan? No.
Pa-thump,
pa-thump, pa-thump.
I heard
the wind inside my head, the raucous hissing
roar.
Noise, so much noise, hissing inside my head. I shut
my eyes
and tried to shut off my ears.
Pa-thump,
pa-thump, pa-thump.
I hung-
Naked and quite alone, lost within the darkness.
The
Womb of the Earth. A child again, I was; an un-
born soul
caught within the Womb. It was the beating of
my own
heart I heard; the noise of silence inside my head.
A child
again, was I, waiting to be born.
"Duncannnn—!"
1 shut
my eyes. I hung. The chut of fear began to fade. I
lost my
sense of touch, the knowledge I was held.
I
floated.
.
Silence.
Floating—
No
warmth. No cold. Nothingness. I floated in the
absence
of light, of sound, of touch, taste and smell. I did
not
exist.
I
waited with endless patience.
Ringing.
Like sword upon sword. Ringing. Noise—
It
filled my head until I could taste it. I could smell it-
It sat
on my tongue with the acrid tang of blood. Had I
bitten
myself? No. I had no blood. Only flesh, depending
from
the ropes.
My
eyes, I knew, were open. They stared. But I was
blind.
I saw only darkness, the absolute absence of light,
222
Jennifer Roberson
And
then it came up and struck me in the face, and the
light
of the world fell upon me.
I cried
out. Too much, too much—will you blind me
with the
light?
It will
make you, however briefly, one of us.
"Duncan?"
The
whisper I mouthed was a shout. I recoiled in my
ropes
and recalled I had a body. A body. With two arms,
two
legs, a head. Human. Male. Carillon of Homana.
You
will know, for a moment, what it is to be Cheysuli.
But I
did not.
I knew
nothing.
I
thought only of being born.
I heard
the rustling of wings. The scrape of talons. Cai?
No.
Duncan had left him behind.
Soughing
of wings spread, stretching, folding, preening.
The
pipping chirp of a falcon; the fierce shriek of a hunting
hawk.
The scream of an angry eagle.
Birds.
All around me birds. I felt the breath of their
wings
against my face, the caress of many feathers. How I
wanted
to join them, to feel the wind against my wings
and
know the freedom of the skies. To dance. Oh, to
dance
upon the wind—
I felt
the subtle seduction. I opened my mouth and
shouted:
"I am man, not bird! Man, not beast! Man, not
shapechanger!"
Silence
soothed me. Pa-thump, pa-thump, pa-thump.
Whispering.
DemonDemonDemon—
I
floated.
DemonDemonDemon—
I
stirred. No.
SHAPEchangerSHAPEchangerSHAPEchanger—
NoNoNo.
I smiled. ManManMan.
YouShiftYouShtftYouShtft—
Gods'
blessing, I pointed out. Cannot be denied.
BeastBeast
Beast—
No'No!No!
I
floated. And I became a beast.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 223
I ran.
Four-legged, I ran. With a tail slashing behind
me, I
ran. And knew the glory of such freedom.
The
warm earth beneath my paws, catching in the curv-
ing
nails. The smells of trees and sky and grass and brush.
The
joyousness of playful flight, to leap across the creeks.
Ilie
hot red meat of prey taken down, the taste of flesh in
my
mouth. But most of all the freedom, the utter, perfect
freedom,
to cast off cares and think only of the day. The
moment.
Not yesterday, not tomorrow; the day. The mo-
ment.
Now.
And to
know myself a lir.
Lir? I
stopped. I stood in the shadow of a wide-boled
beech.
The glittering of sunlight through the leaves spat-
tered
gems across my path.
Lir?
Wolf.
Like Storr: silver-coated, amber-eyed. With such
grace
as a man could never know.
How? I
asked. How is it done?
Finn
had never been able to tell me in words I could
-understand.
Lir and warrior and lir, he had said, knowing
no
other way. To part them was to give them over to
death,
be it quick or slow. The great yawning emptiness
would
lead directly into madness, and sooner death than
such an
end.
For the
first time I knew the shapechange. I felt it in
my
bones, be they wolfs or man's. I felt the essence of
myself
run out into the soil until the magic could be
tapped.
The
void. The odd, distorted image of a man as he
exchanged
his shape for another. He changed his shape at
will,
by giving over the human form to the earth. It spilled
out of
him, sloughing off his bones, even as the bones
themselves
altered. What was not needed in fir-shape,
such as
clothing, weapons and too much human weight,
went
into storage in the earth, protected by the magic. An
exchange.
Give over excess and receive the smaller form.
Magic.
Powerful magic, rooted in the earth. I felt the
heavy
hair rise upon my hackles, so that I saw the trans-
formation.
Of soul as well as flesh.
I knew
the void for what it was. I understood why it
224 I
JennlfT Robttrxon
existed.
The gods had made it as a ward against the
dazzled
eyes of humans who saw the change. For to see
flesh
and bone before you melt into the ground, to be
remade
into another shape, might be too much for even
the
strongest to bear. And so mystery surrounded the
change,
and magic, and the hint of sorcery. No man,
seeing
the change for what it was, would ever name the
Cheysuli
men.
And
now, neither could I.
The
fear came down to swallow me whole and I recoiled
against
my ropes.
Ropes.
I hung in the pit. A man, not a wolf, not a beast.
But
until I acknowledged what the Cheysuli were, 1 would
never
be Muj'har.
Homana
was Cheysuli.
I felt
the madness come out of my mouth. "Accept!" I
shouted.
"Accept this man, this Mujhar!"
Silence
"Ja'hai!"
I shouted. "Ja'hai, cheysu. Ja'hai—Ja'hai, cheysu,
Mujhar!"
"Carillon."
"Ja'hai,"
I panted. "Ja'hai!" 0 gods, accept 0 gods,
acceptAcceptAccept—
"Carillon."
If they
did not—if they did not—
"Carillon."
Flesh
on flesh. Flesh on flesh. A hand supporting my
head.
"Jehana?"
I rasped. "Jehana? Ja'hai. . .jehana.ja'hai—"
Two
hands were on my head. They held it up. They
cradled
it, like a child too weak to lift himself up. I lay
against
the cold stone floor on my back, and a shadow was
kneeling
over me.
My
blinded eyes could only see shape. Male. Not my
Jehana.
"Jehan?"
I gasped.
'No,"
he said. "Rujholli. In this, for this moment, we
are."
The hands tightened a moment. "Rujho, it is over."
"Ja'hai—?"
'Ja'hai-na."
he said soothingly. "Ja'hai-na Homana
Mujhar.
You are born."
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 225
BomBomBom.
"Ja'hai-na?"
"Accepted,"
he said gently. "The king of all blood is
Jbom."
.. The
Homanan was back on my tongue, but the voice
Was
hardly human. "But I am not." Suddenly, I knew it.
"I
am only a Homanan."
"For
four days you have been Cheysuli. It will be
trough."
I
swallowed. "There is no light. I can barely see you."
i^Ul I
could see was the darker shape of his body against
,Ae
cream-colored walls, and the looming of the Ur.
,
"I left the torch in the staircase and me door is mostly
ihut.
Until you are ready, it'is best this way."
My eyes
ached. It was from the light, scarce though it
was, as
it crept around the opening in the wall. It gleamed
on his
gold and nearly blinded me with its brilliance, it
made
the scar a black line across his face.
Scar.
Not Duncan. Finn.
"Finn—"
I tried to sit up and could not. I lacked the
'litrength.
' He
pressed me down again. "Make no haste. You are
not—whole,
just yet."
f. Not
whole? What was I then—?
"Finn—"
I broke off. "Am I out? Out of the oubliette?"
]|(
seemed impossible to consider.
' He smiled-
It chased away the strain and weariness I
TWP
stretching the flesh of his shadowed face "You are out
-flf
the Womb of the Earth. Did I not say you had been
torn?"
^.
^ Tlie
marble was hard beneath my naked body. I drew
up my
legs so I could see my knees, to see if I was whole.
I was.
In body, if not in mind. "Am I gone mad? Is that
-»faat
you meant?"
'."
"Only a little, perhaps. But it will pass. It is not—" He
broke
off a moment. "It is not a thing we have done very
ten,
this forcing of a birth. It is never easy on the
&nt."
I sat
up then, thrusting against the cold stone floor.
uddenly
I was another man entirely. Not Carillon, Some-
ig
else. Something drove me up onto my knees. I
226
Jennifer Roberson
knelt,
facing Finn, staring into his eyes. So yellow, even
in the
darkness. So perfectly bestial—
I put
up a hand to my own. I could not touch the color
They
had been blue ... I wondered now what they were
I
wondered what I was . . .
"A
man," Finn said.
1 shut
my eyes. I sat very still in the darkness, knowing
light
only by the faint redness across my lids. I heard my
breathing
as I had heard it in the pit.
And
pa-thump, pa-thump, pa-thump.
"Ja'hai-na."
Finn said gently, "ja'hai-na Homana Mujhar."
I
reached out and caught his wrist before he could
respond.
I realized it had been the first time I had out-
thought
him, anticipating his movement. My fingers were
clamped
around his wrist as he had once clasped mine,
preparing
to cut it open. I had no knife, but he did. I had
only to
put out my other hand and take it.
I
smiled. It was flesh beneath my fingers, blood beneath
the
flesh. He would bleed as I had bled. A man, and
capable
of dying. Not a sorcerer, who might live forever
Not like
Tynstar. Cheysuli. not Ihlini.
I
looked at his hand. He did not attempt to move. He
merely
waited. "Is it difficult to accomplish?" I asked.
"When
you put your self into the earth, and take out
another
form? I have seen you do it. I have seen the
expression
on your face, while the face is still a face, and
not
hidden by the void." I paused. "There is a need in me
to
know."
The
dilation turned his eyes black. "There are no
Homanan
words—"
"Then
give me Cheysuli words. Say it in the Old Tongue."
He
smiled "Sul'harai, Carillon. That is what it is."
That I
had heard before. Once. We had sat up one night
in
Caledon, lost in our jugs ofusca, and spoke as men will
about
women, saying what we liked. Much had not been
said
aloud, but we had known. In our minds had been
Alix-
But out of that night had come a single complex word.
sul'harai.
It encompassed that which was perfect in the
union
of man and woman, almost a holy thing. And though
the
Homanan language lacked the proper words for him. I
had
heard it in his tone.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 227
Sul'harai.
When a man was a woman and a woman a
man,
two halves of a whole, for that single fleeting instant.
And so
at last I knew the shapechange.
Finn
moved to the nearest wall and sat against it, rest-
ing his
forearms on his drawn-up knees. Black hair fell
into
his face, it needed cutting, as usual. But what I
noticed
most was how he resembled the ^ir-shapes upon
(he
wall, even in human form. There is something preda-
tory
about the Cheysuli. Something that makes them wild.
"When
did you come back?"
He
smiled. "That is a Carillon question; I think you are
yecovered."
He shifted. Behind him was a hawk with open
.
wings- The stone seemed to encase his shoulders so that
' %e
appeared to be sprouting wings. But no, that was his
brother's
gift. "Two days ago I came. The palace was in an
uproar:
the Mujhar, it was said, had gone missing. Assassi-
nation?
No. But it took Duncan to tell me, quite calmly,
-he had
brought you here to be born."
• I
scrubbed an arm across my head. "Did you know
about
this place?"
"I
knew it was here. Not where, precisely. And I did
not
know he had intended such a thiag." His brow creased.
\
"He reprimanded me because I had risked you in the star
J.aaoagic,
and yet he brought you down here and risked you
fIftB
over again. I do not understand him."
^
"He might have been Mujhar," I said reflectively, feel-
'^ing
the rasp in my throat. "Duncan, instead of me. Had
^ .the
Homanans never ruled ..."
^ Finn
shrugged. "But they—you—did. It does not mat-
'^ter
what might have been. Duncan is clan-leader, and for
^a
Cheysuli it is enough."
I put
up a hand and looked at it. It was flesh stretched
^'-Over
bone. Callused flesh. And yet I thought it had been a
ifcpaw.
"Dreams," I murmured.
||T
"Divulge nothing," Finn advised. "You are the Mujhar,
js not
I, you should keep to yourself what has happened. It
awakes
the magic stronger."
^ The
hand flopped down to rest across my thigh. I felt
'QO
weak to move. "What magic? I am Homanan."
,
"But you have been born again from the Womb of the
Sarth.
You lack the proper blood, it is true, and the
228
Jennifer Rob«rson
fir-gifts
as well . . . but you share in a bit of the magic."
He
smiled, "Knowing what you survived should be magic
enough."
Emptiness
filled my belly. "Food. Gods, I need food!"
"Wait
you, then. I have something for you." Finn rose
and
went away, stepping out of the vault. I stared blankly
at all
the walls until he came back again. A wineskin was in
his
hand.
I
drank, then nearly spat it out. "Usca\"
"Jehana's
milk," he agreed. "You need it, now. Drink.
Not
much, but a little. Stop dribbling like a baby."
Weakly
I tried to smile and nearly failed in the attempt.
"Gods,
do I not petfood—"
'Then
put on your clothes and we will go out of here."
Clothes.
Unhappily, I looked at the pile. Shirt, breeches,
boots.
I doubted I could manage even the shirt.
And
then I recalled how I had lost control of my body in
the
oubliette, and the heat rushed up to swallow my
flesh.
"Gods,"
I said finally, "I cannot go like this—"
Finn
fetched the clothing, brought it back and began
putting
it on me, as if I were a child. "You are too big to
carry,'
he said when I stood, albeit wobbly, in my boots.
"And
it might somewhat tarnish your reputation. Carillon
the
Mujhar, drunk in some corner of his palace. What
would
the servants say?"
I told
him, quite clearly, what I thought of servants
speaking
out of turn. I did it in the argot of the army we
had
shared, and it made him smile. And then he grasped
my arm
a moment.
"Ja'hai-na.
There is no humiliation."
I
turned unsteadily toward the door and saw the light
beyond.
I wavered on my feet.
"Walk,
my lord Mujhar. Your jelwna and rujolla are
here."
"Stairs."
"Climb,"
he advised. "Unless you prefer to fly."
For a
moment, just a moment, I wondered if I could.
And
then I sighed, knowing I could not. and started to
climb
the stairs.
TWENTY
I
stared back at myself from the glitter of the polished
/-Silver
plate set against the wall. My hair was cut so that no
^nger
did it tangle on my shoulders, and the beard was
primmed.
I was less unkempt than ] had been in years. I
'hardly
knew myself.
"No
more the mercenary-prince,"^ Finn said.
I could
see him in the plate. Like me, he dressed for
^the
occasion, though he wore leathers instead of velvet.
^yhite
leathers, so that his skin looked darker still. And
^Igold.
On arms, his ear, his belt. And the royal blade with
,^fts
rampant lion. Though at a wedding no man went armed
iSsave
the Mujhar with his Cheysuli sword, the Cheysuli
*Were
set apart. Finn more so than most, I thought; he was
lore
barbarian than man with all his gold; more warrior
ian
wedding guest.
"And
you?" I asked. "What are you?"
He
smiled. "Your liege man, my lord Mujhar."
I
turned away from the plate, frowning. "How much
me?"
"Enough,"
he returned. "Carillon—do not fret so. Do
ou
think she will not come?"
"There
are hundreds of people assembled in the Great
(all,"
I said irritably. "Should Electra choose to humiliate
Ie by
delaying the ceremony, she will accomplish it.
ready I
feel ill." I put one hand against my belly. "By
gods—I
should never have agreed to this—"
I 229 I
230
Jennifer Roberson
Finn
laughed. "Think of her as an enemy, then, and not
merely
a bride. For all that, she is one. Now, how would
you
face her?"
I
scowled and touched the circlet on my head, settling it
more
comfortably. "I would sooner face her in bed than
before
the priest."
"You
told me it was to make peace between the realms.
Have
you decided differently?"
I
sighed and put my hand on the hilt of my sword. A
glance
at it reminded me of what Tynstar had done, the
ruby
still shone black. "No," I answered. "It must be
done.
But I would sooner have my freedom."
"Ah,"
His brows slid up. "Now you see the sense in a
solitary
life. Were you me—" But he broke off, shrugging.
"You
are not. And had I a choice—" Again he shrugged.
"You
will do well enough."
"Carillon."
It was Tony in the doorway of my cham-
bers,
dressed in bronze-colored silk and a chaplet of pearls.
"Etectra
is nearly ready."
Something
very akin to fear surged through my body.
Then I
realized it was fear. "Oh gods—what do I do? How
do I go
through with this?" I looked at Finn. "I have been
a
fool—"
"You
are often that," Torry agreed, coming directly to
me to
pry my hand off the sword. "But for now, you will
have to
show the others you are not, particularly Electra.
Do you
think she will say nothing if you go to her like
this?"
She straightened the fit of my green velvet doublet,
though
my body-servant had tended it carefully.
Impatiently,
I brushed her hands aside. "Oh gods, there
is the
gift. I nearly forgot—" I moved past her to the
marble
table and pushed back the lid on the ivory casket.
In the
depths of blue velvet winked the silver. I reached
in and
pulled out the girdle dripping with pearls and sap-
phires.
The silver links would clasp Electra's waist very
low,
then hang down the front other skirts.
"Carillon!"
Torry stared. "Where did you find such a
thing?"
I
lifted the torque from the casket as well, a slender
silver
torque set with a single sapphire with a pearl on
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 231
either
side. There were earrings also, but I had no hands
for
those.
Finn's
hand shot out and grabbed the torque. I released
it,
surprised, and saw the anger in his eyes. "Do you know
what
these are?" he demanded.
Tourmaline
and I both stared at him. Finally I nodded.
"They
were Lindir's. Ail the royal jewels were brought to
me
three weeks ago, so I could choose some for Electra. I
thought
these—"
"Hale
made these." Finn's face had lost its color, yet the
scar
was a deep, livid red. "Myjehan fashioned these with
^uch
care as you have never known. And now you mean
them
for her?"
Slowly
I settled the girdle back into the ivory casket.
"Aye,"
I said quietly. "I am sorry—I did not know Hale
made
them But as for their disposition, aye. I mean them
for
Electra."
"You
cannot. They were Lindir's." His mouth was a
thin,
pale line. "I care little enough for the memory of the
Homanan
princess my jehan left us for, but I do care for
, what
he made. Give them to Torry instead."
I
glanced at my sister briefly and saw the answering
pallor
in her face. Well, I did not blame her. Without
shouting,
he made his feelings quite clear
I saw
how tightly his fingers clenched the torque. The
silver
was so fine I thought he might bend it into ruin.
Slowly
I put out my hand and gestured with my fingers.
"Carillon—"
Torry began, but I cut her off.
"Give
it over," I told Finn. "I am sorry, as I have said.
But
these jewels are meant for Electra. For the Queen."
Finn
did not release the torque. Instead, before I could
move,
he turned and set it around Torry's throat. "There,"
he said
bitterly. "Do you want it, take it from your rujholla."
"No!"
It was Torry, quite sharply. "You will not make
me the
bone of contention. Not over this." Swiftly she
pulled
the torque from her throat and put it into my
hands.
Their eyes locked for a single moment, and then
Finn
turned away.
- I set
the torque back into the casket and closed the lid.
il-For
a moment I stared at it, then picked it up in both
232
Jennifer Roberson
hands.
'Torry, will you take it^ It is my bride-gift to
her."
Finn's
hands came down on the casket. "No." He shook
his
head. "Does anyone give over the things my jehan
made,
it will be me. Do you see? It has to be done this
way."
"Aye,"
I agreed, "it does. And is it somehow avoided—"
"It
will not be." Finn bit off the words. "Am I not your
liege
man?" He turned instantly and left my chambers,
the casket
clutched in his hands. I put my hand to my
brow
and rubbed it, wishing I could take off the heavy
circlet.
"I
have never seen him so angry," Torry said finally.
"Not
even at the Keep when Alix made him spend his
time in
a pavilion, resting, when he wished to hunt with
Donal."
1
laughed, glad of something to take my mind from
Finn's
poor temper. "Alix often makes Finn angry, and
he,
her. It is an old thing between them."
"Because
he stole her?" Torry smiled as I looked at her
sharply.
"Aye, Finn told me the story . . . when I asked.
He also
told me something else." She reached out to
smooth
my doublet one more time. "He said that did he
ever
again want a woman the way he had wanted Alix, he
would
let no man come between them. Not you; not his
brother."
Her hand was stiff against my chest, her gaze
intense.
"And I believe him "
I bent
down and kissed her forehead. "That is bitterness
speaking,
Torry. He has never gotten over Alix. I doubt
he ever
will." I tucked her hand into my arm. "Now
come.
It is time this wedding was accomplished."
The
Great Halt was filled with the aristocracy of Solinde
and
Homana, and the pride of the Cheysuli. I waited at
the
hammered silver doors for Electra and regarded the
assembled
multitude with awe. Somehow I had not thought
so many
would wish to see the joining of two realms that
had
warred for so long, perhaps they thought we would
slay
each other before the priest.
I tired
to loosen the knots in jaw and belly. My teeth
hurt,
but only because I clenched them so hard. I had not
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 233
thought
a wedding would be so frightening. And I, a
soldier
... I smiled wryly. Not this day. Today I was
merely
a bridegroom, and a nervous one at that.
The
Homanan priest waited quietly on the dais by the
throne.
The guests stood grouped within the halt tike a
cluster
of bees swarming upon the queen. Or Mujhar.
1
searched the faces for those I knew: Finn, standing
near
the forefront. Duncan and Alix; the former solemn,
as
usual, the latter uncommonly grave. My lady mother
sat
upon a stool, and beside her stood my sister. My
mother
still wore a wimple and coif to hide the silver hair,
but no
longer did she go in penury. Now she was the
mother
of a king, not the fl-iother of a rebel, and it showed
quite
clearly in her clothing. As for Tourmaline, she set the
hall
ablaze with her tawny beauty. And Lachlan, near her,
knew
it.
I
sighed. Poor Lachlan, so lost within his worship of my
sister.
I had had little time of late to spare him, and with
Torry
present his torture was harder yet. And yet there
was
nothing I could do. Nothing he could do, save with-
stand
the pain he felt.
"My
lord."
I froze
at once. The moment had come upon us. 17s; it
was
Electra who spoke. I turned toward her after a mo-
ment's
hesitation.
She was
Bellam's daughter to the bone. She wore white,
the
color of mourning, as if to say quite clearly—without
speaking
a word—just what she thought of the match.
Well, I
had expected little else.
' She
regarded me from her great gray eyes, so heavy-
lashed
and long-lidded. The mass of white-blonde hair fell
past
her shoulders to tangle at her knees, unbound as was
proper
for a maiden. I longed to put my hands into it and
pulf
her against my hips.
"You
see?" she said. "I wear your bride-gift."
She did
the silver and sapphires justice. Gods, what a
woman
was this—
Yet in
that moment she reminded me not so much of a
'woman
as a predator. Her assurance gave me no room for
doubt,
and yet I wanted her more than ever. More, even,
than I
could coherently acknowledge.
234
Jennifer Roberson
I put
out an arm. "Lady—you honor me."
She
slipped a pale, smooth hand over the green velvet
of my
sleeve. "My lord . . . that is the least I will do to
you."
The
ceremony was brief, but I heard little of it. Some-
thing
deep inside me clamored for attention, though I
longed
to ignore it. Finn's open disapproval kept swim-
ming to
the surface of my consciousness, though his face
was
bland enough when I looked. By each time I looked at
Electra
I saw a woman, and her beauty, and knew Only
how
much I wanted her.
I spoke
the vows that bound us, reciting the Homanan
words
with their tinge of Cheysuli nuance. It seemed
apropos.
Homana and the Cheysuli were inseparable, and
now I
knew why.
Electra
repeated them after me, watching me as she
said
the words. Her Solindish mouth framed the syllables
strangely,
making a parody of the vows. I wondered if she
did it
deliberately. No. She was Solindish . . . and un-
doubtedly
knew what she said even as she said it.
The
priest put a hand on her head and the other rested
on
mine. There was a moment of heavy silence as we knelt
before
the man. And then he smiled and said the words of
benediction
for the new-made Mujhar and his lady wife.
I had
taken the woman; I would keep her. Electra was
mine at
last.
When
the wedding feast was done, we adjourned to a
second
audience hall, this one somewhat smaller but no
less
magnificent than the Great Hall with its Lion Throne.
A
gallery ran along the side walls. Lutes, pipes, tambors,
harps
and a boys' chorus provided an underscore to the
celebration.
It was not long before men warmed by wine
neglected
to speak of politics and waited to lead their
ladies
onto the red stone floor.
But the
dancing could not begin until the Mujhar and
his
queen began it. And so I took Electra into the center
of the
shining floor and signaled the dance begun.
She
fell easily into the intricate patter of moving feet
and
swirling skirts. Our hands touched, fell away. The
dance
was more of a courtship than anything else, filled
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 235
with
the subtle overtures of man to woman and woman to
man. I
was aware of the eyes on us and the smiling
mouths,
though few of them belonged to the Solindish
guests
There was little happiness there.
"Tell
me," I said, as we essayed a pass that brought us
close
in the center of the floor, "where is Tynstar?"
She
stiffened and nearly missed a step. I caught her arm
and
steadied her, offering a bland smile as she stared at
me in
shock.
"Did
you think I would not ask?" I moved away in the
pattern
of the dance, but in a moment we were together
again.
She
drew in a breath that set the sapphires to glowing
against
the pale flesh of her throat. The girdle chimed in
the
folds of her skirts. "My lord—you have taken me
unaware."
"I
do not think you are ever taken unaware, Electra." I
smiled.
"Where is he?"
The
pattern swept us apart yet again. I waited, watch-
ing the
expressions on her face. She moved effortlessly
because
she claimed a natural grace, but her mind was not
on the
dance.
"Carillon—"
"Where
is Tynstar?"
Long
lids shuttered her eyes a moment, but when she
raised
them again I saw the hostility plainly Her mouth
was a
taut, thin line. "Gone. I cannot say where."
I
caught her hand within the pattern of the dance Her
fingers
were cool, as ever, I recalled them from before.
"You
had best content yourself with me, Electra. You are
my
wife."
"And
Queen?" she countered swiftly.
I
smiled. "You want a crown, do you?"
The
high pride of royalty burst forth at once. "I am
worthy
of it! Even you cannot deny me that."
We
closed again within the figure. I held her hand and
led her
the length of the hall. We turned, came back
again,
acknowledging the clapping from the guests The
courtship
had been settled, the lady had won.
"Perhaps
I cannot deny it to you," I agreed "You will
be the
mother of my heir."
236
Janntfer Roberson
Her
teeth showed briefly. 'That is your price? A child?"
"A
son. Give me a son, Electra."
For
only a moment there was careful consideration in
her
eyes. And then she smiled. "I am, perhaps, too old to
bear your
children. Did you never think of that?"
I
crushed the flesh and bones of her hand with my own.
"Speak
not of such nonsense, lady! And I doubt notTynstar,
when he
gave you permanent youth, left your childbear-
ing
years intact."
Dull
color stained her cheeks. The dance was done; no
longer
did she have to follow my lead. And yet we were
watched,
and dared not divulge our conversation.
Electra
smiled tightly. "As you wish, my lord husband.
I will
give you the child you want."
I
thought, then, the celebration went on too long. And
yet I
could not take her to bed quite yet. Propriety de-
manded
we wait a little while.
But
even a little can be too long.
Electra
looked at me sidelong. I saw the tilt of her head
and the
speculation in her eyes. She judged me even as I
judged
her. And then I caught her fingers in mine and
raised
them to my mouth. "Lady—I salute you," I mur-
mured
against her hand.
Electra
merely smiled.
1
thought, later, the world had changed, even if only
a little.
Perhaps more than just a little. What had begun
in lust
and gratification had ended in something more,
Not
love; hardly love, but a better understanding. The
recriminations
were gone, replaced with comprehension,
yet
even as we moved toward that comprehension I
knew it
would not be easy. We had been enemies too
long.
Electra's
legs were tangled with mine, and much other
hair
was caught beneath my shoulder. Her head was upon
my arm,
using it for a pillow, and we both watched the
first
pink light of dawn creep through the hangings on the
bed.
We had
spent the remainder of the night in consumma-
tion of
our marriage, having escaped the dancing at last,
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 237
and
neither of us had been surprised to find we were so
well-matched.
That had been between us from the begin-
ning.
But now, awake and aware again of what had hap-
pened,
we lay in silent contemplation of the life that lay
before
us.
"Do
you forget?" she asked. "1 was Tynstar's woman."
I
smiled grimly at the hangings that kept the chill from
our
flesh. "You share a bed with me now, not Tynstar. It
does
not matter."
"Does
it not?" Like me. she smiled, but, I thought, for
a
different reason.
I
sighed. "Aye, it matters. You know it does, Electra.
But it
is me you have wed, not him, let us leave him out of
our
marriage."
"I
did not think you would admit it." She shifted closer
to me.
"I thought you would blame me for everything."
I
twisted my arm so I could put my fingers in her hair.
"Should
I?"
"No,"
she said, "lay no blame on me. I had no choice in
the
matter." She twisted, pulling free of my arm and
sitting
up to kneel before me in the dawn. "You cannot
know
what it is to be a woman, -to know yourself a prize
meant
for the winning side. First Tynstar demanded me—
his
price for aiding my father. And then you, even you,
saying
you would wed me when we had lost the war. Do
you
see? Ever the prize given to the man."
'Tynstar's
price?" I frowned as she nodded again. 'The
cost of
Inhlini aid ..." I shook my head. "I had not
thought
of that—"
"You
thought I wanted him?"
I
laughed shortly. "You were quite convincing about it.
You
ever threw it in my face—"
"You
are the enemy!" She sounded perplexed I could
not
understand. "Am I to go so willingly into surrender?
Am I to
let you think I am yours for the easy taking? Ah
Carillon,
you are a man, like other men. You think all a
woman
wants is to be wanted by a man." She laughed.
"There
are other things than that—things such as power—"
I
pulled her down again. "Then the war between us is
done?"
238
JennlfT Robwson
The
light on her face was gentle. "I want no war in our
bed.
But do you seek to harm my realm, I will do what 1
can to
gainsay you."
I
traced the line of her jaw and settled my fingers at her
throat.
"Such as seeking to slay me again?"
She
stiffened and jerked her head away. "Will you
throw
that in my face?"
I
caught a handful of hair so she could not turn away.
"Zared
might have succeeded. Worse yet, he might have
slain
my sister. Do you expect me to forgive—or forget—
that?"
"Aye.
I wanted you slain!" she cried. "You were the
enemy!
What else could I do? Were I a man, my lord
Mujhar,
you would not question my intention. Are you
not a
soldier? Do you not slay? Why should I be differ-
ent?"
Color stood high in her face. "Tell me I was wrong
to try
to slay the man who threatened my father. Tell me
you
would not have done the same thing had you been in
my
place. Tell me I should not have used what weapon I
had at
hand, be it magic or knife or words." She did not
smile,
staring intently into my face. "I am not a man and
cannot
go to war. But I am my father's daughter. And
given
the chance, I would do it again . . . but he is no
longer
alive. What good would it do? Solinde is yours and
you
have made me Queen of Homana. Were you to die,
Solinde
would be no better off. A woman cannot rule
there."
A muscle ticked in her jaw. "So I have wed you.
my
lord, and share your bed, my lord, which is all a
woman
can do."
After a
moment I took a deep breath. 'There is one
more,"
I said gently. "You can also bear a son."
"A
son!" she said bitterly. "A son for Homana, to rule
when
you are dead. What good does that do Solinde?"
"Two
sons," I said. "Bear me two, Electra . . . and the
second
shall have Solinde."
Her
long-lidded eyes sought out the lie, except I offered
none.
"Do you mean it?"
"Your
son shall have Solinde."
Her
chin thrust upward. "My son," she whispered, and
smiled
a smile of triumph.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 239
I was
falling. Another oubliette. But this time a woman
caught
me and took the fear away.
"Ja'hai,"
I murmured. "Ja'hai, cheysu, Mujhar."
Accept
this man; this Mujhar. . .
But it
was not to the gods I said it.
PART II
ONE
fJt
stared at Finn in anguish. "Why will it not be born?"
He did
not smile, but I saw faint amusement in his
yes.
"Children come in their own time. You cannot rush
iem, or
they hang back—as this one does."
"Two
days." It seemed a lifetime. "How does Electra
ear it?
/ could not—I could not bear a moment of it."
"Perhaps
that is why the gods gave women instead of
an the
task of bearing children." Finn's tone lacked the
y humor
1 expected, being more understanding than I
d ever
heard him. "In the clans, it is no easier. But
lere we
leave it to the gods."
"Gods,"
I muttered, staring at the heavy wooden door
Uttudded
with iron nails. "It is not the gods who got this
Jl^hild
on her . . . that took me."
1;
"And your manhood proven." Finn did smile now.
^PCarilton—Electra
will be well enough. She is a strong
%^oman—"
^f
"Two days," I repeated "She might be dying of it."
y
"No," Finn said, "not Electra. She is far stronger than
|you
think—"
I cut
him off with a motion of my hand. I could not bear
listen.
I had found myself remarkably inattentive of
[e,
being somewhat taken up with the birth of my first
iild.
All I could think of was Electra on the other side of
door,
Electra in the bed with her women around her
I Z43 I
244
Jennifer Roberson
and the
midwife in attendance, while I waited in the
corridor
like a lackey.
"Carillon,"
Finn said patiently, "she will bear the child
when
the child is ready to come."
"Alix
lost one." I recalled the anger I had felt when I
had
learned it from Duncan. The Ihlini attack on the Keep
had
caused her to lose the child, and Duncan had said it
was
unlikely she would ever bear another. And I thought
again
of Electra, realizing how fragile even a strong woman
could
be. "She is—not as young as she appears. She could
die of
this."
Finn
shut his mouth and I saw the lowering of his
brows.
Like most, Finn forgot Electra was twenty years
older
than she appeared. My reminding him of it served
as
vivid notice that she was more than merely woman and
wife;
she was ensorcelled as well, with a definite link to
Tynstar.
No more his meijha, perhaps, but she bore the
taint—or
blessing—of his magic.
I
leaned against the door and let my head thump back
upon
the wood. "Gods—I would almost rather be in a war
than
live through this—"
Finn
grimaced. "It is not the same at all—"
"You
cannot say," I accused. "Z sired this child, not you.
You
cannot even lay claim to a bastard."
"No,"
he agreed, "I cannot." For a moment he looked
down at
Storr sitting so quietly by his side. The wolfs eyes
were
slitted and sleepy, as if bored by his surroundings. I
wished
I could be as calm.
I shut
my eyes. "Why will they not come and tell me it
is
born?"
"Because
it is not." Finn put a hand on my arm and
pulled
me away from the door. "Do you wish it so much, I
will
speak to her. I will use the third gift on her, and tell
her to
have the child."
I
stared at him. "You can do that?"
"It
is no difierent from any other time I used it." Finn
shrugged.
"Compulsion need not always be used for
harm—it
can exact an obedience that is not so harsh, such
as
urging a woman to give birth." He smiled faintly. "I am
no
midwife, but I think it likely she is afraid. As you say,
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 245
she is
not so young as she looks—she may fear also she will
^a0t
bear a son."
,, I
swore beneath my breath. "Gods grant it is, but I
efer
simply to have her safe. Can you do that? Make her
ar the
child in safety?"
"I
can tell her to do whatever it is women do while
/ing
birth," he said, with excess gravity, "and I think it
kely
the child will be born."
I
frowned. "It sounds barbaric."
"Perhaps
it is. But babies are born, and women go on
Baring
them. I think it will not harm her."
"Then
come. Do not waste time out here." I hammered
the
door. When the woman opened it I ignored her
rtests
and pushed the door open wider. "Come," I
ected
Finn, and he came in behind me after a mo-
aent's
frowning hesitation.
A
circle of shocked women formed a barricade around
he bed
in the birthing chamber. Doubtless my presence
^^l^fts
bad enough, but Finn was a shapechanger. To their
-Blinds
we were both anathema.
^ I
thrust myself through them and knelt down beside her
Ipcd.
Dark circles underlay her eyes and her hair was
i|)anip
and tangled. Gone was the magnificent beauty I so
admired,
but in its place was an ever greater sort. The
^Bpoman
was bearing my child.
^
"Electra?"
-i^ Her
eyes flew open and another contraction stabbed
Hferough
the huge belly covered by a silken bedcloth.
^'I^Carillon!
Oh gods, will you not leave me be? I cannot—"
^ I put
my hand on her mouth. "Hush, Electra. I am here
itSO
ease your travail. Finn will make the baby come."
' Her
eyes, half-crazed by pain, looked past me and saw
^IPinn
waiting just inside the doorway. For a moment she
.Only
stared, as if not understanding, and then suddenly
^dte
opened her mouth and cried out in her Solindish
-.tongue.
^ . I
gestured him close, knowing it was the only way to
^Mse
her. And yet she cried out again and tried to push
'
a"self away- She was nearly incoherent, but I could see
t fear
alive in her face.
'Send
him away!" she gasped. A brief grunt escaped her
246
Jennifer Roberson
bitten
lips. "Carillon—send him away—" Her face twitched
"Oh
gods—do as I say—"
The
women were muttering among themselves, closing
ranks.
I had allowed Electra Solindish women to help her
through
her lying-in because 1 knew she had been lonely,
surrounded
by Homanans, but now I wished they were
gone.
They oppressed me.
"Finn,"
I appealed, "is there nothing you can do?"
He came
forward slowly, not noticing how the women
pulled
their skirts away from his passage. I saw hand
gestures
and muttered invocations; did they think him a
demon?
Aye, likely. And they Solindish, with their Ihlini
sorcerers.
I saw a
strangeness in Finn's face as he looked on
Electra.
It was a stricken expression, as if he had suddenly
realized
the import of the child, or of the woman who bore
it, and
what it was to sire a child. There was a sudden
crackling
awareness in him, an awareness of Electra as he
had
never seen her. I could feel it in him. In nine months 1
had seen
him watching her as she watched him, both with
grave,
explicit wariness and all defenses raised. But now,
as he
squatted down beside the bed, I saw an awakening
of
wonder in his eyes.
on
Electra's
pride was gone. He saw the woman instead,
not the
Ihlini's meijha, not the haughty Solindish princess,
not the
Queen of Homana who had wed his liege lord.
And I
knew, looking at him, I had made a deadly mistake.
I
thought of sending him away. But he had taken her
hand
into both of his even as she sought to withdraw, and
it vas
too late to speak a word.
He was
endlessly patient with her, and so gentle I
hardly
knew him. The Finn of old was gone. And yet, as
he
looked at her, I had the feeling it was not Etectra he
saw.
Someone else, I thought; the change had been too
abrupt.
"Ja'hai,"
he said clearly, and then—as if knowing she
could
not understand the Old Tongue—he translated each
word he
spoke. "Ja'hai—accept. Cheysuli i'halla shansu "
He
paused. "Shansu, meijhana—peace. May there be
Cheysuli
peace upon you—"
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 247
"I
spit on your peace!" Electra caught her breath as
another
contraction wracked her.
Finn
had her then. I saw the opaque, detached expres-
' ston
come into his eyes and make them empty, and I knew
„ he
sought the magic. I thought again of the vault in the
; earth
and the oubliette that waited, recalling the sensa-
v^Bons
I had experienced. I nearly shivered with the chill
ifaat
ran down my spine, raising the hairs on my flesh, for
'. 1
was more in awe of the magic than ever before. For all
4 the
Cheysuli claimed themselves human, I knew now they
^were
not. More; so much, much more.
Finn
twitched. His eyes shut, then opened. I saw his
?ad dip
forward as if he slept, then he jerked awake. The
ankness
deepened in his eyes, and then suddenly I
iew
something had gone wrong. He was—different. His
•sh
turned hard as stone and the scar stood up from his
sh. All
the color ran out of his face.
Electra
cried out, and so did Finn.
I heard
growling. Storr leaped into the room, threading
s way
through the women. I heard screaming; I heard
relying,
I heard Electra's hissing Solindish invectives. I
'fJieard
the low growl rising; oh gods, Storr was in the
^room—
«y ,
^€
^
,^;
Finn was white as death with an ashen tinge to his
s^BOUth.
I put a hand on his arm and felt the rigid, upstand-
^Bg
muscles. He twitched again and began to tremble as if
^witfa
a seizure; his mouth was slack and open. His tongue
''';was
turning dark as it curled back into his throat.
^ And
then I saw it was Electra who held his hand and
'that
he could not break free of her grasp.
I
caught their wrists and jerked, trying to wrench their
hands
apart. At first the grip held; Electra's nails bit into
'his
skin and drew blood, but it welled dark and thick.
then I
broke the grip and Finn was freed, but he was
hardly
the Finn I knew. He fell back, still shaking, his
yellow
eyes turned up to show the whites. One shoulder
scraped
against the wall. I thought he was senseless, but
he was
awake. Too awake, I found.
His
eyes closed, then opened, and once more 1 saw the
yeBow.
Too much yellow; his pupils were merest specks.
^JHe
stared with the feral gaze of a predator.
X
^
248
Jennifer Roberson
He
growled. Not Storr. Finn. It came out of a human
throat,
but there was nothing human about him.
I
caught his shoulders as he thrust himself up and
slammed
him against the wall. There was no doubt of his
prey.
One of his arms was outstretched in her direction
and the
fingers were flexing like claws.
"Finn—"
All the
muscles stood up from his flesh and I felt the
tremendous
power, but it was nothing compared to my
fear.
Somehow I held him, pressing him into the wall. I
knew,
if I let him go, he would slay her where she lay.
His
spine arched, then flattened. One hand fastened on
my
right arm and tried to pull it free, but I thrust my
elbow
against his throat. The growl was choked off, but I
saw the
feral grimace. White teeth, man's teeth, in a
bloodless
mouth, but the tongue had regained its color.
I
gritted my teeth and leaned, pressing my elbow into
the
fragility of his windpipe, praying I could hold him.
"Finn—"
And
then, as suddenly as it had come on him, the
seizure
was past.
Finn
sagged. He did not fall, for I held him, but his
head
lolled forward against my arm and I saw his teeth cut
into
his bottom lip. I thought he would faint. And yet his
control
was such that he did not, and as Storr pushed past
me to
his /*r I saw sense coming back in Finn's eyes.
He
pressed himself up. His head smacked into the wall.
He
sucked in a belly-deep, rasping breath and held it
while
the blood ran from his mouth. He frowned as if
confused,
then caught himself as once more his body
sagged.
With effort he straightened, scraping his /ir-bands
against
the wall. I saw the white teeth bared yet again,
this
time in a grimace of shock and pain.
"Finn—?"
He said
a single word on a rush of breath, but I could
not
hear it for the exhaustion in his tone. It was just a
sound,
an expulsion of air, but the color was back in his
face. I
knew he could stand again, but I did not let him
go;
'Tynstar—'
It was barely a whisper, hoarse and aston-
ished.
'Tynstar—here—"
THE SONG
OF HOMANA 249
The
women were clustered around the bed and I knew
I had
to get Finn from the room. Electra was crying in
exhaustion
and fear while the contractions wracked her
body. I
dragged Finn to the door and pushed him out into
the
corridor while Storr came growling at my heels, all his
hackles
raised.
Finn
hardly noticed when I set him against the wall. He
moved
like a drunken man, all slackness, lacking grace.
Not
Finn, not Finn at all. "Tyn5tar—" he rasped again.
"Tynstar—here—"
My
hands were in the leather of his jerkin, pushing him
into
the stone. "By the gods, do you know what you did?
Finn—"
If I
took my hands away, he could fall. I could see it in
his
eyes. "Tynstar," he said again. "Carillon—it was
Tynstar—"
"Not
herel" I shouted. "How could he be? That was
Electra
you meant to slay!"
He put
a hand to his face and I saw how the fingers
trembled.
He pushed them through his hair, stripping it
from
his eyes, and the scar stood out like a brand against
cheek and
jaw. "He—was—here-1—" Each word was dis-
tinct.
He spoke with the precise clarity of the drunken
man, or
the very shaken. A ragged and angry tone, laced
with a
fear I had never heard. "Tynstar set a trap—"
"Enough
of Tynstar!" I shouted, and then I fell silent.
From
inside the room came the imperative cry of a new-
bom
soul, and the murmur of the women. Suddenly it was
there I
wanted to be, not here, and yet I knew he needed
me.
This once, he needed me. "Rest," I said shortly.
"Take
some food—drink something! Will you go? Go ...
before
I have to carry you from this place."
I took
my hands away He leaned against the wall with
legs
braced, muscles bunching the leather of his leggings,
He
looked bewildered and angry and completely devoid of
comprehension.
"Finn,"
I said helplessly, "will you go?"
He
pushed off the wall, wavered, then knelt upon the
floor.
For one insane moment I thought he knelt to offer
apology;
he did not. I thought he prayed, but he did not.
Z50
Jennifer Roberson
He
merely gathered Storr into his arms and hugged him
as hard
as he could.
His
eyes were shut. I knew the moment was too private
to be
shared, even with me Perhaps especially with me. I
left
them there, wolf and man, and went in to see my
child.
One of
the women, as I entered, wrapped the child
hastily
in linen cloth, wiping its face, then set it into my
arms.
They were all Solindish, these women, but I was
their
king—and would be, until I sired a second son.
And
then I looked at their faces and knew I lacked a
first.
"A
girl, my lord Mujhar," came the whisper m accented
Homanan.
I
looked down on the tiny face. It lacked the spirit of a
person,
little more than a collection of wrinkled features,
but I
knew her for mine
What
man cannot know immortality when he holds his
child
in his arms? Suddenly it did not matter that I had no
son; I
would in time. For now, I had a daughter, and I
thought
she would be enough.
I
walked slowly to the bed, cradling the child with
infinite
care and more than a little apprehension. So help-
less
and so tiny, I so large and equally helpless. It seemed
a
miracle I had sired the girl. I knelt down at the bedside
and
showed Electra her baby.
"Your
heir," she whispered, and I realized she did not
know.
They had not told her yet.
"Our
daughter," 1 said gently.
Sense
was suddenly in her eyes; a glassy look of horror.
"Do
you say it is a girl—?"
"A
princess," I told her. "Electra, she is a lovely girl."
Or will
be, I thought; I hoped. "There will be time for sons.
For
now, we have a daughter."
"Gods!"
she cried out. "All this pain for a girl? No son
for
Homana—no son for Solinde—" The tears spilled down
her
face, limning her exhaustion "How will I keep my
bargain?
This birth nearly took me—"
I
gestured one of the women to take the baby from me.
When I
could, I slipped one arm beneath Electra's shoul-
ders
and cradled her as if she were the child instead.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 251
"Electra,
be at peace There is no haste in this. We have a
daughter
and we will have those sons—but not tomorrow.
Be at
ease. I have no wish to see you grieve because you
have
borne a girl."
"A
girl," she said again. "What use is a girl but to wed?
I
wanted a son—!"
I eased
her down against the pillows, pulling the bed-
clothes
close. "Sleep. I will come back later. There is the
news to
be told, and I must find Finn—" I stopped. There
was no
need to speak of Finn, not to her. Not now.
But
Electra slept. I brushed the damp hair from her
brow,
looked again on the, sleeping baby, then went from
Ae room
to give out the news.
Soon
enough the criers were sent out and the bells
began
to peel. Servants congratulated me and offered
good
wishes. Someone pressed a cup of wine into my hand
as I
strode through a corridor on my way to Finn's cham-
• bers
Faces were a blur to me; I hardly knew their names.
I had a
daughter, but I also had a problem.
Finn
was not in his chambers. Nor was he in the kitch-
„ ens,
where the spit-boys and cooks fell into bows and
curtseys
to see their Mujhar in their presence. I asked
after
Finn, was told he had not come, and went away
-again.
It was
Lachlan who found me at last, very grave and
concerned.
His arms were empty of his Lady and with
him
came my sister. I thought first they would give me
good
wishes when I told them; instead they had news of
Finn.
"He
took the wolf and left," Lachlan said quietly. "And
no
horse for nding."
"Lir-shape,"
I said grimly.
"He
was—odd." Torry was white-faced. "He was not
himself
But he would answer none of our questions." She
gestured
helplessly. "Lachlan was playing his Lady for
me. I
saw Finn come in. He looked—ill. He said he had
to go
away."
"Away!"
I felt the lurch in my belly "Where?"
; "To the Keep," Lachlan answered.
"He said he re-
quired
cleansing for something he had done. He said also
you
were not to send for him, or come after him yourself."
252
Jennifer Roberson
He
glanced a moment at Tony. "He said it was a Cheysuli
thing,
and that clan-ties take precedence, at times, over
other
links."
I felt
vaguely ill. "Aye But only rarely does he invoke
them—"
I stopped, recalling the wildness in his eyes and
the
growling in his throat. "Did he say how long he would
stay
there?"
lorry's
eyes were frightened. "He said the nature of the
cleansing
depended on the nature of the offense. And that
this
one was great indeed." One hand crept up to her
throat
"Carillon—what did he do?"
"Tried
to slay the Queen." It came out of my mouth
without
emotion, as if someone else were speaking. I saw
the
shock in their eyes. "Gods!" I said on a rushing breath,
"I
must go after him. You did not see what he was—" I
started
out the door and nearly ran into Rowan. "
"My
lord!" He caught my arm. "My lord—wait you—"
"I
cannot." I shook loose and tried to move on, but he
caught
my arm again. "Rowan—"
"My
lord, I have news from Solinde," he persisted.
"From
Royce, your regent in Lestra."
"Aye,"
I said impatiently, "can it not wait? I will be
back
when I can "
"Finn
said you should not follow," Lachlan repeated.
"Doubtless
he has good reason—"
"Carillon."
Rowan forsook my title and all honorifics,
which
told me how serious he was. "!t is Thorne of Atvia.
He
readies plans to invade."
"Solinde?"
I stared at him in amazement.
"Homana,
my lord " He let go my arm when he saw I
was not
moving. I could not, now "The news has come
into
Lestra, and Royce sent on a courier. There is still
time,
Royce says, but Thorne is coming. My lord—" He
paused.
"It is Homana he wants, and you. A grudge for
the
death of his father, and Atvians slain in Bellam's war.
The
courier has the news." His young face was haggard
with
the implications. "Thome intends to take Hondarth—"
"Hondarth!"
I exploded. "He will not set foot in a
Homanan
city while I am alive!"
"He
means to raise Solindish aid," Rowan said in a quiet
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 253
"%.
^i
voice.
"To come overland through Solinde. and by ships
across
the Idrian Ocean, bound for Hondarth."
I
thought of the southern city on the shores of the
Idrian
Ocean. Hondarth was a rich city whose commerce
depended
on fishing fleets and trading vessels from other
lands.
But it was a two-week ride to Hondarth, going fast;
an even
longer march. And the marshes would slow an
army.
I shut
my eyes a moment, trying to get my senses
sorted.
First Finn's—seizure, my daughter's birth; now
this.
It was too much.
I set a
hand on Rowan's shoulder. "Where is this cou-
rier?
And find you what advisors you can. We must send
for
those who have gone home to their estates. It will take
time—ah,
gods, are we to go to war again, we must
reassemble
the army." I rubbed at my gritty eyes. "Finn
will
have to wait."
When I
could, I broke free of planning councils and
went at
last to the Keep. And, as I rode out across the
plains,
I came face to face with Finn.
He had
left Mujhara without a-horse, but now he had
one.
Borrowed from the Keep, or perhaps it was one of his
own. He
did not say. He did not say much at all, being so
shut up
within himself, and when I looked at him I saw
how the
shadow lay on him, thick and dark. His yellow
eyes
were strange.
We met
under a sky slate-gray with massing clouds.
Rain
was due in an instant. It was nearly fall, and in four
months
the snow would be thick upon the ground. For
now
there was none, but I wore a green woolen cloak
pulled
close against plain brown hunting leathers. Finn,
bare-armed
still, and cloakless, pulled in his horse and
waited.
The wind whipped the hair from his face, exposing
the
livid scar, and I swore I saw silver in his hair where
before
it had been raven's-wing black. He looked older,
somehow,
and more than a trifle harder. Or was it merely
that I
had not noticed before?
"I
wanted to come," I said. "Lachlan said no, but I
wanted
it. You seemed so distraught." I shrugged, made
uncomfortable
by his silence. "But the courier had come
254
JennWr Roberson
in from
Lestra . . ." I let it trail off, seeing nothing in his
face
but the severity of stone.
"I
have heard." The horse stomped, a dark bay horse
with a
white slash across his nose and a cast in one eye.
Finn
hardly noticed the movement save to adjust his
weight.
"Is
that why you have come back?"
He made
a gesture with his head, a thrusting of his chin
toward
the distances lying behind me. "Mujara is there. I
have
not come back yet."
The
voice was flat, lacking intonation. I tried to search
beneath
what I saw. But I was poor at reading Cheysuli;
they
know ways of blanking themselves. "Do you mean
to?"
The
scar ticked once. "I have no place else to go."
It
astonished me, in light of where he had been. "But—
the
Keep—"
"I
am liege man to the Mujhar. My place is not with the
clan,
but with hnn. Duncan has said—" He stopped short;
something
made him turn his head away. "Duncan has
not—absolved
me of what I tried to do. As the shar tahl
says:
if one is afraid, one can only become unafraid by
facing
what causes the fear." The wind, shifting, blew the
hair
back into his face. I could see nothing of his expres-
sion.
"And so I go to face it again. I could not admit my
fear—i'toshaa-ni
was not completed. I am—unclean."
"What
do you face again?' I asked, uneasy. "I would
rather
you did not see Electra."
He
looked at me squarely now, and the strangeness was
in his
eyes. "J would rather not see her, also. But you
have
wed her, and my place is with the Mujhar. There is
little
choice, my lord."
My
lord. No irony: no humor. I felt the fear push into
my
chest. "Did you truly intend to slay her?"
"Not
her," he said softly, "Tynstar."
The
anger boiled over. I had not realized how fright-
ened I
was that he might have succeeded; how close I had
come to
losing them both. Both. Had Finn slain Electra,
there
was no choice but execution. "Electra is not Tynstar!
Are you
blind? She is my wife—"
"She
was Tynstar's meijha," he said quietly, "and I
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 255
doubt
not he uses her still. Through her soul, if not her
body."
"Finn—"
"It
was I who nearly died!" He was alive again, and
angry.
Also clearly frightened. "Not Electra—she is too
strong.
It was I, Cheysuli blood and all." He drew in a
hissing
breath and I saw the instinctive baring of white
teeth.
"It nearly took me down, it nearly swallowed me
whole.
It was Tynstar, I tell you—it was."
"Go,
then," I said angrily. "Go on to Homana-Mujhar
and
wait for me there. We will face whatever it is you
have to
face, and get this finished at once. But there are
-things
I have to discuss with Duncan."
There
was gray in his hair; I saw it clearly now. And
bleakness
in his eyes. "Carillon—"
"Go."
1 said it more quietly. "1 have a war to think of
again.
I will need you at my side."
The
wind blew through his hair. The sunlight, so dull
-and
brassy behind the clouds, set his lir-go\d to shining in
, the
grayness of the day. His face was alien to me; I
thought
again of the vault and oubliette. Had it changed
me so
much? Or was it Finn who had been changed?
"Then
I will be there," he said, "for as long as I can."
An odd
promise. I frowned and opened my mouth to
-ask
him what he meant, but he had set his horse to
trotting,
leaning forward in the saddle. And then, as I
turned
to watch, he galloped toward Mujhara. Beside him
ran the
wolf.
TWO
I rode
into the Keep just as the storm broke. The rain fell
heavily,
quickly soaking through my cloak to the leather
doublet
and woolens beneath. The hood was no help; I
gave up
and pushed it back to my shoulders, setting my
horse
to splashing through the mud toward Duncan's slate-
colored
pavilion. It was early evening and I could hardly
see the
other pavilions, only the dim glow of their interior
firecaims.
I
dropped off my horse into slippery mud and swore,
then
noticed Cai was not on his perch. No doubt he sought
shelter
in a thick-leafed tree, or perhaps even inside.
Well,
so did I.
Someone
came and took my horse as I called out for
entrance.
I thanked him, then turned as the doorflap was
pulled
open. I looked down; it was Donal. He stared up at
me in
surprise, and then he grinned. "Do you see?"
I saw.
His slender arms, still bared for warmer weather,
were
weighted with lir gold, albeit lighter than the heavy
bands
grown warriors wore. And in his black hair glittered
an
earring, though I could not see the shape. Young, I
thought;
so very young.
Duncan's
big hand came down on Donal's head and
gently
moved him aside. "Come in from the rain. Caril-
lon.
Forgive my son's poor manners."
I
stepped inside- "He has a right to be proud," I de-
murred.
"But is he not too young?"
I 256 I
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 257
I
"There
is no too young in the clans," Duncan said on a
sigh.
"Who is to say what the gods prefer? A week ago the
craving
came upon him, and we let him go Last night he
received
his fir-gold in his Ceremony of Honors."
I felt
the pang of hurt pride. "Could / not have wit-
nessed
it?"
Duncan
did not smile. "You are not Cheysuli."
For
four days, once I had been. And yet now he denied
me the
honor.
1
looked past him to Alix. "You must be proud."
She
stood on the far side of the firecairn and the light
played
on her face. In the dimness she was dark, more
Chey&uii
than ever, and I felt my lack at once "I am," she
said
softly. "My son is a warrior now."
He was
still small Seven, I thought. I did not know.
But
young.
"Sit
you down," Duncan invited. "Donal will move his
wolf."
I saw
then what he meant, for sprawled across one of
the
pelts carpeting the hard-packed earth was a sleeping
wolf-cub.
Very young, and sleeping the sleep of the dead,
or the
very tired. He was damp and the pavilion smelled
of wet
fur, I did not doubt Donal 'had been out with the
wolfling
when the rain began.
Donal,
understanding his father's suggestion at once,
knelt
down and hoisted half of the cub into his arms. The
wolf
was like a bag of bones, so limp and heavy, but Donal
dragged
him aside The cub was ruddy, not silver like
Storr,
and when he opened one eye I saw it was brown.
"He
is complaining," Donal said, affronted. "He wanted
to stay
by the fire."
"He
has more hair than you," Alix retorted. "Lorn will
be well
enough farther back. This is the Mujhar we
entertain."
I waved
a hand. "Carillon, to him. He is my kin, for all
that."
I grinned at the boy. "Cousins, of a sort."
"Taj
is weary ofCai's company," Donal said forthrightly.
"Can
He not come in, too?"
"Taj
is a falcon and will remain outdoors," Duncan said
firmly
as he sidestepped the Hopping wolf-cub. "Cai has
stood
it all these years; so will Taj."
258
Jennifer Roberson
Donal
got Lorn the wolf settled and sat down close
beside
him, one small hand buried in damp far. His
yellow
eyes peered up at me with the bright intentness of
unsuppressed
youth. "Did you know I have two?"
"Two
lir?" I looked at Atix and Duncan. "I thought a
warrior
had only one."
"Ordinarily."
Duncan's tone was dry as he waved me
down on
the nearest pelt. Alix poured a cup of hot honey
brew
and handed it across. "But Donal, you see, has the
Old
Blood."
Alix
laughed as I took the cup. "Aye. He got it from me.
It is
the Firstborn in him." She sat back upon her heels,
placing
herself close to Duncan. "I took fir-shape twice
while 1
carried him, as wolf and falcon both. You see the
result."
I
sipped at the hot, sweet brew. It was warm in the
pavilion,
though somewhat close; I was accustomed to
larger
quarters. But it was a homey pavilion, full of pelts
and
chests and things a clan-leader holds. A heavy tapes-
try
fell from the ridge-pole to divide the tent into two
areas;
one, no doubt, a bedchamber for Alix and Duncan.
As for
Donal, he undoubtedly slept by the fire on the
other
side. And now with his wolf.
"How
fares the girl?" Duncan asked.
I
smiled. "At two months of age, already she is lovely.
We have
named her Aislinn to honor my mother s mother."
"May
she have all of her jehan's wisdom," Duncan
offered
gravely.
I
laughed. "And none of my looks, I trust."
Alix
smiled, but her face soon turned pensive. "No
doubt
you have come to see Finn- He is no longer here."
The
honey brew went sour in my mouth. I swallowed
with
effort. "No. I met him on the road. He is bound for
Homana-Mujhar.
And no, I did not come to speak to him.
I came
to speak of Homana."
I told
them what I could. They listened in silence, all
three
of them; Donal's eyes were wide and full of wonder.
It was,
no doubt, the first he had heard of war from the
Mujhar
himself, and 1 knew he would always remember. 1
recalled
the time I had sat with my own father, listening
to
plots and plans—and how those things had slain him.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 259
S
But
death was not in DonaTs mind, that much 1 could see.
He was
Cheysuli. He thought of fighting instead.
"I
must have allies," I finished. "I need more than just
the
Cheysuli."
"Then
you offer alliances." Duncan nodded thought-
ftilly.
"What else is there to give?"
"My
sister," 1 said flatly, knowing how it sounded. "I
have
Tourmaline to offer, and I have done it. To Ellas, to
Falia,
to Caledon. All have marriageable princes."
Alix
put a hand to her mouth and looked at Duncan.
"Oh
Carillon, no. Do not barter your sister away."
"Torry
is meant for a prince," I said impatiently. "She
will
get one anyway, why should I wait? I need men, and
Torry
needs a husband. A proper husband." I could not
help
but think of Lachlan. "I know—it is not a Cheysuli
custom
to offer women this way. But it is the way of most.
royal
Houses. How else to find a man or woman worthy of
die
rank? Torry is well past marriageable age, the dowry
will
have to be increased. There will be questions about
her
virginity." I looked again at Donal, thinking he was
too
young. But he was Cheysuli, and they seemed always
older
than I. "Bellam held her for years; he even spoke of
wedding
her himself. There will'be questions asked of
that.
But she is my sister, and that will count for some-
thing.
I should get a worthy prince for her."
"And
allies for Homana." Duncan's tone lacked inflec-
tion,
which told me what he thought. "Are the Cheysuli
not
enough?"
"Not
this time," I answered flatly. "Thorne enters in
more
than one place. Bellam came at us straight away. But
Thome
knows better; he has learned. He will creep over
my
borders in bits and pieces. If I split the Cheysuli, I
split
my strongest weapon. I need more men than that, to
place
my armies accordingly."
Duncan
studied me, and then he smiled. Only a little.
"Did
you think we would not come?"
"I
cannot order you to come, any of you," I said quietly.
"I
ask, instead."
The
smile widened and I saw the merest glint of white
teeth-
Not bared, as Finn's had been; a reflection of true
amusement.
"Assemble your armies, Carillon. You will
260
JwnnffT Roberson
have
your Cheysuli aid. Do whatever you must in the way
that
you must, to win the allies you need. And then we
shall
send Thorne back to his island realm." He paused.
"Provided
he survives the encounter."
Alix
glanced at him, and then she looked squarely at
me-
"What did Finn say to you when you met him on the
road?"
"Little."
"But
you know why he came ..."
I
shifted on the pelt. "I was told it was something to do
with
cleansing. A ritual of sorts."
"Aye,"
Duncan agreed. "And now he has had to go
back."
The cup
grew cool in my hands. "He said he had no
other
place to go. That you had, in essence, sent him out
of the
Keep." I meant to keep my tone inflectionless and
did not
succeed. It was a mark of the bond between Finn
and me
that I accused even his brother ofwrongml behavior.
"Finn
is welcome here," Duncan demurred. "No Cheysuli
is
denied the sanctuary when he requires it, but that time
was
done. Finn's place is with you."
"Even
so unhappy?"
Alix's
face was worried. "I thought he should not go—"
"He
must learn to deal with that himself." Duncan took
my cup
and warmed it with more liquor, handing it back.
It was
high honor from a clan-leader; I thought it was
simply
Duncan. "Finn has ever shut his eyes to many
things,
going in the backflap." An expressive flick of his
fingers
indicated the back of the pavilion. "Occasionally,
when I
can, I remind him there is a front."
"Something
has set him on edge." 1 frowned and sipped
at the
liquor. "He is—different. I cannot precisely say. . . ."
I shook
my head, recalling the expression in his eyes.
"What
happened with Electra frightened me. I have never
seen
him so."
"It
is why he came," Duncan agreed, "and why he
stayed
so long. Eight weeks." His face was grim. "It is
rare a
liege man will leave his lord for so long unless it has
something
to do with his clan- and kin-ties. But he could
not
live with what he had done. and so he came here to
renew
himself; to touch again the power in the earth
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 261
through
i'toshaa-ni." He looked tired suddenly. "It comes
upon us
all, once or twice; the need to be cleansed"
The
word, even in Homanan, had a nuance I could not
sAvine.
Duncan spoke of things that no Homanan had
''shared,
though once I had shared a fleeting moment of
^Aeir
life. Such stringent codes and honor systems, I thought;
could I
bind myself so closely?
Duncan
sipped at his honey brew. I noticed then that
: his
hair was still black, showing no silver at all. Odd, I
"thought;
Duncan was the elder.
^
"I am not certain he was cleansed at all," Alix said in a
j^wry
low voice. "He is—unhappy." Briefly she looked at
^Duncan.
"But that is a private thing."
||
"Can he say nothing to me?" I could not hide the
Desperation
in my voice. "Be the gods, we have been
closer
than most. We shared an exile together, and then
H.^nly
because of me. He might have stayed behind." I
•^IhxMced
at them both, almost pleading to understand. "Why
4^an he
say nothing to me?"
"It
is private," Duncan repeated. "But no, he can say
othing
to you. He knows you too well."
,1
swore, then glanced in concern to Donal. But boys
row up,
and I did not doubt he had heard it before. Finn
ad
taught me the Cheysuli invectives. "He told you what
e did,
then. To Electra?"
"To
Tynstar," Duncan said.
^ I
heard the firecaim crackle in the sudden silence. A
^tussing
mote of sparks flew up. "Tynstar?" I said at last.
'H-..
"Aye. It was not Electra he meant to slay; did you think
^"ft
was?" He frowned. "Did he tell you nothing?"
'&;.
I recalled how he had said it over and over, so hoarse
ilH'and
stricken: Tynstar was here. And how I had ignored it.
^ ."He
said—something—"
? "Tynstar set a trap," Duncan
explained, echoing Finn's
'^own
words. "He set it in Electra's mind, so that anyone
• using
the earth magic on her would succumb to the
^
possession."
; My
body twitched in surprise. "Possession/"
The
firelight cast an amber glaze across the face before
, toe.
Smoke was drawn upward to the vent-flap, but enough
.•'remained
to shroud the air with a wispy, ocherous haze.
262
Jennifer Roberson
Duncan
was gold and bronze and black in the light, and
the
hawk-earring transfixed my gaze. I smelled smoke and
wet for
and honey, sweet honey, with the bittersweet tang
of
spice.
"The
Ihlini have that power." Duncan said quietly. "It
is a
balance of our own gift, which is why we use it
sparingly.
We would not have it said we are anything like
the
Ihlini." Minutely, he frowned, looking downward into
his
cup. "When we use it, we leave a person his soul. We
do
little more than suggest, borrowing the will for a mo-
ment
only." Again the faint frown that alarmed me- He
was not
divulging something. "When it is Ihlini-done, the
soul is
swallowed whole. Whole . . . and not given back at
all."
Silence.
Duncan put out a hand and touched his son,
tousling
Donal's hair in a gesture that betrayed his con-
cern as
the boy crept closer, between father and lir. I
thought
Duncan knew how avidly the boy listened and
meant
to calm any fears. The gods knew I had a few of my
own.
"Finn
reacted the way any Cheysuli would react; per-
haps
even you." He did not smile. "He tried to slay the
trapper
through the trap. It is—understandable." His eyes
lifted
to meet mine squarely. "In that moment she was not
Electra
to him, not even a woman. To Finn, she was
simply
Tynstar. Tynstar was—there."
I frowned.
"Then Tynstar knew it was Finn he had—"
"I
do not doubt it," Duncan said clearly. "An Ihlini trap
will
kill. He did not intend to leave Finn alive. But
something—someone—prevented
the death by shattering
the
trap-link."
"/
broke it." I recalled how Electra had grasped Finn's
hand,
leaving blood in the scratches she had made. How
he had
been unable to break free.
And I
recalled, suddenly, how he had slain the Homanan
assassin
in the Eliasian blizzard, more than a year before.
How he had
said he touched Tynstar, who had set the man
a task—
I stood
up- Bile surged into my throat. Before they
could
say a word I bent down and swept up my damp
cloak,
then went out of the pavilion shouting for my horse.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 263
Alix,
running out into the rain, caught my arm as I
moved
to sling on the cloak. "Carillon—wait you! What
^areyou
doing?"
f- The
hood lay on my shoulders and the rain ran into my
s
mouth. "Do you not see?" I was amazed she could be so
•Sfelind.
"Finn thought he slew Tynstar through Electra.
'
..Tynstar thought he slew him—" I swung up on my horse.
^
"If one is afraid, one can only become unafraid by facing
^uwat
causes the fear."
•^'
"Carillon!" she shouted, but I was already gone.
v&
f I
heard the howling when I ran into Homana-Mujhar.
^Sowling.
Gods, was Finn a-wolf—?
y The
white faces were a blur, but I heard the frightened
Invoices.
"My hrd!" "My lord Carillon!" "The Mujhar!" I
1-pushed
past them all and answered none of them, con-
^Scious
only of the great beating of fear in my chest.
i
Howling. Gods, it was Storr. Not Finn. But the scream-
||ng
was Elecra's.
t
Weight hung off my shoulders as I pounded up the
''twisting
red stone stairs. I ripped the cloak-brooch from
ll'ffiy
left shoulder and felt the fabric -tear. Weight and gold
%Se\\
behind me; I heard the clink of brooch on stone and
Hlhe
soft slap of soaked wool falling to the stairs. "My lord!"
But I
ran on.
^ I
burst through the women and into the room. I saw
H
Electra first, white-faced and screaming though Lachlan
^"
suggested she be quiet. No need, he said; no need to
^acream-
Safe, he said; unharmed. The wolf was held at
Itfcay.
^
Electra was whole. I saw it at once. She stood in a
^. comer
with Lachlan holding her back, his hands upon her
arms.
Holding her back—
" —from Finn. From Finn, who was capably
cornered by
' Rowan
with his sword, and another man-at-arms. They
caged
him with steel, bright and deadly, and the wolf in
man's shape
was held at bay.
, He bled. Something had opened the scar so
that his face
ran
with blood. It stained the leather jerkin and splattered
: down
to his thighs, where I saw more blood. His right
Z64
JonnHrr Roberson
thigh,
where the Atvian spear had pierced. There was a
cut in
his leggings and blood on Rowan's blade.
He was
Hat against the wall, head pressed back so that
his
throat was bared, Blood ran from the opened scar to
trickle
down his throat, crimson on bronze; I smelted the
tang of
fear. Gods, it swallowed him whole and left noth-
ing to
spit out.
I
looked again at Electra and heard the women's fright-
ened
conversation. I understood little of it, knowing it to
be only
Solindish. But I understood the screams.
I went
to her and set a hand on Lachlan's shoulder. He
saw me,
but he did not let her go. I knew why. There was
blood
on her nails and she wanted more; she would rip the
flesh
from his bones.
"Electra,"
I said.
The
screaming stopped. "Carilhn—"
"I
know." I could hear the howling still. Storr, locked
somewhere
within the palace. Locked away by his /ir.
1
turned away again, looking back at Finn. His eyes
were
wide and wild- Breath rasped in his throat. Even
from
here, I saw how he shook; how the trembling wracked
his
bones.
"Out!"
I shouted at the women. "This will be better
done
without your Solindish tongues!"
They
protested at once. So did Electra. But I listened to
none of
it. I waited, and when they saw I meant it they
gathered
their skirts and scuttled out of the room. I slammed
the
heavy door shut behind them, and then I went to
Finn.
The
man-at-arms—Perrin, I knew—stepped out of my
way at
once. Rowan hesitated, still holding Finn at
swordpoint,
and I set him aside with one ungentle thrust
of my
arm. I went through the space where Rowan had
stood
and caught the jerkin in both hands, pulling Finn
from
the wall even as he sagged.
"Ku'reshtin!"
I used the Cheysuli obscenity, knowing
he
would answer no Homanan. "Tuhalla deil" Lord to
liege
man, a command he had to acknowledge.
I felt
the shaking in the flesh beneath my hands. Fists
clenched
and unclenched helplessly, clawless and hu-
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 265
^man,
but betrayal nonetheless. I had seen the bruises on
r'Electra's
throat.
§•' I
heard the labored breathing. The howling filled the
*
halls. Human and wolf, both driven to extremes. But at
fctfus
moment I thought Storr, at least, knew what was
^ap)ing
on.
^ I
thrust Finn into the corner, fenced by two walls of
I^^Stone.
1 drew back one fist and smashed it into his face,
g-ITfaiocking
skull against brick. Blood welled up in a broken
i^ ,„
No!
Rowan caught my arm.
"Get
you gone!" 1 thrust him back again. "I am not
fating
him to death, I anr beating him to sense—"
A hand
closed on my wrist. Finn's hand, but lacking all
rength.
"Tynstar—"
At
least he could speak again. "Finn—you fool! You
oV. It
was a trap—a trap—" I shook my head in despera-
»n.
"Why did you go in again? Why did you give him the
iance?"
'Tynstar—"
It hissed out of his bloodied mouth. 'Tyn-
ir—here—"
"He
nearly slew me!" Electra's-voice was hoarse and
roken.
"Your shapechanger tried to slay me!"
'Tynstar
was here—"
"No."
I felt the futility well into my chest. "Oh Finn,
•—not
Tynstar. Electra. It was a trap—"
Tynstar."
For a moment he frowned in confusion, trying
to
stand on his own. He knew I held him, and I thought
toe
knew why. "Let go."
"No."
I shook my head. "You will try for her again."
It
focused him. I saw sense in his eyes again, and the
^fear
came leaping back to swallow him whole once more.
I
slammed him against the wall once more as he thrust
mselffrom
the stone. Electra shouted again, this time in
>lindish,
and I heard the rage in her voice. Not only fear,
ough
there was that. Rage. And wild, wild hatred.
"Finn—"
I set the elbow against his throat and felt him
"jftiflen
at once. We had done it all before.
"My
lord." Rowan's voice was horrified. "What will you
>?"
Tynstar's
meijha," Finn rasped. Tynstar was here—"
266
Jennifer Robwson
I let
him go. I let go of the wrist I held, took my arm
from
his throat and stood back. But this time the sword
was in
my hand, my sword, and he stopped when I set the
point
against his throat. "No," I said. "Hold. I will get the
truth
from you one way or another." I saw the shock in his
eyes.
"Finn, I understand. Duncan has said what it was,
and I
recall how you were in the Ellasian snowstorm." I
paused,
looking for comprehension in his eyes. "Do not
make it
any worse."
He was
still white as death. Blood welled in the opened
scar.
Now. seeing him in extremity, I saw clearly the
silver
in his hair. Even beneath the blood his face was
harder,
more gaunt at eyes and beneath his cheeks. He
had
aged ten years in two months.
"Finn,"
I said in rising alarm, "are you ill?"
"Tynstar,"
was all he said, and again: "Tynstar. He put
his
hand on me."
When I
could I looked at Rowan, standing silent and
shocked
beside me. "How did you come to be here?"
He
swallowed twice. "The Queen screamed, my lord
We all
came." He gestured at Lachlan and Perrin. "There
were
more at first, but I sent them away. I thought you
would
prefer this matter handled in private."
I felt
old and tired and used up. I held a sword against
my
liege man. I had only to look at his face to know why it
was
necessary "What did you find when you came?"
"The
Queen was—in some disarray. Finn's hands were
on her
throat." Rowan looked angry and confused. "My
lord—there
was nothing else I could do. He was trying to
slay
the Queen."
I knew
he meant the leg wound. I wondered how bad it
was.
Finn stood steadily enough now, but I could see the
pain in
the tautness of his gaunt, bloody face.
Lachlan
spoke at last. "Carillon—I have no wish to
condemn
him. But it is true. He would have taken her
life."
"Execute
him." Electra's tone was urgent. "He tried to
slay
me. Carillon."
"It
was Tynstar," Finn said clearly. "It was Tynstar I
wanted."
"But
it was Electra you would have slain." The sword,
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 267
for the
slightest moment, wavered in my hand. "You fool,"
^i I
whispered, "why have you done this to me? You know
It?
what I must do—"
"No!"
It exploded from Rowan's throat. "My lord—you
f
cannot—"
[
"No," 1 said weanly, "I cannot—not that. But there is
^something
else—"
||| "Execute him!" Electra again.
"There is nothing else to
H^be
done. He sought to slay the Queen!"
;'
"1 will not have him slain."
; It was Lachlan who understood first.
"Carillon! It will
"bare
your back to the enemy!"
' "I have no choice." I looked
directly at Finn, still caged
^by the
steel of my sword. "Do you see what you have
:done?"
He
raised his hands. He closed them both on the blade,
|
blocking out the runes. The ones his father had made.
pVo."
|&
I was nearly shaking myself. "But you would do it again,
II
would you not?"
^ The
grimace came swiftly, bared teeth and the sugges-
^tion
of a deep growl in a human throat. "Tynstar—"
^
"Electra," I said. "You would do it again, would you
hiot?"
I
"Aye ..." A breathy hiss of sound expelled from a
?
constricted throat. He was shaking.
}
"Finn," I said, "it is done. I have no choice. The service
-is
over." I stopped short, then went on when I could
1-speak.
"The blood-oath is—denied."
^ His
eyes were fixed on mine. After a moment I could
Knot
bear to look at them, but I did. I had given him the
L;task;
it was mine to do as well.
^ He took his hands from the blade. I saw the
lines
Impressed
into his palms, but no blood. He bled enough
thready,
inside as well as out.
;' His
voice was a whisper, "ja'hai-na," he said only.
'Accepted.
; I put
the sword away, hearing the hiss of steel on boiled
^leather
as it slid home. The lion was quiescent, the bril-
liant
ruby black.
Finn
took the knife from the sheath at his belt and
268
Jennifer Roberson
offered
it to me. My own, once, the royal blade with its
golden
Homanan crest.
It
nearly broke me. "Finn," I said, "I cannot."
"The
blood-oath is denied." His face was stark, old,
aging.
"Ja'hai, my lord Mujhar."
I took
it from his hand. There was blood upon the gold.
"Ja'hai-na,"
I said at last, and Finn walked from the room.
THREE
?"When
I could, I went out into the corridor and moved
I
slowly through the dimness. The torches were unlighted.
I, The
hallway was empty of people; my servants, knowing
l^feow
to serve, left me to myself.
u No
more howling. Silence. Storr, with Finn was gone.
^My
spirit felt as extinguished as the torches.
• I
went alone to the Great Hall and stood within its
^darkness.
The firepit was banked. Coals glowed. Here, as
^well,
none of the torches was lighted.
Silence.
I
tucked the Homanan blade into my belt beside the
'Cheysuli
knife in its sheath and began shifting the un-
bumed
logs in the firepit with my booted feet. The coals I
also
kicked aside until I bared the iron ring beneath its
^ heavy
layer of ash. Then I took a torch, pushed the shaft
I'through
the ring, and levered it up until the heavy plate
Hi rose
and fell back, clanging against the firepit rim. The ash
';3
puffed up around it.
ji^ I lighted the torch and went down when the
staircase
^ lay
bare. I counted this time: one hundred and two steps.
•gi I
stood before the wall and saw how the rain had soaked in
^- from
the storm. The walls were slick and shiny with damp-
^ ness.
The runes glowed pale green against the dark stone.
^ I put
my fingers to them, tracing their alien shapes, then
^found
the proper keystone. The wall, when I leaned,
,
grated open.
269
270
Jennifer Roberwon
I stood
in the doorway. Lir-shapes, creamy and veined
with
gold, loomed at me from the walls. Bear and boar,
owl and
hawk and falcon. Wolf and fox, raven, cat and
more.
In the hissing light of the iron torch they moved,
silent
and supple, against the silken stone.
I went
into the vault. I let the silence oppress me.
FoolFoolFool,
I thought.
I took
the Cheysuli knife from my sheath. The light
glittered
off the silver. I saw the snarling wolfs-head hilt
with
its eyes of uncut emerald. Finn's knife, once.
I moved
to the edge of the oubliette. As before, the
torchlight
did not touch the blackness within. So deep, so
soft,
so black. I recalled my days in there, and how I had
become
someone other than myself. How, for four days, I
had
thought myself Cheysuli.
I shut
my eyes. The glow of the torchlight burned
yellow
against my lids. I could see nothing, but I recalled
it all.
The soft soughing of shifting wings, the pip of a
preening
falcon. How it was to go trotting through the
forest
with a pelt upon my back. And freedom, such
perfect
freedom, bound by nothing more than what the
gods
had given me.
"Ja'hai.'
I reached out my hand to drop the knife into
the
pit.
"Carillon."
I spun
around and teetered on the brink while the torch
roared
softly against the movement,
I might
have expected Finn. But never Tourmaline.
She
wore a heavy brown traveling cloak, swathed in
wool
from head to toe. The hood was dropped to her
shoulders
and I saw how the torchlight gleamed on the
gold in
her tawny hair. "You have sent him away," she
said,
"and so you send me as well."
All the
protests leaped into my mouth. I had only to
say
them in a combination of tones; impatience, confusion,
irritation,
amazement and placation. But none of them
were
right. I knew, suddenly and horribly; I knew. Not
Lachlan.
Not Lachlan at all, for Torry.
The
pieces of the fortune-game, quite suddenly, were
thrown
across the table from their casket and spread out
before
me in their intricate, interlocking patterns that
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 271
double
too often as prophets. The bone dice and carven
rune-sticks
stood before me in the shape of my older
sister,
and I saw the pattern at last.
Torry,"
was all I said. She was too much like me. She
let no
one turn her from one way when it was the way she
wanted
to go.
"We
did not dare tell you," she said quietly. "We knew
what
you would do. He says—" already she had fallen into
the
easy attribution so common to women when they
speak
of their men "—that in the clans women are never
bartered
to the warriors. That a man and woman are left to
their
own decisions, without another to turn them against
their
will."
"Tourmaline
. . ." I felt tired suddenly, and fall of aches
and
pains. "Torry, you know why I had to do it. In our
House
rank is matched with rank; I wanted a prince for
-, you
because you deserve that much, if not more. Torry—I
'did
not wish to make you unhappy. But I need the aid
[from
another realm—"
^
"Did you think to ask me?" Slowly she shook her head
and the
torchlight gleamed in her hair. "No. Did you
'.think
I would mind? No. Did you think I would even
^protest?"
She smiled a little. "Think you upon my place,
^Carillon,
and see how you would feel."
The pit
was at my back. I thought now another one
yawned
before me. Torry," I said finally, "think you I
had any
choice in whom 1 wed? Princes—and kings—have
no more
say than their women. There was nothing I could
;
do,"
t
"You might have asked me. But no, you ever told. The
h
Mujhar of Homana orders his sister to wed where he will
•
decide." She put up a silencing hand. Her fingers seemed
. sharp
as a blade. "Aye, I know—it has ever been this way.
' And
ever will be. But this once, this once, I say no. I say I
choose
my way."
"Our
mother—"
"—is
gone home to Joyenne." She saw my frown of
surprise.
"I told her, Carillon. Like you, she thinks me
mad-
But she knows better than to protest." The smile
came
more freely. "She has raised willful children,
Carillon—they
do what they will do when it comes to
272 Jennifer
Roberson
whom
they marry." She laughed softly. "Think you that I
was
fooled about Electra? Oh Carillon, I am not blind. I do
not
deny she was a pathway to Solinde, but she is more
than
that to you- You wanted her because—like all men
who see
her—you simply had to have her. That is a
measure
of her power."
'Tourmaline—"
"I
am going," she said calmly, with the cool assurance of
a woman
who has what she wants in the way of a man.
"But
I will tell you this much, for both of us: it was not
intended."
Tourmaline smiled and I saw her as Finn must
see
her: not a princess, not a gamepiece, not even Caril-
lon's
sister. A woman; no more, no less. It was no wonder
he
wanted her. "You sent him to the Keep to recover from
his
wounds. You sent me there for safety. I tended him
when
Alix could not, wondering what manner of man he
was to
so serve my brother's cause, and he gave me the
safety
I needed. Soon enough—it was more." She shook
her
head. "We meant to do no harm. But now it comes to
this.
he is dismissed from his tahlmorra, and mine is to go
with
him."
"Tahlmorra
is a Cheysuli thing," I told her bleakly.
"Torry,
no. I do not wish to lose you as well."
"Then
take him back into your service."
"I
cannot!" The shout echoed in the vault, bouncing off
the
silent lir. "Do you not see? Electra is the Queen, and
he a
Cheysuli shapechanger. No matter what / say in this,
they
will always suspect Finn of wishing to slay the Queen.
And if
he stayed, he might. Did he not tell you what he
tried
to do?"
Her
lips were pale. "Aye. But he had no choice—"
"Nor
do I have one now." I shook my head. "Do you
think I
do not want him back? Gods, Torry, you do not
know
what it was for the two of us in exile. He has been
with me
for too long to make this parting simple. But it
must be
done. What else is there to do? I could never
trust
him with Electra—"
"Perhaps
you should not trust her."
"I
wed her," I said grimly. "I need her. Did I allow
Finn to
stay and something happened to Electra, do you
know
what would happen to Homana? Solinde would rise.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 273
No mere
army could gainsay an outraged realm. Murder,
Torry."
Slowly I shook my head. "Think you the qu'mahlin
is
ended? No. Be not so foolish. A thing such as that is
stopped,
perhaps, but never forgotten. For too long the
Cheysuli
have been hated. It is not done yet." The torch
hissed
and sputtered, putting shadows on her face. "This
time, a
race would be destroyed. And with it, no doubt,
^'
would also fall Homana."
Tears
were on her face, glittering in the light. "Caril-
,
Ion," she whispered, "I carry his cl^ild."
:T When I could speak, albeit a trembling
whisper, I said
^ his
name. Then, to myself. "How could I not have seen
it?"
4.
"You
did not look. You did not ask. And now it is too
^•late."
She gathered her skirts and cloak with both her
yhands.
"Carillon—he waits- It is time I left you."
"" um
"
Torry—
"I
will go," she said gently. "It is where I want to be.
We
faced each other in the flickering light in a vault full
| of
marble lir. I heard the faint cry of hawk and falcon; the
howl of
a hunting wolf. I remembered what it was to be
;
.Cheysuli.
""
I dropped the torch into the oubliette. "I can see no one
^fa
this darkness. A person could stay or she could go—and
'I
would never know it."
Dim
light crept down the stairs behind her. Someone
i' held
a torch. Somone who waited for Torry.
I saw
the tear on the curve of her cheek as she came up
to kiss
me. And then she was gone, and I was left alone
with
the silence and the lir.
I let
the cover fall free of my hands and slam shut
against
the mouth. The gust of air sent ash flying. It
-settled
on my clothing but I did not care. I kicked coals
and
pushed wood over the plate again, hiding the ring in
ash,
and went out of the Great Hall alone.
I meant
to go to bed, though I knew I would not sleep.
I meant
to drown myself in wine, though 1 knew it would
-leave
me sober. I meant to try and forget, and I knew the
%,task
was futile.
274
Jennifer Roberson
Come,
lady, and hear of my soul,
for a
harper's poor magic
does
little to hold
a fine
lady's heart
when
she keeps it her own.
I
stopped walking. The music curled out to wrap me in
its
magic and I thought at once of Lachlan. Lachlan and
his
Lady. Lachlan, whose lays were all for Torry.
Come,
lady, and listen.
I will
make for you music
from
out of the world
if you
wait with me,
stay
with me,
lay
with me, too . .
/ will
give you myself
and
this harp that I hold.
1
followed the song to its source and found Lachlan in a
small
private solar, a nook in the vastness of the palace.
Cushions
lay on the floor, but Lachlan sat on a three-
legged,
velvet-covered stool, his Lady caressed by a lov-
er's
hands. I paused inside the door and saw the gold of
the
strings: the gleam of green stone.
His
head was bowed over his harp. He was lost within
his
music. I ->aw how his supple fingers moved within the
strings:
plucking here, touching there, ever placating his
Lady.
He was at peace, eyes shut and face gone smooth,
so that
I saw the elegance in his features. A harper is
touched
by the gods, and ever knows it. It accounts for
their
confidence and quiet pride.
The
music died away. Silence. And then he looked up
and saw
me, rising at once from his stool. "Carillon! I
thought
you had gone to bed."
"No."
He
frowned. "You are all over ash, and still damp. Do
you not
think you would do better—"
"He
is gone." I cut him off. "And so is Tourmaline."
He
stared, uncomprehending. "Torry! Torry—?"
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 275
"With
Finn." I wanted it said so the cut would bleed
more
quickly, to get rid of the pain at once.
"Lodhi!"
Lachlan's face was bone-white. "Ah, Lodhi—
no-—"
He came three steps, still clutching his Lady, and
then he
stopped. "Carillon—say you are mistaken. ..."
"It
would be a lie." I saw how the pain moved into his
eyes;
how it stiffened the flesh of his face. He was a child
suddenly,
stricken with some new nightmare and groping
for
understanding.
"But—you
said she was meant to wed. You meant her
for a
prince."
"A
prince," I agreed. "Never a harper. Lachlan—"
"Have
I waited too long?" His arms were rigid as he
clasped
the harp to his chest. "Lodhi, have 1 waited too
long?"
"Lachlan,
I know you have cared. I saw it from the
beginning.
But there is no sense in holding onto the hope
^that
it might have been."
^ "Get her back." He was suddenly
intent. "Take her
[ from
him. Do not let her go—"
!<' "No." I said it firmly. "I
have let her go because, in the
g,end,
there was no way I could stop her. I know Finn too
^ well.
And he has said, quite clearly, he will allow no one
J to
keep him from the woman he wants."
g^ Lachlan put one hand to his brow. He scraped
at the
^'silver
circlet as if it bound him too tightly, Then abruptly,
I as if
discovering it himself, he pulled it from his head and
held it
out in one fist as the other arm clasped his Lady.
"Harper!"
His pain was out in the open. "Lodhi, but I
have
been a fool!"
"Lachlan—"
He
shook his head. "Carillon, can you not get her back?
I
promise you, you will be glad of it. There is something I
would
say to her—"
"No."
This time I said it gently. "Lachlan—she bears
Finn's
child."
He lost
the rest of his color. Then, all at once, he sat
^ down
on the three-legged stool. For a moment he just
^
stared at the wooden floor. Then, stiffly, he set his Lady
>^and
the circlet on the floor, as if he renounced them both.
J|""I
meant to take her home," was all he said.
276
Jennifer Roberson
"No."
I said it again. "Lachlan—I am sorry."
Silently
he drew a thong from beneath his doublet. He
pulled
the leather from around his head and handed the
trinket
to me.
Trinket?
It was a ring. It depended from the thong. I
turned
it upward into the candlelight and saw the elabo-
rate
crest; a harp and the crown of Ellas.
'There
are seven of those rings," he said matter-of-
factly.
"Five rest on the hands of my brothers. The other
is on
my father's finger." He looked up at me at last. "Oh,
aye, I
know how things are in royal Houses. I am from one
myself."
"Lachlan,"
I said. "Or, is it?"
"Oh,
aye. Cuinn Lachian Llewellyn. My father has a
taste
for names." He frowned a little, oddly distant and
detached.
"But then he has eleven children, so it is for the
best."
"High
Prince Cuinn of Ellas." The ring fell out of my
hand
and dangled on its thong. "In the names of all the
gods of
Homana, why did you keep it secret?"
A shrug
twitched at his shoulders. "It was—a thing
between
my father and myself. 1 was not, you see, the sort
of heir
Rhodri wanted. I preferred harping to governing
and
healing to courting women." He smiled a little, a
mere
twisting of his mouth. "I was not ready for responsi-
bility.
I wanted no wife to chain me to the castle. I wanted
to
leave Rheghed behind and see the whole of Ellas, on
my own,
without a retinue. The heirship is so—binding."
Tills
time the smile held more of the Lachlan I knew.
"You
might know something of that, 1 think."
"But—all
this silence with Torry. And me\" I thought he
had
been a fool. "Had you said anything, none of this
might
have happened!"
"I
could not. It was a bond between my father and me."
Lachlan
rubbed at his brow, staring at his harp. He hunched
on the
stool, shoulders slumped, and the candlelight was
dull on
his dyed brown hair.
Dyed
brown hair. Not gray, as he had said, pleading
vanity,
but another color entirely.
I sat
down. I set my back against the cold wall and
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 277
waited.
I thought of Torry and Finn in the darkness and
rain,
and Lachlan here before me. "Why?"
He
sighed and rubbed at his eyes. "Originally, it was a
,>fiE»me
I wished to play How better to see your realm than
•. to
go its length and breadth unknown? So my father
^^agreed,
saying if I wanted to play at such foolishness, I
^'.would
have to play it absolutely. He forbade me to divulge
.-.Biy
name and rank unless I was in danger."
t, "But to keep it from me . . ."I
shook my head.
M
"It was because of you." He nodded as I frowned.
|¥"When
I met you and learned who you were, I wrote at
|h0nce
to my father. I told him what you meant to do, and
ow I
thought you could not do it. Take Homana back
rom
Bellam? No. You had no men, no army. Only Finn
"7.
and me." He smiled. "I came with you because I
ranted
to, to see what you could do And I came because
ay
father, when he saw what you meant to do, wanted
MI to
win."
I felt
a sluggish stirring of anger deep inside. "He sent
ie no
aid—"
'To the
pretender-prince of Homana?" Lachlan shook
is
head. "You forget—Bellam encroached upon Ellas, He
JFered
Electra to Rhodri's heir. It was not in Ellas's
aterests
to support Carillon's bid for the throne." He
rftened
his tone a bit. "For all I would have liked to give
au what
aid I could, I had my father's realm to think of,
>o.
We have enemies. This had to remain your battle."
"Still,
you came with me. You risked yourself."
"I
risked nothing. If you recall, I did not fight, playing
^,the
harper's role." He shook his head. "It was not easy. I
Jihave
trained as a warrior since I was but a child. But my
Rather
forbade me to fight, and it seemed the best thing to
-f do.
And he said also I was to go to watch and learn what I
I'could.
If you won the war and held your realm for a
^twelve-month
and a day, Rhodri would oner alliance."
H
"It has been longer than that." I did not need to count
^ ithe
days.
"And
did you not just send to other realms, offering the
i"hand
of your sister in marriage?" The color moved through
^ris
face. "It is not my place to offer what I cannot. My
Hfether
is High King. It was for him to accept your offer,
Z78
Jennifer Roberson
and I
had to wait for him." He shut his eyes a moment.
"Lodhi,
but I thought she would wait ..."
"So
did I." The stone was cold against my spine. "Oh
Lachlan,
had I known—"
"I
know. But it was not for me to say." His face was
almost
ugly. "Such is the lot of princes."
"Could
you have said nothing to her?"
He
stared at the cushion-strewn floor. "I nearly did.
More
times than I can count. Once I even spoke of Rhodri's
heir,
but she only bid me to be quiet. She did not wish to
think
on marriage." He sighed. "She was ever gentle with
my
feelings, seeking to keep me—a harper—from looking
too
high, as did her brother, the Mujhar." He did not
smile.
"And I thought, in all my complacency, she would
say
differently when she knew. And you. And so I savored
the
waiting, instead."
I shut
my eyes and rested my head against the stone. I
recalled
the harper in the Ellasian roadhouse, giving me
my
memories. I recalled his patient understanding when I
treated
him with contempt, calling him spy when he was
merely
a friend and nothing more.
And how
I had bidden him slay a man to see if he would
do it.
So much
between us, and now so little. I knew what he
would
do. "You had no choice," I said at last. "The gods
know I
understand what it is to serve rank and responsibil-
ity.
But Lachlan, you must not blame yourself. What else
could
you have done?"
"Spoken,
regardless of my father." He stared at the
floor,
shoulders hunched. So vulnerable, suddenly, when
he had
always been so strong. "I should have said some-
thing
to someone."
And yet
it would have done no good. We both realized
it,
saying nothing because the saying would bring more
pain. A
man may love a woman while the woman loves
another,
but no man may force her to love where she has
no
desire to do so
"By
the All-Father himself," Lachlan said wearily, "I
think
it is not worth it." He gathered up his Lady and
rose,
hooking one arm through the silver circlet. He had
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 279
more
right to it than most, though it should have had the
•^hine
of royal gold.
l^' I
stood up stiffly and faced him. I held out the ring on
^•fts
leather thong. "Lachlan—" I stopped.
^ He
knew. He took the ring, looked at the crest that
,-^inade
him a man—a prince—apart, then slipped the thong
Iwer
his head once more. "I came a harper," he said
^
quietly. "It is how I will leave in the morning."
'^
"Do you leave me, old friend, I will be quite alone." It
|was
all I could say to him; the only plea 1 would ever
Imake.
I saw
the pain in his eyes. "I came, knowing I would
ave to
leave. Not when,.but knowing the time would
ame. I
had hoped, for a while, I would not leave alone."
|Pnie
line of his jaw was set; the gentleness of the harper
1 fled,
and in its place 1 saw the man Lachlan had ever
3n, but
showing it to few. "You are a king. Carillon.
igs are
always alone. Someday—I shall know it, too."
te
reached out and caught my arm in the ritual clasp of
riendship.
"Yhana Lodhi, yffennogfaer."
"Walk
humbly, harper," I said softly
He went
out of the room into the shadows of the corn-
or, and
his Song of Homana was done.
I went
into my chambers and found her waiting. She
|was in
shadow with a single candle lighted. She was wrapped
|in one
of my chamber robes: wine-purple velvet hned
|with
dappled silver fur. On her it was voluminous, I could
isee
little but hands and feet.
I I
stopped. 1 could not face her now. To look at her was
|to
recall what Finn had done, and how it had ended in
Banishment.
How it had ended with Tony and Lachlan
^ gone
as well. To look at her was to look on the face of
g^aloneness,
and that I could not bear.
•^
"No," she said, as I made a movement to go. "Stay you.
^Do you
wish it, 1 will go."
|| Still in shadow. The wine-colored velvet
melted into the
^
shadows. The candlelight played on her hair—unbound,
"^-and
hanging to her knees.
fe I
sat down because I had no strength to stand. On the
ledge
of my draperied bed. I was all over ash, as Lachlan
280
Jennifer Roberson
had
said, and still damp from the storm outside. No doubt
I
smelled of it as well: wet wool and smoke and flame.
She
came and stood before me. "Let me lift this grief
from
you."
I
looked at her throat with the bruises on it; the marks
of a
crazed man's madness.
She
knelt and pulled off my heavy boots. I said nothing,
watching
her, amazed she would do what I, or a servant,
could
much more easily do.
Her
hands were deft and gentle, stripping me of my
clothing,
and then she knelt before me. "Ah my lord, do
not
grieve so. You put yourself in pain."
It came
to me to wonder whether she had ever knelt for
Tynstar.
She put
one hand on my thigh. Her fingers were cool. I
could
feel the pulse-beat in her palm.
I looked
again at the bruises on her throat. Slowly I
reached
out and set my hands there, as Finn had set his,
and
felt the fragility other flesh, "Because of you," I said.
"Aye."
Her eyes did not waver from mine. "And for
you,
good my lord, I am sorry he had to go."
My
hands tightened. She did not flinch or pull away. "I
am not
Tynstar, lady "
"No."
Neither did she smile.
My
hands slid up slowly to cup her skull with its weight
of
shining hair. The robe, now loosened, slid off her
shoulders
and fell against the floor: a puddle of wine-dark
velvet-
She was naked underneath.
I
pulled her up from the stone and into my arms,
sagging
back onto the bed. To be rid of the loneliness, I
would
lie with the dark god himself.
"I
need you," 1 whispered against her mouth. "By the
gods,
woman, how I need you. ..."
FOUR
bie
infirmary tent stank of blood and burning flesh. I
l^vatched
as the army chirurgeon lifted the hot iron from
JIfiowan's
arm, studied the seared edges of the wound and
|ftodded.
"Closed. No more blood, captain. You will keep
lithe
arm, I think, with the help of the gods."
^ Rowan
sat stiffly on the campstool, white-faced and
Shaking.
The sword had cut into the flesh of his forearm,
Hbut
had missed muscle and bone. He would keep the arm
Hand
its use, though I did not doubt he felt, at the moment,
Ute if
it had already been cut off.
H He
let out his breath slowly. It hissed between his
Uteeth.
He put out his right hand and groped for the cup of
I sour
wine Waite had set out on the table. Fingers closed
| on
the cup, gripping so hard the knuckles shone white,
|and
then he lifted it to his mouth. I smiled. Waite had put
|.a
powder in it that would ease the pain a bit. Rowan had
^originally
refused any such aid, but he had not seen the
^
powder. And now he drank, unknowing, and the pain
It;
would be eased somewhat.
§ I glanced back over my shoulder through the
gap in the
P
entrance flap. Outside it was gray, gray and dark blue,
J||
with the weight of clouds and winter fog. My breath,
Hijeaving
the warmth of the infirmary tent, plumed on the
^Sair,
white as smoke.
'i
"My thanks, my lord." Rowan's voice still bore the
1'strain,
but it lessened as the powder worked its magic.
I 281 I
282
Jennifer Roberson
He
began to pull on his fur-lined leathers, though I
knew
the motion must hurt. I did not move to help
because
I knew he would not allow it, me being his
Mujhar,
and because it would hurt his pride. Like all the
Cheysuli,
he had his pride; a prickly, arrogant pride that
some
took for condescension. It was not, usually. It was
merely
a certainty of their place within the boardgame of
the
gods. And Rowan, though he was less Cheysuli in his
habits
than Homanan, reflected much of that traditional
pride
without even knowing it.
I
shifted in the entrance, then grimaced in response to
the
protests of my muscles. My body was battered and
sore,
but I bore not a single wound from the last encoun-
ter
earlier in the day. My blood was still my own, unlike
Rowan's—unless
one counted what I had lost from my
nose
when struck in the face by my horse's head. The
blow
had knocked' me half-senseless for a moment or two,
making
me easy prey, but I had managed to stay in the
saddle.
And it was Rowan, moving to thrust aside the
attacker's
sword, who had taken the blow meant for me.
We were
both fortunate the Atvian had missed his target.
"Hungry?"
I asked.
Rowan
nodded. Like us all, he was too thin, pared
down to
blood and bone. Because of his Cheysuli features
his
face was gaunter than mine, because of my beard, no
one
noticed if I seemed gaunt or not. It had its advan-
tages;
Rowan looked ill, I did not, and I hated to be asked
how I
fared. It made me feel fragile when I was not, but
that is
the cost of being a king.
Rowan
pulled on his gloves, easing into the right one
because
the movement hurt his arm. He was still pale,
lacking
the deeper bronze of Cheysuli flesh because of the
loss of
blood. With his eyes gone black from the drug and
the
pallor of his face, he looked more Homanan than
Cheysuli.
Poor
Rowan, I thought: forever caught between the
worlds.
He
scrubbed his good arm through his heavy hair and
glanced
at me. He forced a smile. "It does not hurt, my
lord."
Waite,
putting away his chirurgeon's tools, grunted in
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 283
itisgust.
"In my presence, it hurts. Before the Mujhar, it
loes
not. You have miraculous powers of healing, my lord
Is. . .
perhaps we should trade places."
|| . Rowan
colored. I grinned and pulled aside the doorflap,
jiwaving
him outside even as he protested I should go first.
IftThe
mist came up to chill our faces at once. Rowan hunched
|[,liis
shoulders against the cold and cradled his aching arm.
|p'*It
is better, my lord."
H I
said nothing about the powder, merely gestured
^Boward
the nearest cooldire. "There. Hot wine and roasting
Hlboar.
You will undoubtedly feel better once your belly is
||fall
again."
H. He
walked carefully across the hardpacked, frozen ground,
|trying
not to jar the injured arm. "My lord . .
I am
|sorry."
^
"For being injured?" I shook my head. "That was my
|wound
you took. It requires my gratitude, not an apology
Ifrom
you."
"It
does." Tension lines marred the youthfulness of his
ce. He
watched the ground where he walked and the
lick
black hair hid most of his face. Like me, he had not
lit it
for too long. "You would do better with Finn at your
Side. I
am—not a liege man." He cast me a quick, glinting
"ance
out of drug-blackened eyes. "I have not the skill to
"ep
you safe, my lord."
I
stopped at the cookfire and nodded at the soldier who
iided
the roasting boar. He began to cut with a greasy
life.
"You are not Finn, nor ever can be," I said clearly
»
Rowan. "But I want you by my side."
"My
lord—"
I cut
him off with a gesture of my hand. "When I sent
IFfinn
from my service six months ago, I knew what I was
,,"risking.
Still, it had to be done, for the good of us all. I do
ot
dismiss the importance his presence held. The bond
etween
Cheysuli liege man and his Mujhar is a sacred
Iling,
but—once broken—there is no going back." I grasped
this
uninjured arm, knowing there was no lir-ba.nd under-
Ifteath
the furs and leathers. "I do not seek another Finn. I
alue
you. Do not disappoint me by undervaluing your-
elf."
The soldier dropped a slice of meat onto a stab of
augh
bread and put it into my hands. In turn, I put it into
284
Jennifer Roberson
Rowan's.
"Now, eat. You must restore your strength so we
can
Bght again."
The
mist put beads of water into his hair Damp, it
tangled
against his shoulders. His face was bleak, pale,
stretched
taut over prominent bones, but I thought the
pain
came from something other than his arm.
A pot
of wine was wanning near the firecairn. I knelt,
poured
a cup and handed it up to Rowan. And then, as I
turned
to pour my own, I heard someone shout for me.
"Meat,
my lord?" asked the soldier with the knife.
"A
moment." I rose and turned toward the shout. In the
mist it
was hard to place such sounds, but then I saw the
shapes
coming out of the grayness. Three men on horse-
back:
two of them my Homanans, the third a stranger.
They
were muffled in mired leathers and woolen wrap-
pings.
The mist parted as they rode through and showed
them
more clearly, then closed behind them again. "My
lord!"
One of the men dismounted before me and dropped
to one
knee, then up again. "A courier, my lord."
The
gesture indicated the still-mounted stranger. He
rode a
good horse, as couriers usually do, but I saw no
crest
to mark him. He wore dark leathers and darker wool;
a cap
hid most of his head so that only his face showed.
The hot
wine warmed my hands, even through my
gloves.
"Atvian?" I put no inflection in my tone.
The
stranger reached up to pull woolen wraps from his
face.
"No, my lord—Ellasian." Mouth bared, the words
took on
greater clarity. "Sent from High Prince Cuinn."
Lachlan.
I could not help the smile. "Step you down,
friend
courier. You are well come to my army."
He
dismounted, came closer and dropped to one knee
in a
quick bow of homage. Neatly done. He had a warm,
friendly
face, but was young, and yet he seemed to know
his
business. He was red-haired beneath the cap,, judging
by his
brows, and his eyes were green. There were freck-
les on
his face.
"My
lord, it pleases me to serve the High Prince. He
bids me
give you this." He dug into a leather pouch at his
belt
and withdrew a folded parchment, A daub of blue wax
sealed
it closed, and pressed into it was the royal crest: a
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 285
^fcarp
and the crown of Ellas. It brought back the vision of
^Lachlan
and his Lady, when he told me who he was.
X I
broke the seal and unfolded the parchment. It crack-
,€,led
in the misted air; its crispness faded as the paper
H^wilted.
But the words were legible.
S&&'
^ Upon
returning home to Rheghed, I was met with
warm
welcome from the king my father. So warm,
indeed
that he showered me with gifts. One of these
gifts
was a command of my own, did I ever need to
use it.
I doubt Rhodri ever intended me to be so
generous
as to loan the gift to you, but the thing is
already
done. My men are yours for as long as you
need
them. And does it please you to offer a gift in
return,
I ask only that you treat kindly with Ellas
when we
seek to make an alliance.
By the
hand of the High Prince,
Cuinn
Lachlan Llewellyn
I
grinned. And then I laughed, and set my cup of hot
rtne
into the hands of the courier. "Well come, indeed," I
Ad.
"How many. and where?"
He
grinned back when he had drunk. "Half a league
1st, my
lord. As to the number—five thousand. The
toyal
Ellasian Guard."
I
laughed again, loudly. "Ah Lodhi, I thank you for this
ourier!
But even more I thank you for Lachlan's mend-
hip!"
I clapped the courier on his shoulder. "Your name."
"Gryffth,
my lord."
"And
your captain's?"
"Meredyth.
A man close to the High Prince himself."
iryflth
grinned. "My lord, forgive me, but we all know
'iat Prince
Cuinn intended. And none of us is unwilling.
all I
send to bring them in?"
"Five
thousand. ..." I shook my head, smiling at the
Might.
"Thome will be finished in a day."
Gryffth
brightened. "Then you are near to winning?"
"We
are winning." I said. "But this will make the
nding
sweeter. Ah gods, I do thank you for that harper."
took
the cup from Gryffth as he went to remount his
286
Jennifer Roberson
horse,
and watched him ride back into the fog with his
Homanan
guides.
"Well,
my lord," Rowan said, "the thing is done at last."
"A
good thing, too." I grinned "You are not fit to fight
with
that arm, and now you will not have to."
"My
lord—" he protested, but I did not listen as I read
Lachlan's
note again.
The map
was of leather, well-tanned and soft It was a
pale
creamy color, and the paint stood out upon it. In the
candlelighted
pavilion, the lines and rune-signs seemed to
glow.
"Here."
I put my forefinger on the map. "Mujhara. We
are
here—perhaps forty leagues from the city northwest "
I moved
my finger more westerly. 'The Cheysuli are
here,
closer to Lestra, though still within Homana." I
lifted
the finger and moved it more dramatically, pointing
out the
Solindish port ofAndemir "Thome came in here,
Atvia
is but eight leagues across the Idrian Ocean, directly
west of
Solinde. He took the shortest sea route to Solinde,
and the
shortest land route to Homana." I traced the
invisible
line across the map. "See you here? —he came
this
way, cutting Solinde in half. It is here our boundary
puts
its fist into Solinde, and it is where Thorne was
bound."
"But
you stopped him " The Ellasian captain nodded.
"You
have cut him off, and he goes no farther."
It
seemed odd to hear the husky accent again, though
we
spoke Homanan between us and all my captains There
were
other Ellasians as well, clustered within my tent; I
meant
Lachlan's gift to know precisely what they were
doing.
"Thorne
let it be known he was splitting his army," I
explained.
"He would come overland through Solinde,
gaining
support from the rebels there. But he also sent a
fleet—or
so ail the reports said. A fleet bound for
Hondarth—down
here." I set my finger on the mark that
represented
Hondarth, near the bottom of the map and
directly
south of Mujhara. "But there was no fleet—no
real
fleet. It was a ruse."
Meredyth
nodded. "He meant you to halve your army
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 287
and
send part of it to Hondarth, so that when he came in
here—full
strength—he would face a reduced Homanan
warhost."
He smiled. "Clever. But you are more so, my
.-lord
Mujhar."
, - I
shook my head. "Fortunate. My spies are good. I
..^teard
of the ruse and took steps to call back those I had
^dispatched
to Hondarth; thank the gods, they had not
^
gotten far. We have Thome now, but he wilt not give up.
£-He
will send his men against me until there is no one
^fcft-'
^;
"And the Solindish aid he wanted?"
y
"Less than he desired." Meredyth was older than I by
'^gt
least twenty years, but he listened well. At first I had
1-pesitated
to speak so plainly, knowing him more experi-
^fcBced
than I, but Lachlan had chosen well. Here was a
,' man
who would listen and weigh my words, then make his
"
idgment upon them. "He came into Solinde expecting to
ad
thousands for the taking, but there have been only
indreds.
Since I sent the Cheysuli there, the Solindish
•e—hesitant
to upset the alliance I made."
Meredyth's
expression showed calm politeness. "The
ll^ueen
fares well?"
/ I
knew what he asked. It was more than just an inquiry
ler
Electra's health. The future of Solinde rested upon
ie
outcome—or issue—of the marriage; Electra would
*ar me
a second child in three months and, if it were a
Jy,
Solinde would be one child closer to freedom and
I.Alitonomy.
It was why Thome had found his aid so thin.
1-That,
and the Cheysuli.
||t"
"The Queen fares well," I said.
J|"'
Meredyth's smile was slight. "Then what of the Ihlini,
^roy
lord? Have they not joined with Thome?"
i|» "There has been no word of Ihlini
presence within the
||Atvian
army." Thank the gods. but I did not say it. "What
^j^tye
face are Atvians with a few hundred Solindish rebels."
L^?
made a quick gesture. "Thome is clever, aye, and he
as.
knows how to come against me. I am not crushing him as I
iKfflight
wish, not when he uses my own methods against
^sac.
No pitched battles, merely raids and skirmishes, as I
i^mployed
against Bellam. As you see, we have been here
w1
288
Jennifer Roborson
six
months; the thing is not easily won. At least—it was
not,
until Lachtan sent his gift."
Meredyth
nodded his appreciation. "I think, my lord,
you
will be home in time to see the birth of your heir."
"Be
the gods willing." I tapped the map again. "Thome
has
sent some of his army in here, where I have posted
the
Cheysuli. But the greater part of it remains here,
where
we are. The last skirmish was two days ago. I doubt
he will
come against me before another day has passed.
Until
then, I suggest we make our plans "
Thorne
of Atvia came against us two days later with all
the
strength he had. No more slash and run as he had
learned
from me, he fought, this time, with the determi-
nation
of a man who knows he will lose and, in the losing,
lose
himself. With the Ellasian men we hammered him
back,
shutting off the road to Homana. Atvian bowmen
notwithstanding,
we were destroying his thinning ofiense.
I
sought only Thorne in the crush of fighting. I wanted
him at
the end of my blade, fully aware of his own death
and who
dealt it. It was he who had taken my sword from
me on
the battlefield near Mujhara, nearly seven years
before.
It was he who had put the iron on me and ordered
Rowan
flogged. It was Thorne who might have slain Alix,
given
the chance, had not the Cheysuli come. And it was
Thorne
who offered me insult by thinking he could pull
down my
House and replace it with his own.
When
the arrow lodged itself in the leather-and-mail of
my
armor, I thought myself unhurt. It set me back in the
saddle
a moment and I felt the punch of a sharpened fist
against
my left shoulder, but I did not think it had gone
through
to touch my flesh. It was only when I reined my
horse
into an oncoming Atvian that I realized the arm was
numb.
I
swore. The Atvian approached at full gallop, sword
lifted
above his head. He rode with his knees, blind to his
horse,
intent on striking me down. I meant to do the
same,
but now I could not. I had only the use of one arm.
His
horse slammed into mine. The impact sent a wave
of pain
rolling from shoulder to skull. I bent forward at
once,
seeking to keep my seat as the Atvian's sword came
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 289
down.
Blade on blade and the screech of stee —the de-
flected
blow went behind me, barely, and into ny saddle.
I spun
my horse away and the Atvian lost his sword. It
remained
wedged in my saddle, offering precarious seat-
ing,
since an ill-timed movement might result in an opened
buttock,
but at least I had disarmed him. 1 stood up in my
stirrups,
avoiding the sword, and saw him coming at me.
He was
unarmed. He screamed. And he threw himself
from
his horse to lock both hands through the rings of my
mail.
My own
sword was lost. I felt it fall, twisting out of my
hand,
as the weight came down upon me. He was large,
too
large, and unwounded. "With both hands grasping the
ringmail
of my armor, he dragged me from my horse.
I
twisted in midair, trying to free myself. But the ground
came up
to meet us and nearly knocked me out of my
senses.
My left arm was still numb, still useless.
His
weight was unbearable. He ground me into the
earth.
One knee went into my belly as he rose up to reach
for his
knife and I felt the air rush out. And yet somehow I
gritted
my teeth and unsheathed my own knife, jabbing
upward
into his groin.
He
screamed. His own weapon dropped as he doubled
over,
grabbing his groin with both hands. Blood poured
out of
the wound and splashed against my face. And yet 1
could
not move; could not twist away. His weight was
upon my
belly and the fire was in my shoulder.
I
stabbed again, striking with gauntleted hands. His
,
screams ran on, one into another, until it was a single
' sound
of shock and pain and outrage. I saw the blindness
in his
eyes and knew he would bleed to death.
He bent
forward. Began to topple. The knee shut off
my air.
And then he fell and the air came back, a little,
but all
his dead weight was upon me. His right arm
was
flung across my face, driving ringmail into my mouth,
and I
felt the coppery taste of blood spring up into my
teeth.
Blood. Gods, so much blood, and some of it my
own. .
. .
I
twisted. I thrust with my one good arm and tried to
topple
him off. But his size and the slackness of death
290
Jennifer Robarcon
undid
me, the heaviest weight of all, and 1 had no strength
left to
fight it. I went down, down into the oubliette, with
no one
there to catch me. . . .
Shadows.
Darkness. A little light. I thrust myself up-
ward
into the light, shouting out a name.
"Be
still, my lord," Rowan said. "Be still."
Waite
took a swab of bloody linen from me and I real-
ized he
tended my shoulder. More blood. Gods, would he
turn to
cautery? It was no wonder Rowan seemed so calm.
He had
felt the kiss of hot steel and now expected me to
do the
same.
I shut
my eyes. Sweat broke out and coursed down my
face. I
had forgotten what pain was, real pain, having
escaped
such wounds for so long. In Caledon, once or
twice,
I had been wounded badly, but I had always forgot-
ten the
pain and weakness that broke down the soul.
"The
arrow was loosed from close by," Waite said conver-
sationally.
"Your armor stopped most of the force of it, but
not
all. Still, it is not a serious wound; I have got the
arrowhead
out. If you lie still long enough, I think the
hole
will heal.
I
opened one eye a slit. "No cautery?*'
"Do
you prefer it?"
"No—"
I hissed as the shoulder twinged. "By the gods—
can you
not give me what you gave Rowan?"
"I
thought you gave me something," Rowan muttered.
"I
slept too well that night."
Waite
pressed another clout of linen against the wound.
It came
away less bloody, but the pain was still alive. "I
will
give you whatever you require, my lord. It is a part of
a
chirurgeon's service." He smiled as I scowled-. "Wait you
until I
am done with the linens, and you shall have your
powder."
He gestured to Rowan. "Lift him carefully, cap-
tain.
Think of him as an egg."
I would
have laughed, had I the strength. As it was I
could
only smile. But when Rowan started to lift me up so
Waite
could bind the linens around my chest, I nearly
groaned
aloud. "Gods—are all my bones broken?"
"No."
Waite pressed a linen pad against my shoulder
and
began to bind strips around my chest. "You were
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 291
,fbund
beneath three hundred pounds of mailed Atvian
bulk. I
would guess you were under it for several hours,
while
the battle raged on. It is no wonder you feel half-
crushed—
there, captain, I am done. Let him down again,
gently.
Do not crack the eggshell."
I shut
my eyes again until the sweat dried upon my
body. A
moment later Waite held a cup to my mouth,
1
"Drink, my lord. Sleep is best for now."
It was
sweetened wine. I drank down the cup and lay
"
my head down again, trying to shut out the pain. Rowan,
kneeling
beside my cot, watched with worried eyes.
T I shivered. Waite pulled rugs and pelts up
over my
body
until only my head was free. There were braziers all
.-'around
my cot. In winter, even a minor wound can kill.
My
mouth was sore, no doubt from where the ringmail
v. had
broken my lip. I tongued it, feeling the swollen cut,
If then
grimaced. What a foolish way to be taken out of a
I:
battle.
^' "I must assume we won the day," I
said. "Otherwise I
^ would
doubtless be in an Atvian tent with no chirurgeon
^ and
no captain " I paused. "Unless you were taken, too."
^ "No." Rowan shook his head.
"We won, my lord, re-
^.
soundingly. The war as well as the'day. The Atvians are
^
broken—most of them who could ran back into Solinde. I
"doubt
they will trouble us again."
^
"Thorne?"
^ "Dead, my lord."
if- I sighed. "I wanted him."
^ "So did I." Rowan's face was
grim. "I did not heed you,
^ my
lord, I went into battle myself. But I could not find
^ him
in the fighting."
^> The powder was beginning to work. Coupled
with the
^
weakness from the wound, it was sucking me into the
<
darkness. It grew more difficult to speak. "See he is bur-
. ied
as befits his rank," I said carefully, "but do not return
J his
body to his people. When my father lay dying of his
wounds
on the plains near Mujhara, and Thorne had taken
\ me, I
asked for a Homanan burial. Thorne denied it to
him.
And so I deny an Atvian rite to Thorne."
^ "Aye, my lord." Rowan's voice was
low
i. I struggled to keep my senses. "He has
an heir. Two
292
Jennifer Roberson
sons, I
have heard! Send—send word the Mujhar of Homana
asks
fealty. I will receive Thome's sons in Homana-Mujhar—
far
their oaths." I frowned as my lids sealed up my eyes.
"Rowan—see
it is done—"
"Aye,
my lord."
I
roused myself once more. "We leave here in the
morning.
I want to go back to Mujhara."
"You
will not be fit to go back in the morning," Waite
said
flatly. "You will see for yourself, my lord."
"I
am not averse to a litter," I murmured. "My pride
can
withstand it, I think."
Rowan
smiled. "Aye, my lord. A litter instead of a
horse."
I
thought about it. No doubt Electra would hear. I did
not
wish her to worry. "I will go in a litter until we are but
half a
league from Mujhara," I told him clearly. "Then I
will
ride the horse."
"Of
course, my lord. I will see to it myself."
I gave
myself over to darkness.
Waite,
unfortunately, bad the right of it. Litter or no. I
was not
fit to go back in the morning. But by the third day
I felt
much better. I dressed in my warmest clothing,
trying
to ignore the pain in my shoulder, and went out to
speak
to Meredyth and his fellow captains.
Their
time with me was done. Their aid had helped me
accomplish
Thorne's defeat, and it was my place now to
send
them home- I saw to it each captain would have gold
to take
back to Ellas, as well as coin for the common
soldiers.
The war with Thome had not impoverished me,
but I
had little to spare. All I could promise was a sound
alliance
for the High King, which seemed to please
Meredyth
well enough. He then asked a boon of me,
which I
gave him gladly enough: Gryfflh had asked to stay
in
Homana to serve Ellas in Homana-Mujhar, more an
envoy
than simple courier. And so the Royal Ellasian
Guard
went home, lacking a red-haired courier.
I also
went home, in a litter after all—too worn to spend
time on
horseback—and spent most of the journey home
sleeping,
or contemplating my future. Atvia was mine, did
I wish
to keep it, although there was a chance Thorne's
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 293
sons
might wish to contest it. I thought they were too
young,
but could not set an age to them. Yet to try to
govern
Atvia myself was nearly impossible. The island was
'' too
distant. A regent in Solinde was bad enough, and yet I
, had
no choice. I did not want even Solinde; Bellam had,
: more
or less, bequeathed it to me with his death, and the
"
marriage had sealed it. Although I was not averse to
^
claiming two realms my own in place of the single one I
,
wanted, I was not greedy. In the past, far-flung realms
^Shad
drained the coffers of other kings, I would not fall into
£the
trap. Atvia was Atvian. And did Electra give me an
^heir
this time, I would be happy enough to see Solinde go
^ to my
second son.
'J, It was days to Mujhara by litter, and it was
well before
half a
league out that I took to a horse at last. The wound
in my
shoulder ached, but it was beginning to heal. I
thought,
so long as I did not push myself too hard, I could
ride
the rest of the way.
And yet
when at last I rode through the main gates of
[my
rose-walled palace, I felt the weariness in my body.
|f My
mind was fogged with it. I could hardly think. I
^Wanted
only to go to bed, my bed, not to some army cot.
^And
with Electra in my arms.
,t I acknowledged the welcome of my servants
and went at
|once
to the third floor, seeking Electra's chambers. But a
ITSolindish
chamberwoman met me at the door and said the
| Queen
was bathing, could I not wait?
No, I
said, the bath could wait, but she giggled and said
the
Queen had prepared a special greeting, having re-
ceived
the news of my return. Too weary to think of
waving
such protestations aside—and wondering what
^
Electra could be planning—I turned back and went away.
^ If I could not see my wife, I could at
least see my
^
daughter. I went to the nursery and found eight-month-
/ old
Aislinn sound asleep in an oak-and-ivory cradle, at-
.'
tended by three nursemaids. She was swathed in linens
, and
blankets, but one fist had escaped the covers She
' -.
clutched it against her face!
^ I smiled, bending down to set a hand against
her cheek.
i^So
soft, so fair . I could not believe she was mine. My
^hand
was so large and hard and callused, touching the
294
Jennifer Roberson
fragile
flesh. Her hair, springing from the pink scalp, was
coppery-red,
curling around her ears. And her eyes, when
they
were open, were gray and lashed with gold. She had
all of
her mother's beauty and none of her father's size.
"Princess
of Homana," I whispered to my daughter.
"who
will be your prince?"
Aislinn
did not answer. And I, growing wearier by the
moment,
thought it better to leave her undisturbed. So I
took
myself to my chambers and dismissed my body-
servant,
falling down across my bed to mimic my daugh-
ter's
rest.
I came
up out of the blackness to find I could not
breathe.
Something had leached the air from my lungs
until I
could not cry out, could not cry, could not speak.
All I
could do was gape like a fish taken from the water,
napping
on the bank.
There
was no pain. Merely helplessness and confusion;
pain
enough, to a man who knows himself trapped. And
does
not know why.
A cool
hand came down and touched my brow. It floated
out of
the darkness, unattached to an arm, until I realized
the arm
was merely covered by a sleeve.
"Carillon.
Ah, my poor Carillon. So triumphant in your
battles,
and now so helpless in your bed."
Electra's
voice, Electra's hand- I could smell the scent
upon
her. A bath, the woman had said; a special greeting
prepared.
The
cool fingers traced the line of my nose; gently
touched
my eyelids. "Carillon ... it ends. This travesty of
our
marriage. You will end, my lord." The hand came
down my
cheek and caressed my open mouth. "It is time
for me
to go."
Out of
the darkness leaped a rune, a glowing purple
rune.
and in its reflection I saw my wife. She wore black
to
swath her body, and yet I saw her belly. The child. The
heir of
Homana. Did she dare to take it from me?
Electra
smiled. A hood covered all her hair, leaving
only
her face in the light. One hand came up to cradle her
belly.
"Not yours," she said gently. "Did you really think
it was?
Ah no. Carillon ... it is another man's. Think you
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 295
I would
keep myself to you when I can have my true lord's
love?"
She turned slightly, and I saw the man beyond her.
I
mouthed his name, and he smiled. The sweet, beguil-
ing
smile that I had seen before.
He
moved forward out of the darkness. It was his rune
that
set the room afire. In the palm of his right hand it
danced.
Tynstar
set his hand to the wick of the candle by my
bed,
and the candle burst into flame. Not the pure yellow
fire of
the normal candle, but an eerie purple flame that
hissed
and shed sparks into the room.
The
rune in his hand winked out. He smiled. "You have
been a
good opponent. It-has been interesting to watch
you
grow, watch you come to manhood, watch you learn
what it
is to rule. You have learned how to manipulate
men and
make them bend to your will without making
them
aware what you do. There is more kingcraft in you
than I
had anticipated, when I set you free to leave this
place
eight years ago."
I could
not move. I felt the helplessness in my body and
the
futility in my soul. I would die without a protest,
unable
to summon a sound. At least-let me make a sound—
"Blame
yourself," Tynstar told me gently. "What I do
now was
made possible by you, when you sent the Cheysuli
from
your side. Had you kept him by you—" He smiled.
"But
then you could not, could you, so long as he threat-
ened the
Queen. You had Etectra to think of instead of
yourself.
Commendable, my lord Mujhar; it speaks well of
your
priorities. But it will also be your death." The flame
danced
upon its wick and sculpted his bearded face into a
death's
head of unparallelled beauty. "Finn knew the truth,
He
understood- It was Finn who saw me in Electra's bed."
His
teeth showed briefly as I spasmed against the sheets.
One
hand went to Electra's belly.
I tried
to thrust myself from the bed but my limbs
would
not obey me. And then Tynstar moved close, into
the
sphere of light, and put his hand upon me.
"I
am done playing with you," he said. "It is time for me
to
rule." He smiled. "Recall you what Betlam was, when
you
found him on the field?"
I
spasmed again and Tynstar laughed. Electra watched
296
Jennifer Robercon
me as a
hawk will watch a coney, delaying its stoop until
the
perfect moment.
"Cheysuli
i'halla shansu," Tynstar said. "Give my greet-
ings to
the gods."
I felt
the change within my body. Even as I fought
them,
my muscles tightened and drew up my limbs. But-
tocks,
feet and knees, cramping so that I nearly screamed,
while
my legs folded up to crush themselves against my
chest.
My hands curled into fists and a rictus set my
mouth
so that my teeth were bared in a feral snarl. I felt
my
flesh tightening on my bones, drying into hardness.
What
voice there was left to me lost itself in a garbled
wail,
and I knew myself a dead man. Tynstar had slain his
quarry.
Cheysuli
i'halla shansu, he had said. May there be
Cheysuli
peace upon you. An odd farewell from an Ihlini
to a
Homanan. Neither of us claimed the magic the Cheysuli
held,
and yet Tynstar reminded me of it. Reminded me of
the
four days I had spent in the oubliette, believing myself
Cheysuli.
Well,
why could I not again? Had I not felt the power of
the
race while I hung in utter darkness?
My eyes
were staring. I shut them. Even as I felt my
muscles
wrack themselves against my bones and flesh, I
reached
inward to my soul where I could touch what I
touched
before: the thing that had made me Cheysuli.
For
four days, once, I had known the gods- Could I not
know
them again?
I heard
the hiss of steel blade against a sheath. And
then I
heard nothing more.
FIVE
Silence.
The darkness was gone and the daylight pierced
my
lids- It painted everything orange and yellow and
crimson.
I lay
quite still. I did not breathe; did not dare to,
until
at last my lungs were so empty my heart banged
against
my chest protesting the lack. I took a shallow
breath-
I saw
the shadow then. A dark blot moved across
the
sunrise of my vision. It whispered, soughing like a
breeze
through summer grass. Like spreading wings on
a hawk.
Afraid
I would see nothing and yet needing to see, I
opened
my eyes. I saw. The hawk perched on the chair
back,
hooked beak gleaming in the sunlight and his bright
eyes
ftill of wisdom. And patience, endless patience. Cai
was
nothing if not a patient bird.
I
turned my head against the pillow. The draperies of
my bed
had been pulled back, looped up against the
wooden
tester posts and tied with ropes of scarlet and
gold.
Sunlight poured in the nearest casement and glit-
tered
off the brilliance. Everywhere gold. On my bed and
on
Duncan's arms.
I heard
the rasp of my breath and the hoarseness of my
voice.
'Tynstar slew me."
"Tynstar
tried."
I 297 I
298
Jennifer Roberson
I was
aware of the bed beneath my body. It seemed to
press
in on me, oppressing me, yet cradling my flesh.
Everything
was emphasized. I heard the tiniest sounds,
saw
colors as 1 had never seen them and felt the texture of
the
bedclothes. But mostly I sensed the tension in Dun-
can's
body.
He sat
upright on a stool, very still as he waited. I saw
how he
watched me, as if he expected something more
than
what I had given him. I could not think what it
was—we
had already discussed Finn's dismissal. And yet I
knew he
was afraid.
Duncan
afraid? No. There was nothing for him to fear.
I
summoned my voice again. "You know what hap-
pened—?"
"I
know what Rowan told me."
"Rowan
" I frowned. "Rowan was not there when Tynstar
came to
slay me."
"He
was." Duncan's smile was brief. "You had best
thank
the gods he was, or you would not now be alive. It
was
Rowan's timely arrival that kept Tynstar's bid to slay
you
from succeeding." He paused. "That . . . and what
power
you threw back at him."
I felt
a tiny surge within my chest. 'Then I did reach
the
magic!"
He
nodded. "Briefly, you tapped what we ourselves
tap. It
was not enough to keep Tynstar in check for long—he
would
have slain you in a moment—but Rowan's arrival
was
enough to end the moment. The presence of a
Cheysuli—though
he lacks a lir—was enough to dilute
Tynstar's
power even more. There was nothing he could
do,
save die himself when faced with Rowan's steel, So—he
left.
But not before he touched you." He paused. "You
nearly
died. Carillon. Do not think you are unscathed."
"He
is gone?"
"Tynstar."
Duncan nodded. "Electra was left behind."
I shut
my eyes. I recalled how she had come out of the
darkness
to tell me the truth of the child. Gods—Tynstar's
child—
I
looked at Duncan again. My eyes felt gritty. My
tongue
was heavy in my mouth. "Where is she?"
"In
her chambers, with a Cheysuli guard at the doors."
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 299
Duncan
did not smile. "She has a measure of her own
power.
Carillon; we do not take chances with her."
"No."
I pushed an elbow against the bed and tried to sit
up. I
discovered no part of my body would move. I was
stiff
and very sore, far worse than after a battle, as if all the
dampness
had got into my bones. I touched my shoulder
then,
recalling the healing wound. There were no ban-
dages.
Just a small patch of crinkled flesh. "You healed
me
..."
"We
tried." Duncan was very grave. "The arrow wound
was
easily done. The —other—was not. Carillon—" For a
moment
he paused, and then I saw his frown. "Do not
think
Ihlini power is easily overcome. Even the earth
magic
cannot restore that which has been taken from a
soul.
Tynstar has power in abundance. What was taken
from
you will never be regained. You are—as you are "
I
stared at him. And then I looked down at myself and
saw
myself. There seemed to be no difference. I was very
stiff
and sore and slow, but a sojourn in bed will do that.
Duncan
merely waited. I moved again to sit up, found it
every
bit as difficult as before, but this time I prevailed. I
swung
my legs over the side of the bed, screwed up my
face
against the creaking of my joints, and sat there as all
my
muscles trembled.
It was
then I saw my fingers. The knuckles were en-
larged
hugely, the flesh stretched thin over brittle bones.
I saw
how the calluses had begun to soften, shedding the
toughness
I needed against the use of a sword. I saw how
the
fingers were vaguely twisted away from my thumb.
And I
ached. Even in the sunlight, I ached with a bone-
deep
pain.
"How
long?" I asked abruptly, knowing I had spent
more
than days in my bed.
"Two
months. We could not raise you from the stupor "
Naked,
I wrenched myself from the bed and stumbled
across
the chamber, to the plate upon the wall. Tjie pol-
ished
silver gave back my face, and I saw what Tynstar
had
done.
Carillon
was still Carillon, certainly recognizable. But
older,
so much older, by twenty years at least.
"It
is my father," I said in shock, recalling the time-
300
Jennifer Roberson
worn
face. The tawny-dark hair was frosted with gray with
the
beard showing equal amounts. Creases fanned out
from my
eyes and bracketed nose and mouth, though most
were
hidden by the beard. And set deeply into the still-
blue
eyes was the knowledge of constant pain.
It was
no wonder I ached. I had the same disease as my
mother,
with her twisted hands and brittle bones, the
swollen,
painful joints. And with each year, the pain and
disability
would worsen.
Tynstar
had put his hand on me and my youth was
spent
at once.
I
turned slowly and sat down on the nearest chest. I
began
to shake with more than physical weakness. It was
the
realization.
Duncan
waited, saying nothing, and I saw the compas-
sion in
his eyes. "Can you not heal me of this?" I gestured
emptily.
"The age and gray I can live with, but the illness
. . .
you have only to see my lady mother—" I stopped. I
saw the
answer in his face.
After a
moment he spoke. "It will improve. You will not
be as
stiff when some time has passed. You have spent two
months
in bed and it takes its toll on anyone—you will
find it
not so bad as it seems now. But as for the disease
..."
He shook his head. 'Tynstar did not give you any-
thing
you would not have known anyway. He inflicted
nothing
upon you that time itself would not inflict. He
merely
stole that time from you, so that a month became
ten
years. You are older, aye, but not old. There are many
years
left to you."
I
thought of Finn. I recalled the silver in his hair and
the
hard gauntness of his face. I recalled what he had said
of
Tynstar; "He put his hand on me."
The
chest was hard and cold against my naked buttocks.
"When
my daughter is older, I will be old. She will have a
grandsire
for a father."
"I
doubt she will love you the less for that. 'r
I
looked at him in surprise. A Cheysuli speaking of
love?
—aye, perhaps, when the moment calls for an hon-
esty
that can bring me back to myself.
My body
protested against the dampness of the cham-
ber. I
got up and walked—no, limped—stiffly back to my
THE
SONG OF HOMANA
301
^
V
I-
bed,
reaching for the robe a servant had left. "I will have
to deal
with Electra."
"Aye.
And she is still the Queen of Homana."
"As
I made her." I shook my head. "I should have
listened
to you. To Finn. I should have listened to
someone."
Duncan
smiled, still sitting on his stool "You know
more of
kingcraft than I do. Carillon. The marriage brought
peace
to Homana—at least regarding Solinde—and I can-
not
fault you for that. But—"
"—but
I wed a woman who intended my death from the
first
moment she ever saw me." The pain curled deeply
within
my loins. "Gods—I should have known by looking
at her.
She claims more than forty years—I should have
known
Tynstar could give those years as well as take
them."
I rubbed at my age-lined face and felt the twinges
in my
fingers. "I should have known Tynstar's arts would
prevail
when I had no Cheysuli by me. No liege man."
"They
planned well, Tynstar and Electra," Duncan
agreed.
"First the trap-link, which might have slain Finn
and rid
them of him sooner. Then, when that did not
work,
they used it to draw him into a second trap. Finn, I
do not
doubt, walked in on Tynstar and Electra when he
meant
only to confront her. He could not touch Tynstar,
but
Tynstar touched him, then took his leave and Finn
had
only Electra. And yet when he told you Tynstar had
been
present, you thought of the trap-link instead." Dun-
can
shook his head and the earring glittered in the sun-
light,
"They played with us all, Carillon . . and nearly
won the
game."
'They
have won." I sat huddled in my robe. "I have
only a
daughter, and Homana has need of an heir."
Duncan
rose. He moved to Cai and put out a hand to
the
hawk, as if he meant to caress him. But he did not
touch
him after all, and I saw how his fingers trembled.
"You
are still young, for all you feel old." His back was to
me.
'Take yourself another cheysula and give Homana
that
heir."
I
looked at his back, so rigid and unmoving. "You know
Homanan
custom. You were at the wedding ceremony; do
you not
recall the vows? Homanans do not set wives aside.
302
Jenntfer Roberson
It is a
point of law, as well as being custom. Surely you,
with
all your adherence to Cheysuli custom, can under-
stand
the constraints that places on me. Even a Mujhar."
"Is
the custom so important when the wife attempts to
slay
the husband?"
I heard
the irony in his tone. "No. But she did not
succeed,
and I know what Council will say. Set her aside,
perhaps,
but do not break the vows. It would be breaking
Homanan
law. The Council would never permit it."
Duncan
swung around and faced me. "Electra is Tynstar's
meijha!
She bears his child in her belly! Would the
Homanan
Council prefer to have you dead?"
"Do
you not see?" I threw back. "It has been taken
from my
hands. Had Tourmaline not gone with Finn,
wedding
with Lachlan instead, I could have sought my
heir
from her. Had she wed any prince, Homana would
have an
heir. But she did not. She went with Finn and
took
that chance from me."
"Set
her aside," he said urgently. "You are Mujhar—
you can
do anything you wish."
Slowly
I shook my head. "If I begin to make my own
rules,
I become a despot. I become Shaine, who desired
to
destroy the Cheysuli race. No, Duncan. Electra re-
mains
my wife, though I doubt I will keep her here. I
have no
wish to see her or the bastard she carries."
He shut
his eyes a moment, and then I understood. I
knew
what he feared at last.
I was
tired. The ache had settled deeply in my bones. I
felt
bruised from the knowledge of what I faced. And yet I
could
not avoid it- "There is no need to fear me," I said
quietly.
"Is
there not?" Duncan's eyes were bleak. "I know what
you
will do."
"I
have no other choice."
"He
is my son—"
"—and
Alix's, and Alix is my cousin." I stopped, seeing
the
pain in the face Alix loved. "How long have you
known
it would come to this?"
Duncan
laughed, but it had a hollow, desperate sound.
"All
my life. it seems. When I came to know my tahlmorra."
He shook
his head and sat down upon the stool. His
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 303
shoulders
slumped and he stared blankly at the floor. "I
have
always been afraid. Of you ... of the past and future
... of
what I knew was held within the prophecy for any
son of
mine. Did you think I wanted Alix only out of
desire?"
Anguish leached his face of the solemnity I knew.
"Alix
was a part of my own tahlmorra. I knew, if I took
her and
got a son upon her, I would have to give up that
son, I
knew. And so I hoped, when she conceived again,
there
would at least be another for us ... but the Ihlini
took
even that from us." He sighed. "I had no choice. No
choice
at all."
"Duncan,"
I said after a moment, "can a back not be
turned
upon tahlmorra?'''
He
shook his head immediately. "The warrior who turns
his
back on his tahlmorra may twist the prophecy. In
twisting
it, he destroys the tahlmorra of his race. Homana
would
fall. Not in a year or ten or twenty—perhaps not
even a
hundred—but it would fall, and the realm would
| be
given over to the Ihlini and their like." He paused.
^
"There is another thing: the warrior who turns his back on
his
tahlmorra gives up his afterlife. I think none of us
would
be willing to do that.'
I
thought of Tynstar, and others like him, ruling in
Homana.
No. It was no wonder Duncan would never
consider
trying to alter his tahlmorra.
I
frowned. "Do you say then that even a single warrior
turning
his back on his tahbnorra may change the balance
of
fate?"
Duncan
frowned also. For once. he seemed to grope for
the
proper words, as if he knew the Homanan tongue
could
never tell me what I asked. But the Old Tongue
would
not serve; I knew too little of it. And what I did
know I
had learned from Finn; he had never spoken of
such
personal Cheysuli things.
Finally
Duncan sighed. "A crofter goes to Mujhara to-
day
instead of tomorrow. His son falls down a well. The
son
dies." He made the spread-fingered, palm-up gesture.
"Tahlmorra.
But had the crofter gone tomorrow instead of
today,
would the son yet live? I cannot say. Does the
death
serve a greater pattern? Perhaps. Had he lived,
would
it have destroyed the pattern completely? Perhaps—I
304
Jennifer Robemon
cannot
say." He shrugged. "I cannot know what the gods
intend."
"But
you serve them all so blindly—"
"No.
My eyes are open." He did not smile. "They have
given
us the prophecy, so we know what we work toward.
We know
what we can lose, if we do not continue serving
it. My
belief is such: that certain events, once changed,
can
alter other events. Are enough of them altered, no
matter
how minor, the major one is changed. Perhaps
even
the prophecy of the Firstborn."
"So
you live your life in chains." I could not compre-
hend
the depth of his dedication.
Duncan
smiled a little. "You wear a crown, my lord
Mujhar.
Surely you know its weight."
"That
is different—"
"Is
it? Even now you face the overwhelming need to
find an
heir. To put a prince on the throne of Homana you
will
even take my son."
I
stared at him. The emptiness spread out to fill my
aching
body. "I have no other choice."
"Nor
have I, my lord Mujhar." Duncan looked suddenly
weary.
"But you give my son into hardship."
"He
will be the Prince of Homana." The rank seemed,
to me,
to outweigh the hardship.
He did
not smile. "It was your title, once. It nearly got
you
slain. Do not belittle its danger."
"Donal
is Cheysuli." For a moment I was incapable of
saying
anything more. I realized, in that moment, that
even I
had served the gods. Duncan had said more than
once it
was a Cheysuli throne, and that one day there
would
be a Cheysuli Mujhar in place of a Homanan. And
now I,
with only a few words, made that prediction come
true.
Are men
always so blind to the gods, even when they
serve
them?
"Cheysuli,"
Duncan echoed, "and so the links are forged."
I
looked at Cai. I thought of the falcon and wolf Donal
claimed,
two lir instead of one. Things changed. Time
moved
on, sometimes far too quickly. And events altered
events.
I
sighed and rubbed at my knees. "The Homanans will
THE
SONG OF HOMANA
305
not
accept him. Not readily. He is Cheysuli to the bone
despite
his Homanan blood."
"Aye,"
Duncan agreed, "you begin to see the danger."
"I
can lessen it. I can take away the choice. I can make
certain
the Homanans accept him."
Duncan
shook his head. "It has been less than eight
years
since Shaine's qumahlin ended because of you. It is
too
soon. Such things are not easily done."
"No.
But I can make it easier."
"How?"
"By
wedding him to Aislinn."
Duncan
stood up at once. "They are children!"
"Now,
aye, but children.become adults." I did not care
to see
the startled, angry expression on his face, but I had
no
choice. "A long betrothal, Duncan, such as royal Houses
do. In
fifteen years, Donal will be—twenty-three? Aislinn
nearly
sixteen: old enough to wed. And then I will name
him my
heir."
Duncan
shut his eyes. I saw his right hand make the
eloquent
sign. "Tahlmorra lujhalla mei wiccan, cheysu"
All the
helplessness was in his voice, and I knew it chafed
his
soul. Duncan was not a man who suffered helplessness
with
any degree of decorum.
I
sighed and mimicked the gesture, including the
Cheysuli
phrase for wishing him peace: Cheysuli i'halla
sfwnsu.
"Peace!"
It was bitterly said; from Duncan, a revelation.
"My
son will know none of that."
I felt
the dampness in my bones and pulled the heavy
robe
more tightly around my shoulders. "1 think 7 have
known
little of it. Have you?"
"Oh,
aye," he returned at once, with all the force of his
bitterness.
"More than you. Carillon. It was to me that
Alix
came."
The
bolt went home. 1 grimaced, thinking of Electra,
and
knew I would have to deal with it before more time
went
by. The gods knew Tynstar had stolen enough.
"I
will send for Alix," I said at last, hunching against the
chill
he did not seem to feel. "And Donal. I will explain
things
to them both. I would have you send Cai, but there
is a
task I have for you." I expected a refusal, but Duncan
306
Jennifer Roberson
said
nothing at all. I saw the weariness in his posture and
the
knowledge in his eyes. He was ever a step before me.
"Duncan—I
am sorry. I did not mean to usurp your son."
"Be
not sorry for what the gods intend." He gestured
the
hawk to his arm. How he held him, I cannot say; Cai
is a
heavy bird. "As for your task, I will do it. It will get
me free
of these walls." For a moment his shoulders
hunched
in, mirroring my own, but for a different reason.
"They
chafe," he said at last. "How they chafe . . . how
they
bind a Cheysuli soul."
"But
the Cheysuli built these walls." I was surprised at
the
vehemence in his tone.
"We
built them and we left them." He shook his head.
"I
leave them. It is my son who will have to learn what it
is to
know himself well-caged. I am too old, too set in my
ways to
change."
"As
I am," I said bitterly. "Tynstar has made me so."
"Tynstar
altered the body, not the mind," Duncan said.
"Let
not the body anect the heart." He smiled a moment,
albeit
faintly, and then he left the room.
I went
into Electra's chambers and found her seated by
a
casement. The sunlight set her hair to glowing and made
her
blind to me. It was only when the door thumped
closed
that she turned her head and saw me.
She did
not rise. She sat upon the bench with the black
cloak
wrapped around her like a shroud of Tynstar's mak-
ing.
The hood was draped across her shoulders, freeing
her
hair, and 1 saw the twin braids bound with silver. It
glittered
against the cloak.
Tynstar's
child swelled her belly. Mine had done it
before.
It made me angry, but not so angry as to show it. I
merely
stood in the room and faced her, letting her see
what
the sorcery had wrought; to know it had been her
doing
that changed me so.
Her
chin lifted a little. She had not lost a whit of her
pride
and defiance, even knowing she was caught.
"He
left you behind," I said. "Was that a measure of his
regard?"
I saw
the minute twitch of her mouth. I had put salt in
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 307
;.
-
i
the
open wound. "Unless you slay me, he will have me
still."
"But
you do not think I will slay you."
She
smiled. "I am Aislinn's mother and the Queen of
Homana.
There is nothing you can do."
"And
if I said you were a witch?"
"Say
it," she countered. "Have me executed, then, and
see how
Solinde responds."
"As
I recall, it was Solinde you wanted freed." I moved
a
trifle closer. "You wanted no vassal to Homana."
"Tynstar
will prevent it." Her eyes did not shift from
mine.
"You have seen what he could do. You hswefelt it."
"Aye,"
I said softly, approaching again. "I have felt it
and so
have you, though the results were somewhat re-
versed.
It seems I have all the years you shed, Electra,
and
like to keep them, I think. A pity, no doubt, but it
does
not strip me of my throne. I am still Mujhar of
Homana—and
Solinde a vassal to me."
,
"How long will you live?" she retorted. "You are forty-
five,
now. No more the young Mujhar, In five years, ten,
you
will be old. Old. In war, old men die quickly. And
you
will know war, Carillon; that I promise you."
"But
you will never see it." I bent down and caught one
of her
wrists, pulling her to her feet. She was heavy with
Tynstar's
child. Her free arm went down to cradle her
belly
protectively beneath the heavy cloak. "I exile you,
Electra.
For the years that remain to you."
Color
splotched her face, but she showed no fear. "Where
do you
send me, then?"
"To
the Crystal Isle." I smiled. "I see you know it. Aye,
a
formidable place when you are the enemy of Homana. It
is the
birthplace of the Cheysuli and claims the protection
of the
gods. Tynstar could never touch you there. Not
ever,
Electra. The island will be your prison." I still held
her
wrist in one hand. The other I put out to catch one
braid
and threaded my fingers into it. "You will be treated
as
befits your rank. You will have servants and fine cloth-
ing,
good food and wine. proper accoutrements. Every-
thing
except freedom. And there—with his child—you
will
grow old and die." My smile grew wider as I felt the
308
Jennifer Roberson
silk of
her hair. "For such as you, I think, that will be
punishment
enough."
"I
will bear that child in less than one month." Her lips
were
pale and flat. "A journey now may make me lose it."
"If
the gods will it," I agreed blandly. "I send you in the
morning
with Duncan and an escort of Cheysuli. Try your
arts on
them, if you seek to waste your time. They, unlike
myself,
are invulnerable."
I saw
the movement deep in her eyes and felt the touch
of her
power. Color returned to her face. She smiled
faintly,
knowing what 1 knew, and the long-lidded eyes
drew me
in. As ever. She would always be my bane.
I let
go of her wrist, her braid, and cupped her head
with
both hands. I kissed her as a drowning man clings to
wood.
Gods, but she could move me still , . . she could
still
reach into my soul—
—and
twist it.
I set
her away from me with careful deliberation and
saw the
shock of realization in her face. "It is done,
Electra.
You must pay the price of your folly."
The
sunlight glittered off the silver cording in her braids.
But
also off something else: tears. They stood in her great
gray
eyes, threatening to spill.
But I
knew her. Too well. They were tears of anger, not
of
fear, and I went out of the room with the taste of defeat
in my
mouth.
SIX
I The
arms-master stepped back, lowering his sword. "My
lord Mujhar,
let this stop. It is a travesty."
My
breath hissed between my teeth. "It will remain a
travesty
until I learn to overcome it." I gripped the hilt of
my
Cheysuli sword and lifted the blade yet again. "Come
against
me, Cormac."
'
"My lord—" He stepped away again, shaking his crop-
;
haired head. "There is no sense in it."
I swore
at him. I had spent nearly an hour trying to
•
regain a portion of my skill, and now he denied me the
chance.
I lowered my sword and stood there, clad in
breeches
and practice tunic while the sweat ran down my
arms. I
shut my eyes a moment, trying to deal with the
; pain;
when I opened them I saw the pity in Cormac's dark
brown
eyes.
"Ku'reshtin!"
I snapped. "Save your pity for someone
else! I
have no need of such—" I went in against him
then,
raising the sword yet again, and nearly got through
his
belated guard.
He
danced back, danced again, then ducked my swing-
ing
sword. His own came up to parry my blow; I got
under
it and thrust toward his belly. He sucked it in.
leaped
aside, then twisted and came toward my side. I
blocked,
tied up his slash and pushed his blade aside.
The
rhythm began to come back. It was fitful and very
slow,
but I had lost little of my strength. The stamina was
I 309 I
310
Jennifer Roberson
blunted,
but it might return in time. I had only to leam
what it
was to deal with the stifihess of my joints and
forget
about the pain.
Cormac
caught his lip between his teeth. I saw the light
in his
eyes. His soft-booted feet hissed against the floor as
he slid
and slid again, ducking the blows I lowered. We
did not
fight for blood, sparring only, but he knew I meant
to beat
him. He would allow me no quarter, not even if I
were to
ask it.
It was
my hands that failed me finally, my big-knuckled,
aching
hands. In the weeks that had followed since I had
regained
my senses, I had learned how weakened they
were.
My knees hurt all the time, as if some demon
chewed
upon them from the inside moving toward the
outside,
but when I was moving I forgot them. Mostly. It
was
when I stopped that I was reminded of the ache in my
bones.
But my hands, in swordplay, were the most impor-
tant,
and I had found them the largest barrier to regaining
my
banished skill.
My wrists
held firm, locked against his blow, but the
fingers
lost their grip. They twisted, shooting pain up
through
my forearms. The sword went flying from my
hands,
clanging against the stone, and I cursed myself for
being
such a fool as to let it go. But when Cormac bent to
retrieve
it I set my foot upon it. "Let it go. Enough of
this.
We will continue another time."
He
bowed quickly and took his leave, taking his sword
with
him. My own still lay upon the floor, as if to mock
me,
while I tried to regain my breath. I set my teeth
against
the pain in my swollen hands. In a moment I bent
down,
grimacing against the sudden cramp in my back,
and
scooped up the blade with one hand.
The
sweat ran into my eyes. I scrubbed one forearm
across
my face and cleared my burning vision. And then,
giving
it up, 1 sat down on the nearest bench. I stretched
out my
legs carefully and gave into the pain for a moment,
feeling
the fire in my knees. I set back and head against
the
wall and tried to shut it all out.
"You
are better, my lord, since the last time."
When I
could, I rolled my head to one side and saw
Rowan.
"Am I? Or do you merely let me think so?"
THE
SONG OP HOMANA 311
"I
would not go up against you," he said flatly, coming
closer.
"But you should not hope for it all, not so soon. It
^•'will
take time, my lord."
"I
have no time. Tynstar has stolen it from me." I
scraped
my spine against the wall and sat up straight
again,
suppressing a grimace, and drew in my feet. Even
my ankles
hurt. "Have you come on business, or merely
^ to
tell me what you think I want to hear?"
1'
"There is a visitor." He held out a silver signet ring set
J; with
a plain black stone.
I took
it and rolled it in my hand. "Who is it, then? Do
I know him?"
,
"He names himself Alaric of Atvia, my lord. Crown
Prince,
to be precise."
I
looked up from the ring sharply. "Thome is slain. If
this
boy is his son, he is now Lord of Atvia in Thorne's
place.
Why does he humble himself?"
"Alaric
is not the heir. Osric, his older brother, sits on
the
Atvian throne." He paused. "In Atvia, my lord."
I
scowled. "Osric is not come, then."
"No,
my lord."
I
gritted my teeth a moment, swearing within my mind.
I was
in no mood for diplomacy, especially not with a
child.
"Where is this Atvian infant?"
Rowan
smiled. "In an antechamber off the Great Hall,
where I
have put him. Would you prefer him somewhere
else?"
"No.
I will save the Great Hall for his brother." I stood
up,
using the wall for a brace. For a moment I waited,
allowing
the worst of the pain to die, and then I gave
Rowan
my sword. I shut up the ring in my fist and went
out of
the practice chamber.
The
boy, I discovered, was utterly dwarfed by his sur-
roundings.
The Great Hall would have overtaken him
completely,
and I was in no mood for such ploys. Alaric
looked
no older than six or seven and would hardly com-
prehend
the politics of the situation.
He rose
stiffly as 1 came into the chamber, having
dressed
in fresh clothing. He bowed in a brief, exceed-
ingly
slight gesture of homage that just missed condescen-
312
Jannlfar Roberson
sion.
The expression in his brown eyes was one of sullen
hostility,
and his face was coldly set.
I
walked to a cushioned mahogany chair and sat down,
allowing
no hint of the pain to show in my face. I was
stiffening
after the sparring. "So . . . Atvia comes to
Homana."
"No,
my lord." Alaric spoke quietly. "My brother, Lord
Osric
of Atvia, sends me to say Atvia does not come to
Homana.
Nor ever will, except to conquer this land."
I
contemplated Aiaric in some surprise. He was dressed
as
befitted his rank, and his dark brown hair was combed
smooth.
A closer look revealed him older than I had
thought.
He was perhaps a year or two older than Donal,
but the
knowledge in his eyes seemed to surpass that of a
grown
man.
I
permitted myself a smile, though it held nothing of
amusement.
"I have slain your father, my lord Alaric,
because
he sought to pull down my House and replace it
with
his own. I could do the same to your own, beginning
with
you." I paused. "Has your brother a response to
that?"
Alaric's
slender body was rigid. "He does, my lord. I am
to say
we do not acknowledge your sovereignty."
I
rested my chin in one hand, elbow propped against
the arm
rest. "Osric sends you into danger with such
words
in your mouth, my young Atvian eagle. What say
you to
remaining here a hostage?"
Angry
color flared in Alaric's face, but he did not waver
a bit.
"My brother said I must prepare myself for that,"
I
frowned. "How old is Osric?"
"Sixteen."
I
sighed. "So young—so willing to risk his brother and
his
realm."
"My
father said you had ever been Atvia's enemy, and
must be
gainsaid." Grief washed through the brown eyes
and the
mouth wavered a little, but he covered it almost
at
once. "My brother and I will serve our father's memory
by
fighting you in his place. In the end, we will win. If
nothing
else, we will outlive you. You are an old man, my
lord .
. . Osric and I are young."
1 felt
a fist clench in my belly. Old, was I? Aye. to his
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 313
eyes.
"Too young to die," I said grimly. "Shall I have you
slain,
Alaric?"
Color
receded from his face. He was suddenly a small
boy
again. "Do what you wish, my lord—I am prepared."
The
voice shook a little.
"No,"
I said abruptly, "you are not. You only think it.
You
have yet to look death in the face and know him; had
you
done it, you would not accept him so blithely." I
pushed
myself up and bit off the oath I wished to spit out
between
my teeth- "Serve your lord, boy . . . serve him
as well
as you may- But do it at home in Atvia; I do not
slay or
imprison young boys."
Alaric
caught the heavy, ring as I threw it at him. Shock
was
manifest in his face. "I may go home?"
"You
may go home. Tell your brother I give him back
his
heir, though I doubt not he will have another one soon
enough,
when he takes himself a wife."
"He
is already wed, my lord."
I
studied the boy again. 'Tell him also that twice a year
Homanan
ships shall call at Rondule. Upon those ships
Osric
shall place tribute to Homana. If you wish continued
freedom
from Homana, my young lordling, you will pay
the
tribute." I paused. "You may tell him also that should
he ever
come against me in the field, I will slay him."
The
small face looked pinched. "I will tell him, my lord.
But—as
to this tribute—"
"You
will pay it," I said. "I will send a message for your
brother
back with you in the morning, and it will include
all the
details of this tribute. You must pay the cost of the
folly
in trying to take Homana." I signalled to one of the
waiting
servants. "See he is fed and lodged as befits his
rank.
In the morning, he may go home."
"Aye,
my lord."
I put a
hand on Alaric's shoulder and turned him toward
the
man. "Go with Breman, my proud young prince. You
will
not know harm in Homana-Mujhar." I gave him a
push
from my swollen hand and saw him start toward
Breman.
In a moment they both were gone.
Rowan
cleared his throat. "Is he not a valuable hostage?"
"Aye.
But he is a boy."
314
Jennifer Roberson
"I
thought it was often done. Are not princes fostered
on
friendly Houses? What would be the difference?"
"I
will not take his childhood from him." I shivered in
the
cold dampness of the chamber. "Osric is already wed.
He will
get himself sons soon enough; Alaric will lose his
value.
Since I doubt Osric has any intention of coming-so
soon
against Homana, I lose nothing by letting Alaric go."
"And
when, in manhood, he comes to fight?"
"I
will deal with it then."
Rowan
sighed. "And what of Osric? Sixteen is neither
child
nor man."
"Had
it been Osric, I would have thrown him into
chains."
I paused. "To humble that arrogant mouth."
Rowan
smiled. "You may yet be able to, my lord."
"Perhaps."
I looked at Rowan squarely. "But if he is
anything
like his father—or even Keough, his grandsire—
Osric
and I shall meet in battle. And one of us will die."
"My
lord." It was a servant in the doorway, bowing with
politeness.
"My lord Mujhar, there is a boy."
"Breman
has taken Alaric," I said. "He is to be treated
with
all respect."
"No,
my lord—another boy. This one is Cheysuli."
I
frowned. "Say on."
"He
claims himself kin to you, my lord—he has a wolf
and a
falcon."
I
laughed then. "Donal! Aye, he is kin to me. But he
should
have his mother with him in addition to his lir."
"No,
my lord." The man looked worried. "He is alone
but for
the animals, and he appears to have been treated
harshly."
I went
past him at once and to the entry chamber.
There I
saw a falcon perched upon a candlerack with all
the
wicks unlighted. The wolf stood close to Donal, shor-
ing up
one leg. Donal's black hair was disheveled and his
face
was pinched with deprivation. Bruises ringed his
throat.
He saw
me and stared, his eyes going wide, and I
realized
what he saw. Not the man he had known. "Donal,"
I said,
and then he knew me, and came running across the
floor.
"They
have taken my jehana—" His voice shook badly.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 315
He shut
his eyes a moment, blocking out the tears, and
tried
to speak apain. "They have taken her . . . and slain
Torrin
in the croft!"
I
swore, though I kept it to myself. Donal pressed
himself
against me, hanging onto my doublet, and I wanted
nothing
more than to lift him into my arms. But I did not.
I know
something of Cheysuli pride, even in the young.
I set
one hand to the back of his head as he tucked it
under
my chin. I thought, suddenly, of Aislinn, wonder-
ing
what she would think of him when she was old enough
to
know. This boy would be my heir.
"Come,"
I said, rising, "we will speak of this else-
where."
I turned to take' him from the chamber but he
reached
up and caught my hand. Instantly I forgot my
resolution
and bent to pick him up, moving to the nearest
bench
in a warmer chamber. I sat down and settled him
on my
lap, wincing against the pain. "You must tell me
what
happened as clearly as you can. I can do nothing
until I
know."
Lom
flopped down at my feet with a grunt, but his
brown
eyes did not leave Donal's face. The falcon flew in
and
found another perch, piping his agitation.
Donal
rubbed at his eyes and I saw how glassy they
were.
He was exhausted and ready to fall, but I had to
know
what had happened. As Rowan came in I signalled
for him
to pour Donal a swallow or two of wine.
"My
jehana and I were coming here," Donat began.
"She
said you had sent for us. But there was no urgency to
it, and
she wanted to stop at the croft." He stopped as
Rowan
brought the cup of wine. I held it to his mouth and
let him
drink, then gave it back to Rowan. Donal wiped
his
mouth and went on. "While we were there, men
came. At
first they gave my jehana honor. They shared
their
wine and then watched us, and within moments
Torrin
and my jehana were senseless. They—cut Tori-in's
throat.
They slew him!"
I held
him a little more tightly and saw the stark pity in
Rowan's
face. Donat had come early to his baptism into
adulthood,
but Rowan earlier still. "Say on, Donal . . . say
on
until you have said it all."
His
voice took on some life. Perhaps the wine had done
316
Jennifer Roberson
it.
"I called for Taj and Lorn, but the men said they would
slay my
jehana. So I told my lir to go away." Renewed
grief
hollowed his face, blackening his eyes. "They put her
on a
litter and bound her . . . they put a chain around my
neck.
They said we would go to the Northern Wastes. ..."
I
glanced at Rowan and saw his consternation. The
Northern
Wastes lay across the Bluetooth River. There
would
be no reason to take Donal or Alix there.
"They
said they would take us to Tynstar—" Donal's
voice
was hardly a whisper.
It came
clear to me almost instantly. Rowan swore in
Homanan
even as I said something in the Old Tongue that
made
Donal's eyes go wide in astonishment. But I could
not
afford to alarm him. "Was there anything more?"
His
face screwed up with concentration and confusion.
"I
did not understand. They spoke among themselves and
I could
make no sense of it. They said Tynstar wanted the
seed of
the prophecy—me!—and my jehana for a woman.
A woman
to use in place of the one he lost to you." Donal
stared
up at me. "But why does he want my jehana?"
"Gods—"
I shut my eyes, seeing Alix in Tynstar's hands.
No
doubt he would repay me for sending Electra to the
Crystal
Isle. No doubt he would use Alix badly. They had
opposed
each other before.
It was
Rowan who drew Donal's attention away from my
angry
face. "How did you win free?"
For a
moment the boy smiled. "They thought I was a
child,
not a warrior, and therefore helpless. They counted
my lir
as little more than pets. And so Taj and Lorn kept
themselves
to the shadows and followed across the river.
One
night, when the men thought I slept, I talked to Taj
and
Lom, and told them how important it was that I get
away.
And so they taught me how to take ftr-shape, though
the
thing was too early done." His face was pinched again.
"Jehan
had said I must wait, but I could not. I had to do it
then."
"You
came alt the way in far-shape?" I knew how drain-
ing it
could be, and in a child ... I had seen Alix, once,
when
she had shapechanged too often, and Finn as well,
after
too long a time spent in wotf-shape. It upset the
human
balance.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA
317
"I
flew." Donal frowned. "And when 1 could not fly, I
went as
a wolf. And when it sickened me, I walked as
myself.
It was hard—harder than I thought ... I believed
ftr-shape
was easy for a warrior."
I held
him a little more tightly. "Nothing is done so
easily
when it bears the weight of the gods." I rose, lifting
him to
stand. "Come. I will see you are fed and bathed
and
given rest in a comfortable bed."
Donal
slid down to the floor. "But my jehan is here.
Jehana
said he was."
"Your
jehan has gone to Hondarth and it is too soon for
him to
be back. Another week, perhaps. You will have to
wait
with me." I tousled-the heavy black hair which had
already
lost some of its childhood curl. "Donal—I promise
we will
fetch your jehana back. I promise all will be well."
He
looked up at me, huge yellow eyes set in a dark
Cheysuli
face. No Cheysuli trusts easily, but I knew he
trusted
me. Well, he would have to. I would make him
into a
king.
Donal
braced both elbows against the table top. He
rested
his chin in his hands. He, watched, fascinated as
always,
as I traced out the battle markings drawn on the
map of
Caledon. In the past ten days we had spent hours
with
the maps.
"It
was here." I touched the border between Caledon
and the
Steppes. "Your su'fali and I were riding with the
Caledonese,
and we went into the Steppes at this point."
"How
long did the battle take?"
"A
day and a night. But it was only one of many battles.
The
plainsmen fight differently than the Homanans—Finn
and I
had to learn new methods." Well, / had; Finn's
methods
were highly adaptable and required no reorgani-
zation.
Donal
frowned in concentration. He put out a finger
much
smaller than mine and touched the leather map.
"My
su'faU fought with you—so has my jehan . . . will I
fight
with you when I am made a prince?"
"I
hope I may keep the peace between Homana and
other
realms," I told him truthfully, "but does it come to
war no
matter what I do, aye, you wilt fight with me.
318
JennHw Roberson
Perhaps
against Atvia, does Osric wish to task me ...
perhaps
even Solinde, should the regency fail."
"Will
it?" He fixed me with intent yellow eyes, black
brows
drawn down.
"It
might. I have sent Electra away, and the Solindish
do not
like it." 1 saw no sense in hiding the truth from
him.
Cheysuli children are more adult than most. Ponal
was
also a clan-leader's son, and I did not doubt he already
knew
something of politics.
Donal
sighed and his attention turned. He pushed away
from
the table and got off the stool, sitting down on the
floor
with Lorn. The wolf stretched and yawned and put a
paw on
Donal's thigh as Donal reached to drag him into
his
lap. Taj, perched upon a chair back, piped excitedly
and
then Duncan was in the doorway.
"Jehan!"
Donal scrambled up, dumping Lorn, and ran
across
the room. I saw Duncan's smile as he caught his son
and the
lessening of tension in his face. He scooped up the
boy and
held him, saying something in the Old Tongue,
and I
knew he could not know. They had left the telling to
me.
"Have
you been keeping Carillon from his duties?"
Duncan
asked as Donal hugged his neck.
"jehan—oh
jehan . . . why did you not come sooner? I
was so
afraid—"
"What
have you to be afraid of?" Duncan was grinning.
"Unless
you fear for me, which is unnecessary. You see I
am well
enough." He glanced at me across the top of his
son's
dark head. "Carillon, there is—"
"Jehan—"
Donal would not let him speak. "Jehan—will
you go
now? Will you go up across the river? Will you
fetch
her back?"
"Go
where? Why? Fetch who back?" Duncan grinned
and
moved across the rootn to the nearest bench. He sat
down
with Donal in his lap, though the boy was too big to
be
held. It seemed odd to see Duncan so tolerant of such
things;
I knew the Cheysuli did not profess to love, and
therefore
the words were lacking in their language. And
yet it
was manifest in Doncan's movements and voice as
he sat
down upon the bench. "Have you lost someone,
small
one?"
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 319
f "Jehana," Donal whispered, and I
saw Duncan's tace go
still.
: He looked to me at once. "Where is
Alix?"
"Alix
was—taken." I inhaled a careful breath. "It ap-
f.
pears it is Tynstar's doing."
"Tynstar—"
Duncan's face was ashen.
"You
had best let Dona! tell you," I said quietly "It was
he who
won free and came to me here, to tell me what
had
happened."
Duncan's
arms were slack around the boy. And then
suddenly
they tightened. "Donal—say what has happened.
All of
it. Tell me what you saw; tell me what you heard."
Donal,
too, was pale". I doubted he had ever seen his
father
so shaken. He sat hunched in Duncan's lap and told
the
story as he had told it to me, and I saw the struggle in
Duncan's
face. It made my own seem a shadow of true
feeling.
At last
Donal finished, his voice trailing off into silence.
He
waited for his father to speak even as I did, but
Duncan
said nothing at all. He merely sat, staring into the
distance,
as if he had not heard.
"Jehan—?
Donal's voice, plaintive and frightened, as he
sat on
Duncan's tap.
Duncan
spoke at last. He said something to Donal in
the Old
Tongue, something infinitely soothing, and I saw
the boy
relax. "Did they harm her, small one?"
"No.
jehan. But she could hardly speak." Donal's face
was
pinched with the memory and he was frightened all
over
again.
Duncan's
hand on his son's head was gentle in its touch.
The
tension was everywhere else. "Shansu, Shansu . . I
will
get yow jehana back. But you must promise me to
wait
here until we come home again."
"Here?"
Donal sat upright in Ducan's arms. "You will
not
send me back to the Keep?"
"Not
yet. Your jehana and I will take you there when
we are
back." His eyes, staring over Donal's head, were
fixed
on the distances again. Duncan seemed to be living
elsewhere,
even as he held his son. And then I realized he
spoke
to Cai. He was somewhere in the link.
When he
came out of it I saw his fear, though he tried
320
Jennifer Roberson
to hide
it from Donal. For a moment he shut his eyes,
barricading
his soul, and then he held Donal more tightly.
"Shansu,
Donal— peace. I will get yowjehana back."
But I
knew, looking at him, he said it for himself and
not his
son.
"Duncan."
I waited until he looked at me, coming out
of his
haze of shock. "I have spoken to your second-leader
at the
Keep . . . and the Homanans as well. We are
prepared
to go with you."
"Go
where?" he asked. "Do you know? Do you even
know
where she is?"
"I
assumed the lir could find her."
"The
lir do not need to find her ... I know where Alix
is. 1
know what he means to do." Duncan set Donal down
and
told him to take his lir and go. The boy protested,
clearly
frightened as well as offended, but Duncan made
him go.
At last
I faced him alone. "Where?"
"Valgaard."
He saw the blankness in my face. "Tynstar's
lair.
It is a fortress high in the canyons of Solinde—you
have
only to cross the Bluetooth and go directly north into
the
mountains. Cross the Molon Pass into Solinde and you
have
found it. You cannot help but find it." He rose and
paced
across the floor, but I saw how his footsteps hesi-
tated.
"He would take her there."
"Then
we will have to go there and get her."
He
swung around. One hand was on the hilt of his
longknife;
I saw how he wanted to shout, to bring down
the
walls, and yet he kept himself very quiet. It was eerie.
It was
the intensity I had seen so often in Finn, knowing
to keep
my distance. But this time, I could not.
"Valgaard
houses the Gate," he said in a clipped, hissing
tone.
"Do you know what you say you will do?" He shook
his
head. "No, you do not. You do not know the Gate."
"I
admit it. There are many things I do not know."
Duncan
prowled the room with a stiff, angry stride. He
reminded
me of a mountain cat, suddenly, stalking down
its
prey. "The Gate," he repeated- "Asar-Suti's Gate- The
Gate to
the Seker's world."
The
words were strange. Not the Old Tongue; some-
THE
SONG OF HOMANA
321
thing
far older, something that spoke of foulness. "De-
:mons,"
I said, before I could stop.
,
"Asar-Suti is more than a demon. He is the god of the
,netherworld.
The Seker himself—who made and dwells in
darkness.
He is the font of Ihlini power." He stopped
fpacing.
He stood quite still. "In Valgaard—Tynstar shares
.that
power."
I
recalled how easily he had trapped me in my bed,
^seeking
to take my life. I recalled how he had changed the
- ruby
from red to black. I remembered how it was he had
stolen
Homana from my uncle. I remembered Bellam's
body.
If he could do all of that while he was out of
.Valgaard,
what could he dp within?
;
Duncan was at the door. He turned back, his face set in
'stark
lines of grief and determination. "I would ask no man
to risk
himself in such a thing as this."
"Alix
risked herself for me when I lay shackled in Atvian
iron."
"Alix
was not the Mujhar of Homana."
"No."
I did not smile. "She carried the seed of the
prophecy
in her belly, and events can change events."
I saw
the shock of realization in his face. The risk he
spoke
of was real, but no greater than what Alix had faced.
Had she
died in my rescue, or somehow lost the child, the
prophecy
might have ended before it was begun.
"I
will go," I said quietly. "There is nothing left but to
do
it."
He
stood in the doorway. For a long moment he said
nothing
at all, seemingly incapable of it, and then he
nodded
a little. "If you meet up with Tynstar Carillon,
you
will have a powerful weapon."
I
waited.
"Electra
miscarried the child."
SEVEN
As one,
my Homanan troop pulled horses to a ragged halt.
I heard
low-voiced comments, oaths made and broken,
prayers
to the gods. I did not blame them. No one had
expected
this.
No one,
perhaps, except the Cheysuli. They did not
seem
troubled by the place. They merely waited, mounted
and
uncloaked, while the sun flashed off their gold.
A chill
ran down my spine. I suppressed it and reined in
my
fidgeting horse. Duncan, some distance away, rode over
to ask
about the delay.
"Look
about you," I said solemnly. "Have you seen its
like
before?"
He
shrugged. "We have come over the Molon Pass.
This is
Solinde. We encroach upon Tynstar's realm. Did
you
think it would resemble your own?"
I could
not say what I thought it might resemble. Surely
not
this. I only dreamed of places tike this.
We had
crossed the Bluetooth River twelve days out of
Mujhara:
nine Homanans, nine Cheysuli, Rowan and
Gryffth,
myself and Duncan. Twenty-two men to rescue
Alix,
to take her back from Tynstar. Now, as I looked
around,
I doubted we could do it.
The
Northern Wastes of Homana lay behind us. Now we
faced
Solinde, having come down from the Molon Pass,
with
Vaigaard still before us. And yet it was obvious we
drew
closer. The land reflected the lair.
I 322 I
THE
SONG OF HOMANA
323
Icy
winds blew down from the pass. Winter was done
^with
in Homana, but across the Bluetooth the chill never
quite
left the land. It amazed me the Cheysuli could go
_
bare-armed, though I knew they withstood hardship bet-
'ter
than Homanans.
Snow
still patched the ground beneath the trees, man-
' thng
the rocky mountains. Great defiles fell away into
canyons,
sheer and dark and wet from melting snow. All
around
us the world was a great, dark, slick wound, bleed-
ing
slowly in the sunlight. Someone had riven the earth.
Even
the trees reflected the pain of the land. They were
wracked
and twisted, as if some huge cold hand had swept
;
across them in a monstrous fit of temper. Rocks were split
\ open
in perfect halves and quarters; some were no more
than
powder where once a boulder had stood. But most of
them
had shapes. Horrible, hideous shapes, as if night-
mares
had been shaped into stone so all could share the
horror.
"We
draw close to Vaigaard." Duncan said. "This has
been
the tourney-field of the Ihlini."
I
looked at him sharply. "What do you say?"
"Ihlini
power is inbred," he explained, "but the control
must be
taught. An Ihlini child has no more knowledge of
his
abilities than a Cheysuli child; they know they have
magic
at their beck, but no knowledge of how to use it. It
must
be—-practiced."
I
glanced around incredulously. "You say these—shapes—
are
what the Ihlini have made?"
Duncan's
horse stomped, scraping iron-shod hoof against
cold
black stone. The sudden sound echoed in the canyon.
"You
know the three gifts of the Cheysuli," he said qui-
etly.
"I thought you knew what the Ihlini claimed."
"I
know they can make life out of death," I said sharply.
"One
Ihlini fashioned a lion out of a knife."
"There
is that," Duncan agreed. "They have the power
to
alter the shapes of things that do not live." His hand
swept
out to indicate the rocks. "You have felt another of
their
gifts: the power to quicken age. With the touch of a
hand,
an Ihlini can make a man old, quickening the infir-
mities
that come with years." I knew it too well, but said
nothing.
"There is the possession I have spoken of, when
324
Jennifer Roberson
they
take the mind and soul and keep it. And they can
take
the healing from a wound. There is also the art of
illusion.
What is, is not, what is not, seems to be. Those
gifts.
Carillon, and all shadings in between- That is a facet
ofAsar-Suti.
The Seker, who lends his magic to those who
will
ask."
"But—all
Ihlini have magic. Do they not?"
"All
Ihlini have magic. But not all of them are Tynstar."
He
looked around at the twisted trees and shapechanged
rocks.
"You see what is Tynstar's power, and how he
passes
it on. We near the gate ofAsar-Suti."
I
looked at my men. The Homanans were white-faced
and
solemn, saying nothing. I did not doubt they were
afraid—1
was afraid—but neither would they give up. As
for the
Cheysuli, I had no need to ask. Their lives be-
longed
to the gods whose power, I hoped, outweighed
that of
Tynstar or Asar-Suti, the Seker of the netherworld.
Duncan
nudged his horse forward. "We must make
camp
for the night. The sun begins to set."
We rode
on in loud silence, necks prickling against the
raw
sensation of power. It oozed out of the earth like so
much
seepage from a mudspring.
We camped
at last behind the shoulder of a canyon wall
that
fell down from the darkening sky to shield us against
the
night wind. The earth's flesh was quite thin- Here and
there
the skeleton broke through, stone bones that glis-
tened
in the sunset with a damp, sweaty sheen. Tree roots
coiled
against the shallow soil like serpents seeking warmth.
One of
my Homanans, seeking wood for a fire, meant to
hack
off a few spindly, wind-wracked limbs with his heavy
knife
and pulled the whole tree out of the canyon wall. It
was a
small tree, but it underlined the transience of life
near
Valgaard.
We made
a meal out of what we carried in our packs:
dried
meat, flat journey-bread loaves, a measure of sweet,
dark
sugar. And wine. We all had wine. The horses we fed
on the
grain we carried with us, since grazing was so light,
and
brought water from melting snow. But once our bel-
lies
were full, we had time to think of what we did.
I sat
huddled in my heaviest cloak for too long a time. I
could
not rid myself of the ache in my bones or the
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 325
fledge
that we all might die. And so, when I could do
inconspicuously,
I got up and went away from the small
ncampment.
I left the men to their stilted conversations
ad
gambling; I went to find Duncan.
I saw
him at last when I was ready to give up. He stood
ear the
canyon wall staring into the dark distances. His
cry
stillness made him invisible. It was only the shine of
tie
moon against his earring that gave his presence away
ad so I
went near, waited for acknowledgment, and saw
ow
rigid his body was.
He had
pulled on a cloak at last. It was dark, like my
wn,
blending with the night. The earring glinted in his
air.
"What does he do with her?" he asked. "What does
ie do
to her?"
I had
wondered the same myself. But I forced reassur-
nce
from my mouth. "She is strong, Duncan. Stronger
'tan
many men. I think Tynstar will meet his match in
er."
"This
is Valgaard." His voice was raw.
I
swallowed. "She has the Old Blood."
He
turned abruptly. His face was shadowed as he leaned
ack
against the stone canyon wall, setting his spine against
Eit.
"Here, the Old Blood may be as nothing."
|
"You do not know that. Did Donal not get free? They
|were
Ihlini, yet he took (ir-shape before them. It may be
|that
Alix will overcome them yet."
"Ru'shaUa-tu."
He said it without much hope. May it be
so. He
looked at me then, black-eyed in the moonlight,
and I
saw the fear in his eyes. But he said nothing more of
Alix.
Instead he squatted down, still leaning against the
canyon
wall, and pulled his cloak more tightly around his
shoulders.
"Do you wonder what has become of Tourma-
line?"
he asked. "What has become of Finn^"
"Every
day," I answered readily. "And each day I regret
what
has happened."
"Would
you change it, if Finn came to you and asked to
take
your rujholla as his cheysula?"
| I
found the nearest tree stump and perched upon it.
!
Duncan waited for my answer, and at last I gave it. "I
|
needed the alliance Rhodri would have offered, did I wed
| my
sister to his son."
326
Jennifer Roberson
"He
gave it to you anyway."
"Lachlan
gave me aid. I got no alliance from Rhodri." I
shrugged.
"I do not doubt we will make one when all this
is
done, but for now the thing is not formal. What Lachlan
did was
between a mercenary and a harper, not a Mujhar
and
High Prince of Ellas. There are distinct differences
between
the two."
"Differences."
His tone was very flat. "Aye. Like the
differences
between Cheysuli and Homanan."
I
kicked away a piece of stone. "Do you regret that
Donal
must wed Aislinn? Cheysuli wed to Homanan?"
"I
regret that Donal will know a life other than what I
wish
for him." Duncan was little more than a dark blot
against
the rock wall. "In the clan, he would be merely a
warrior—unless
they made him a clan-leader It is—a
simpler
life than that which faces a prince. I would wish
that
for him. Not what you will give him."
"I
have no choice. The gods—your gods—have given
me none."
He was
silent a moment. "Then we must assume there
is a
reason for what he will become."
I
smiled, though it had only a little humor in it. "But
you
have an advantage, Duncan. You may see your son
become
a king. But I must die in order to give him the
throne."
Duncan
was silent a long moment. He merged into the
blackness
of the wall as the moon was lost to passing
clouds.
I could no longer see him, but I knew where he
was by
the sound of a hand scraping against the earth.
"You
have changed," Duncan said at last. "I thought, at
first,
you had not—or very little. I see now I was wrong.
Finn
wrought well when he tempered the steel . . . but it
is
kingship that has honed the edge."
I
huddled within my cloak. "As you say, kingship changes
a man.
I seem to have no choice."
"Necessity
also changes," Duncan said quietly. "It has
changed
me. I am nearly forty now, old enough to know
my
place and recognize my tahlnwrra without chafing,
but
each day, of late. I wonder what might have happened
had it
been otherwise." He shook his head. "We wonder.
We ever
wonder. The freedom to be without a tahlnwrra."
THE
SONG OF HOMANA
327
The
moon was free again and I saw another headshake.
•"What
would happen did I keep my son? The prophecy
would
be twisted. The Firstborn, who gave the words to
us,
would never live again. We would be the Cheysuli no
longer."
I saw the rueful smile. "Cheysuli: children of the
'gods.
But we can be fractious children."
.
"Duncan—" I paused. "We will find her. And we will
take
her back from him."
;
Moonlight slanted full across his face. "Women are lost
'often
enough," he said quietly. "In childbirth . . . acci-
dent .
. . illness. A warrior may grieve in the privacy of
,his
pavilion, but he does not show his feelings to the clan.
;It is
not done. Such things are kept—private." His hand
was
filled with pebbles. "But were Alix taken from me by
this
demon, I would not care who knew of my grief." The
pebbles
poured from his hand in steady, dwindling stream.
I would
be without her . . . and empty. ..."
Near
midday we came to the canyon that housed
Valgaard.
We rode out of a narrow defile into the canyon
proper
and found ourselves hemmed in by the sheer stone
walls
that stretched high over our heads. We rode single-
file,
unable to go abreast, but as we went deeper into the
canyon
the walls fell away until we were human pebbles in
a deep,
rock-hard pocket.
"There,"
Duncan said, "do you see?"
I saw.
Valgaard lay before us: an eagle on its aerie. The
fortress
itself formed the third wall of the canyon, a pen-
dant to
the torque. But I thought the fit too snug. I
thought
the jewel too hard. No, not an eagle. A carrion
bird,
hovering over its corpse.
We were
neatly boxed. Escape lay behind us, Vatgaard
before.
I did not like the feeling,
"Lodhi."
Gryflth gasped. "I have never seen such a
thing."
Nor had
I. Valgaard rose up out of the glassy black
basalt
like a wave of solid ice, black and sharp, faceted like
a
gemstone. There were towers and turrets, barbicans and
ramparts.
It glittered, bright as glass, and smoke rose up
around
it. I could smell the stink from where we stood.
326
Jennifer Roberson
"The
Gate," Duncan said. "It lies within the fortress.
Valgaard
is its sentinel."
"That
is what causes the smoke?"
"The
breath of the god," Duncan said. "Like fire, it
bums. I
have heard the stories. There is blood within the
stone:
hot, white blood. If it should touch you, you will
die,"
The
canyon was clean of snow. Nothing marred its sur-
face.
It was smooth, shining basalt, lacking trees and grass.
We had
come out of winter into summer, and I found I
preferred
the cold.
"Asar-Suti,"
Duncan said. "The Seker himself." Very
deliberately,
he spat onto the ground.
"What
are all those shapes?" Rowan asked. He meant
the
large chunks of stone that lay about like so many dice
tossed
down Black dice, uncarved, and scattered across
the
ground. They were large enough for a man to hide
behind.
Or die
under, if it landed cocked.
"An
Ihlini bestiary," Duncan explained. "Their answer
to the
Ur."
We rode
closer and I saw what he meant. Each deposit
of
stone had a form, if a man could call it that. The shapes
were
monstrous travesties of animals. Faces and limbs
bore no
resemblence to animals I had seen. It was a
mockery
of the gods, the Ur defiled; an echo, perhaps, of
their
deity. Asar-Suti in stone. A god of many shapes. A
god
ofgrotesquerie.
I
suppressed a shiver of intense distaste. This place was
foulness
incarnate. "We should beware an obvious ap-
proach."
Duncan,
falling back to ride abreast, merely nodded. "It
would
be unexpected did we simply ride in like so many
martyrs,
but also foolish. I do not choose to die a fool. So
we will
find cover and wait, until we have a plan for
getting
in."
"Getting
in there?" Rowan shook his head. "I do not see
how."
"There
is a way," Duncan told him. "There is always a
way to
get in. It is getting out that is difficult."
Uneasily,
I agreed.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA
329
It was,
at last, Gryfith who found the way in. I was
astonished
when he offered himself, for he might well be
boiled
alive in the blood of the god, but it seemed the only
way.
And so I agreed, but only after I heard his explanation.
We
knelt, all of us, behind the black-frozen shapes, too
distant
for watchers to see us from the ramparts. The
white,
stinking smoke veiled us even more, so that we felt
secure
in our place of hiding. The stones were large enough
to
offer shade in sunlight as well. In the shadows it was
cool.
Gryffth,
kneeling beside me, pulled a ring from his
belt-pouch.
"My lord, this should do it. It marks me a
royal
courier. It will give me safe entrance."
"Should,"
I said sharply. "It may not."
Gryffth
grinned a little. His red hair was bright in the
sunlight.
"I think I will have no trouble. The High Prince
has
said, often enough, that I have the gift of a supple
tongue-
I will wind Tynstar around this finger." He made
a rude
gesture with his hand, and all the Homanans laughed.
In the
months since the Ellasian had joined my service, he
had
made many friends. He had wit and purpose, and a
charming
way as well.
Rowan's
face was pensive. "When you face Tynstar, what
will
you say? The ring cannot speak for you."
"No,
but it gets me inside. Once there, I will tell
Tynstar
the High King of Ellas has sent me. That he
wishes
to make an alliance."
"Bhodri
would never do it." Rowan exclaimed. "Do you
think
Tynstar will believe you?"
"He
may, he may not. It does not matter." Gryffth's
freckled
face was solemn, echoing Duncan's gravity. "I
will
tell him High Prince Cuinn, in sending men to the
Mujhiar,
has badly angered his father. That Rhodri wishes
no
alliance with Homana, but desires Ihlini aid. If nothing
else,
it will gain Tynstar's attention- He will likely host me
the
night, at least. And it is at night I will open the gate
to let
you in." His smile came, quick and warm. "Once in,
you
will either live or die. By then, it will not matter what
Tynstar
thinks of my tale."
"You
may die." Rowan sounded angry.
330
Jennifer Roberson
Gryifth
shrugged. "A man lives, a man dies. He does
not
choose his life. Lodhi will protect me."
Duncan
smiled. "You could almost be CheysuH."
I saw
Gryffth thinking it over. Ellasian-bred, he hardly &
knew
the Cheysuli. But he did not think them demons. ^.
And so
I saw him decide the comment was a compliment. ||.
"My
thanks, Duncan . . . though Lodhi might see it
differently."
"You
call him the All-Wise," Duncan returned. "He
must be
wise enough to know when I mean you well."
Gryfith,
grinning, reached out and touched his arm.
"For
that, clan-leader, I will gladly do what I can to help
you get
her back."
Duncan
clasped his arm. "Ellasian—Cheysuli i'halla
shansu."
He smiled at Gryfith's frown of incomprehen-
sion.
"May there be Cheysuli peace upon you."
Gryfith
nodded. "Aye, my friend And may you know
the
wisdom of Lodhi." He turned to me. "Does it please
you, my
lord, I will go in. And tonight, when I can. I will
find a
gate to open,"
"How
will we know?" Rowan asked. "We cannot go up
so
close . . and you can hardly light a fire."
"I
will send Cai to him," Duncan said. "My lir can see
when
Gryfith comes out and tell me which gate he unlocks."
Rowan
sighed, rubbing wearily at his brow. "It all seems
such a
risk ..."
"Risk,
aye," I agreed, "but more than worth the trying."
Gryffth
stood up. "I will go in, my lord. I will do what I
can
do."
I rose
as he did and clasped his arm. "Good fortune,
Gryfith.
May Lodhi guard you well."
He
untethered his horse and mounted, reining it around.
He
glanced down at Rowan, who had become a boon
companion,
and grinned. "Do not fret, alvi. This is what I
choose."
I
watched Gryfith ride away, heading toward the for-
tress.
The smoke hung over it like a miasma, cloaking the
stone
in haze. The breath of the god was foul.
EIGHT
The
moon, hanging over our heads against the blackness
of the
sky. lent an eerie ambience to the canyon. The
smoke
clogged our noses. It rose up in stinking clouds,
warming
our flesh against our will. Shadows crept out
from
the huge stone shapes and swallowed us all, clutch-
ing
with mouths and claws. My Homanans muttered of
demons
and Ihlini sorcerers; I thought they were one and
the
same.
Duncan,
seated near me, shed his cloak and rose. "Cai
says
Gryffth has come out of the hall. He is in the inner
bailey.
We should go."
We left
the horses tethered and went on by foot. Cloaks
hid our
swords and knives from the moonlight. Our boots
scraped
against the glossy basalt, scattering ash and pow-
dered
stone. As we drew nearer, using the shapechanged
stones
to hide us, the ground warmed beneath our feet.
The
smoke hissed and whistled as it came out of the earth,
rising
toward the moon.
We
worked our way up to the walls that glistened in the
moonlight.
They were higher even than the walls of
Homana-Mujhar,
as ifTynstar meant to mock me. At each
of the
comers and midway along the walls stood a tower, a
huge
round tower bulging out of the dense basalt, spiked
with
crenelations and crockets and manned, no doubt, by
Ihlini
minions. The place stank of sorcery.
The
nearest gate was small. I thought it likely it opened
I 331 I
332
Jennifer Roberson
into a
smaller bailey. We had slipped around the front of
the
fortress walls and came in from the side, eschewing
the
main barbican gate that would swallow us up like so
many
helpless children. But the side gate opened, only a
crack,
and I saw Gryffth's face in the slit between wall
and
dark wood.
One
hand gestured us forward. We moved silently,
saying
nothing, holding scabbards to keep them quiet.
Gryfith,
as I reached him in the gate, pushed it open
wider.
'Tynstar is not here," he whispered, knowing what
it
would mean to me. "Come you in now, and you may
avoid
the worst of it."
One by
one we crept in through the gate. I saw the
shadows
of winged lir pass overhead. We had also wolves
and
foxes and mountain cats, slipping through the gate,
but I
wondered if they would fight. Finn had said the
gods'
own law kept the lir from attacking Ihlini.
Gryflfth
shut the gate behind us, and I saw the two
bodies
lying against the wall. I looked at him; he said
nothing.
But I was thankful nonetheless. Like Lachlan, he
served
me as if born to it, willing, even to slay others.
We were
in a smaller bailey, away from the main one,
and
Valgaard lay before us. The halls and side rooms
bulged
out from a centra! mass of stone. But we seemed to
be
through the worst of it.
We
started across the bailey, across the open spaces,
though
we tried to stay to the shadows. Swords were
drawn
now, glinting in the moonlight, and I heard the
soughing
of feet against stone. Out of the bailey toward an
inner
ward while the walls reared up around us; how long
would
our safety last?
Not
long. Even as Gryffth led us through to the inner
ward I
heard the hissing and saw a streamer of flame as it
shot up
into the air from one of the towers. It broke over
our
heads, showering us with a violet glare, and I knew it
would
blast the shadows into the white-hot glare of the
sun. No
more hiding in the darkness.
"Scatter!"
I shouted, heading for the hall.
My
sword was in my hand. I heard the step beside me
and
swung around, seeing foe, not friend, with his hand
THE
SONG OF HOMANA
333
raised
to draw a rune. Quickly I leveled my blade and
took
him in the throat. He fell in a geyser of blood.
Rowan
was at my back, Gryfith at his We went into the
hall in
a triangular formation, swords raised and ready.
The
Cheysuli had gone, slipping into the myriad corri-
dors,
but I could hear the Homanans fighting. Without
Tynstar's
presence we stood our greatest chance, but the
battle
would still be difficult. I had no more time left to
lose,
"Hold
them!" I shouted as four men advanced with
swords
and knives. I expected sorcery and they came at us
with
steel.
Even as
I brought up my sword I felt the twinge shoot
through
both hands. In all my practice with Cormac I had
not
been able to shed the pain of my swollen fingers. As
yet
they could still hold a hilt, but the strength I had
taken
for granted was gone. I had to rely more on quick-
ness of
body than my skill in elaborate parries. I was little
more
than a man of average skill now, because of Tynstar.
Gryifth
caught a knife from a hidden sheath and sent it
flying
across the hall. It took one Ihlini flush in the chest and
removed
him from the fight. Three to three now, but even
as I
marked their places I saw Rowan take another with his
sword.
Myself, for the moment, they ignored. And so,
knowing
my sword skill was diminished, I decided to go
on
without it. Did the Ihlini want me, they could come for
me.
Otherwise I would avoid them altogether.
"Hold
them," I said briefly, and ran into the nearest
corridor.
The stone floor was irregular, all of a slant, this
way and
that, as if to make it difficult for anyone to run
through
it. There were few torches in brackets along the
walls;
I sensed this portion of the fortress was only rarely
used.
Or else the Ihlini took the light with them when
they
walked.
The
sounds of fighting fell away behind me, echoing
dimly
in the tunnel-like corridor. I went on, hearing the
scrape
of sole against stone, and waited for the attack that
would
surely come.
I went
deeper into the fortress, surrounded by black
basalt
that glistened in the torchlight. The walls seemed to
swallow
the light, so that my sword blade turned black to
334
Jennifer Roberson
match
the ruby, and I felt my eyes strain to see where I
was
going. The few torches guttered and hissed in the
shadows,
offering little illumination; all it wanted was Tynstar
to come
drifting out of the darkness, and my courage
would
be undone.
I heard
the grate of stone on stone and swung around,
anticipating
my nightmare. But the man who stepped out
of the
recess in the wall was a stranger to me. His eyes
were
blank, haunted things. He seemed to be missing his
soul.
Silently,
he came at me. His sword was a blur of steel,
flashing
in the torchlight, and I jumped back to avoid the
slash
that hissed beside my head. My own blade went up
to
strike his down. They caught briefly, then disengaged
as we
jerked away, I could feel the strain in my hands, and
yet I
dared not lose my grip.
Again
he came at me. I skipped back, then leaped
aside,
and the sword tip grated on stone. And yet even as I
moved
to intercept, the Ihlini's blade flashed sideways to
stop my
lunge and twist my sword from my hands. It was
not a
difficult feat. And so my weapon clanged against the
black
stone floor and I felt the hot pain in my knuckles
flare
up to pierce my soul.
The
blade came at me again, thrusting for my belly. I
sucked
back, avoiding the tip, and felt the edge slice
through
leather and linen to cut along my ribs. Not deeply,
scraping
against one bone, but it was enough to make me
think.
I
jumped then, straight upward from the floor, grabbing
the
nearest torch and dragging it from its brackets. Even as
the
Ihlini came at me again I had it, whirling to thrust it
into
his face. The flame roared.
The
sorcerer screamed and dropped his sword, hands
clawing
at his face. He invoked Asar-Suti over and over
again,
gibbering in his pain, until he slumped down onto
his
knees. I stepped back as I saw one hand come up to
make an
intricate motion.
"Seker,
Seker. ..." He chanted, rocking on his knees
while
his burned face glistened in the torchlight. "Seker,
Seker.
. . ."
The
torch was still in my right hand. As the Ihlini
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 335
invoked
his god and drew his rune in the air, the flame
flowed
down over the iron to caress my hand with pain.
I dropped
the torch at once, tossing it toward the wall
while
my knuckles screamed with pain. The flame splashed
against
the stone and ran down, flooding the floor of the
corridor.
As the Ihlini continued to chant, his hands still
clasped
to his face, the fire crept toward my boots.
I
stepped back at once, retreating with little aplomb,
My
sword, still lying on the stone, was in imminent dan-
ger of
being swallowed. The flame poured acres', the floor
like
water, heading for my boots.
"Seker,
Seker—make him bum\"
But he
had made a deadly mistake. No doubt he in-
tended
only his enemy to bum, but he had not been
clearly
distinct. He himself still knelt on the floor, and as
the
stone caught fire from the river of ensorcelled flame so
did he.
It ran up his tegs and enveloped his body in fire. I
kicked
out swiftly and shoved the sword aside with one
boot,
then ran after it even as the river of fire followed
me. I
left the living pyre in the corridor, scooped up my
sword
and ran.
It was
then I heard the shout. Alix's voice. The tone was
one of
fear and desperation, but it held a note of rage as
well.
And then I heard the scuffle and the cry.
I ran.
I rounded the corner and brought up my sword,
prepared
to spit someone upon it, but I saw there was no
need.
The Ihlini lay on the ground, face down, as the
blood
ran from his body, and Alix was kneeling to take his
knife.
She already had his sword.
She
spun around, rising at once into a crouch. The knife
dropped
from her hand at once as she took a two-handed
grip on
the sword. And then she saw me clearly and the
sword
fell out other hand.
I
grinned. "Well met, Alix."
She was
so pale 1 thought she might faint where she
stood,
but she did not. Her eyes were huge in a bruised
and too-thin
face. Her hair hung in a single tangled braid
and she
wore a bedrobe stained with blood. It was not her
own, I
knew, but from the man she had slain.
1 had
forgotten the gray in my hair and the lines in my
face;
the altered way I had of standing and moving. I had
336
Jennifer Roberaon
forgotten
what Tynstar had done. But when I saw the
horror
in Alix's eyes I recalled it all too well. It brought
home
the pain again
I put
out one hand, ignoring the swollen knuckles. "Do
you
come?"
Briefly,
she looked down at the dead Ihlini. Then she
bent
and scooped up the knife, moving to my side. Her
free
hand was cool in my own, and I felt the trembling in it.
For a
moment we stood there, soiled with blood and
grime
and in the stink of our own fear, and then we forgot
our
weapons and set arms around each other for a desper-
ate
moment.
"Duncan?"
she asked at last, when I let her free of my
arms.
"He
is here—do not fret, But how did you trick the
Ihlini?"
She
glanced back briefly at the dead man. "He was
foolish
enough to unlock my door. To take me some-
where,
he said. He did not expect me to protest, but I
did. I
took up a torch and burned his knife-hand with it."
1 put
out my own knife-hand and touched her hollowed
cheek.
"How do you fare, Alix?"
Briefly
there was withdrawal in her eyes. "I will tell you
another
time. Come this way with me." She caught up
the hem
of her bedrobe and went on, still gripping the
knife
in one hand.
We
hastened through the corridors and into a spiral
stair.
Alix went first and I followed, falling behind as we
climbed.
We went up and up and I grimaced, feeling the
strain
in my knees. My thighs burned with the effort, and
my
breath ran short. But at last she pushed open a narrow
door
that I had to duck to get under, and we stepped out
onto
the ramparts of the fortress.
Alix
pointed. 'That tower is a part of Tynstar's private
chambers.
There is a stairway down. If we get there, we
can go
down unaccosted, then slip into the wards."
I
caught her hand and we ran, heading for the tower. I
heard
the sounds of fighting elsewhere, but I knew we
were
badly outnumbered. And then we rounded the tower,
looking
for the door, and I stopped dead. Out on the wall
walkway
stood a familiar figure— "Duncan!"
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 337
Jfc. He
spun around like an animal at bay. His eyes were
?
startled and fearful "No!" he shouted.
^' Alix
jerked free of my hand and started to run toward
^•hun,
calling out his name, but something in Ducan's face
aaade
me reach out and catch her arm. "Alix—wait you—"
The
moonlight was mil on Duncan's face. I could see
the
heaving of his chest as sweat ran down his bare arms.
,His
hair was wet with it. "Go from here—now . . . Alix—do
not
tarry!"
Alix
tried again to free herself from my hand but I held
her
tightly "Duncan—what are you saying? Do you think I
will
listen to that—?" Briefly she twisted her head to glare
at me.
"Let me go—"
Duncan
took a step toward us, then stopped. His face
turned
up toward the black night sky. Then he glanced
back at
me, briefly, and put out a hand toward Alix.
"Take
her. Carillon. Get her free of this place—" He
sucked
in a deep, wavering breath and seemed almost to fall
on his
feet. I saw then, in the moonlight, the blood
running
down his left arm. "Do you hear me? Go now,
before—"
What he
intended to say was never heard in the thun-
derclap
that broke over our heads. I recoiled, flattening
against
the tower, and dragged Alix with me. With the
explosion
of sound came a burst of light so blinding it
painted
everything stark white and stole our vision away.
"Do
I have you all, now?" came Tynstar's beguiling
voice.
I saw
him then, moving along the wall from another
tower.
Duncan was between the Ihlini and us. He put out
a hand
in my direction and cast a final glance at Alix. "Get
her/rce.
Carillon! Was it not what we came to do?"
I ran
then, dragging her with me, and took her into the
tower.
I ignored her protests. For once, I would do what
Duncan
wanted without asking foolish questions.
I did
not dare take a horse for Alix from our mounts for
fear of
leaving another man afoot. So I swung up onto my
own,
dragged her up behind me and wheeled the horse
about
in the shadow of shapechanged stone.
336
Jennlfw Roberson
Alix's
arms locked around my waist. "Carillon—wait
you.
You cannot leave him behind."
I
clapped spurs to my horse and urged him away, send-
ing him
from the smokey, stinking haze that clung to
black-clad
Valgaard. Away I sent him, toward the defile
and
freedom.
"Carillon—"
"I
trust to his wits and his will." I shouted over the
clattering
hooves. "Do you not?"
She
pressed herself against me as the horse slipped and
slid on
basalt. "I would rather stay and help—"
"There."
I interrupted. "Do you see? That is why we
run-
The
nearest stone shape reared up just then, shaking
itself
free of the ground. It lurched toward our mount,
reaching
out its hands. No, not hands: paws. And claws of
glassy
basalt.
Alix
cried out and pressed herself against me. I reined
in my
horse with a single hand and jerked our mount
aside,
shouting for Alix to duck. We threw ourselves flat,
avoiding
the slashing claws, and the sword I held outthrust
scraped
against the beast. Sparks flew from the blade on
stone:
steel against a whetstone, screeching as it spun.
We rode
past at a scrambling run as the horse tried to
keep
his balance. Chips of stone flew up to cut our faces as
iron-shod
hooves dug deeply into basalt- I saw then that
all the
stone shapes were moving, grating across the ground.
They
had none of the speed or supple grace of fleshborn
animals,
but they were ghastly in their promise. Most
were
hardly recognizable, being rough-cut and sharply
faceted,
but I saw the gaping mouths and knew they could
crush
us easily.
Yet
another lurched into our path. I reined in the horse
at once
and sat him on his haunches, knowing he scraped
his
hocks against the cruel stone. Alix cried out and snatched
at my
doublet, holding herself on with effort. I spurred
relentlessly,
driving the horse to his feet, and saw the
lowering
paws.
A bear;
not a bear. Its shape was indistinct. It lumbered
after
us, hackles rising on its huge spinal hump, ungainly
THE
SONG OF HOMANA
339
on
glassy legs, and yet I knew it might prevail. The horse
was
failing under us.
Smoke
shot up beside us: the breath of the god himself.
It
splattered me full in the face and I felt the blood of the
god. It
burned, how it burned, as it ate into my beard
But I
dared not put a hand to my face or I would lose
control
of the horse. And I refused to lose my sword.
The
smoke shot up with a screeching hiss, venting its
wrath
against us. It stank with the foul odor of corruption.
The
horse leaped aside, nearly shedding us both, 1 heard
Alix's
gasp of surprise. She slid to one side and caught at
my arm,
dragging herself back on the slippery rump. I
heard
again the scream of the smoke as it vomited out of
the
earth,
The canyon
grew narrow and clogged with stone. The
defile
beckoned us on. We had only to get through it
and we
would be free of the beasts. But getting to it
would
be next to impossible with the failing horse beneath
us.
Another
vent opened before us. The horse ran directly
into it
and screamed as the heat bit into his belly. He
twisted
and humped, throwing head between knees, and
then
shed us easily enough. But I did not complain, even
as I
crashed against the stone, for the horse was caught by
the
bear.
I
pushed myself up to my feet, aware of the pain in my
bones.
I still had my sword and two feet and I did not
intend
to remain. I went to Alix as she sat up from her fall,
grabbed
her arm and dragged her up from the stone.
"Run,"
I said, and we did.
We
dodged the stone beasts and jumped over the smoke,
threading
our way as we ran. We gasped and choked,
coughing
against the stench. But we reached the defile
and ran
through, knowing it too narrow to give exit to the
beasts.
We left behind the smoke and heat and went into
the
world again.
The
ground was laced with snow. Twisted trees hung off
the
walls and sent roots across the earth, seeking what
strength
they could find in the meager soil. Behind us
reared
the canyon with its cache of beasts and smoke.
Jenntfar
Roberson
340
Atix
limped beside me, still clinging to my hand. She
was
barefoot; I did not doubt it hurt. Her bedrobe was
torn
and burned away in places. But she went on,
uncomplaining,
and I put away my sword-
1 took
her to a screen of wind-wracked trees that bud-
died by
a rib of canyon wall. There we could hide and
catch
our breath, waiting for the others. I found a broken
stump
and sat down upon it stiffly, hissing against the
pain.
My aching joints had been badly used and I felt at
least a
hundred. No more was I able to perform the deeds
of a
younger man, for all I was twenty-five. The body was
twenty
years older.
Alix
stood next to me- Her hand was on my head,
smoothing
my graying hair. "I am so sorry. Carillon. But
Tynstar
has touched us all."
I
looked up at her in the moonlight. "Did he harm
you?"
She
shrugged. "What Tynstar did is done. I will not
speak
about it."
"Alix—"
But she placed one hand across my mouth and
bid -me
to be silent. After a moment she squatted down
and
linked both hands around my arm.
"My
thanks," she said softly. "Leijhana tu'sai. What you
have
done for me—and what you have lost for me—is
more
than I deserve."
I
summoned a weary smile. "Your son will be Prince of
Homana.
Surely hisjehana has meaning to us both,"
"You
did not do this for Donal."
I
sighed. "No. I did it for you, for myself . . . and for
Duncan,
Perhaps especially for Duncan." I set my swollen
hand to
her head and tousled her tangled hair. "He needs
you,
Alix. More than I ever thought possible."
She did
not answer. We sat silently, close together, and
waited
for the others,
One by
one the warriors returned, on foot and mounted
on
horseback. Some came in Kr-shape, loping or flying as
they
came through the trees; we were not so close that the
magic
could be thwarted. But I saw, when they had gath-
ered,
that at least four had been left behind. A high toll,
for the
Cheysuli. It made it all seem worse.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA
341
Rowan
came finally at dawn. He and Gryflth were
lounted
on a single horse, riding double from the defile.
'[X)d
had spilled from a head wound to stain Rowan's
ithers
dark, but he seemed well enough, if weary. He
Ided
Gryffth with an elbow and I saw how the Ellasian
iped
against Rowan's back. I got up, feeling the pop in
i
knees, and reached out to steady Gryfflh's dismount.
[e had
a wound in one shoulder and a slice along one
H-eann,
but both had been bound.
Rowan
got down unsteadily, shutting his eyes as he put
ie hand
to his head. Alix knelt beside him as he sat and
irted
his hair to see the wound. He swallowed and
Iwinced
as her fingers found-the swelling.
| '
"This is not front a sword," she said in consternation.
"No.
His sword broke. So he grabbed down to torch
; and
came at me. I ducked the flame but not the iron." He
t
winced again. "Let it be. It will heal of its own."
i Alix moved away from him. For a moment she
looked at
I §the
others, all wounded in her rescue, and I saw how it
^weighted
her down. Of us all, I was the only Homanan.
The
others, save Grymh, were all Cheysuli.
The
Ellasian leaned against a boulder, one arm pressed
against
his ribs. His freckled face, in the pale sunlight of
dawn,
was ashen, streaked with blood and grime, but life
remained
in his bright green eyes. He pushed a hand
^through
his hair and made it stand up in spikes. "My
thanks
to the All-Father," he said wearily. "Most of us got
free,
and the lady brought out as we meant."
' "And for that, my thanks," said
Duncan from the ridge.
and
Alix spun around.
He
stepped down and caught her in his arms, crushing
her
against his chest. His cheek pressed into her tangled
hair
and I saw the pallor of his face. Blood still ran from
|tthe
wound in his left arm. I saw how it stained his leathers
^.and
now her robe. But neither seemed to care.
|t I
pushed myself up from my tree stump. I moved stiffly,
I
cursing myself for my slowness, and then stood still, giv-
ing
them their reunion. It was the least I could do.
"I
am well," Duncan answered her whispered question.
I am
not much hurt. Do not fear for me." One hand wove
342
Jennifer Roberson
itself
into her loosened braid. "What of you? What has he
done to
you?"
Alix,
still pressed against his body, shook her head. I
could
not see her face, but I could see his. His exhaustion
was
manifest. Like us all, he was bloodstained and filthy
and
stinking of the breath of the netherworld. Like us> all,
he was
hardly capable of standing.
But
there was something more in his eyes. The knowl-
edge of
terrible loss.
And 1
knew.
Duncan
put Alix out of his arms and sat her down on
the
nearest stump, the one I had vacated. And then,
without
a word, he stripped the gold from his arms and set
it into
her lap. With deft fingers he unhooked the earring
and
pulled it from his lobe. He was naked without his gold.
Still
clothed in leather, he was naked without the gold.
And a
dead man without his lir.
He set
the earring into her hand. "Tahlmorra lujhalla
mei
wiccan, cheysu.'
She
stood up with a cry and the gold tumbled from lap
and
hands. "Duncan—no—"
"Aye,"
he said gently, "Tynstar has slain my lir"
Slowly,
tentatively, trembling, she put out her hands to
touch
him. Gently at first, and then with possessive de-
mand. I
saw how dark her fingers were against the flesh of
his
arms that had never known the sun, kept from it by
the
ftr-bands for nearly all of his life. I saw how she shut
her
hands upon that flesh as if it would make him stay.
"I
am empty," he said. "Soulless and unwhole. I cannot
live
this way."
The
fingers tightened on his arms. "Do you go," she
said
intently, "do you leave me, Duncan . . . / will be as
empty.
I will be unwhole."
"Shansu,"
he said, "I have no choice. It is the price of
the
fir-bond."
"Do
you think I will let you go?" she demanded. "Do
you
think I will stand meekly by while you turn your back
on me?
Do you think 1 will do nothing?"
"No.
And that is why I will do this—" He caught her
before
she could move and cradled her head in his hands.
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 343
"Cheysula,
I have loved you well. And for that I will
lessen
your grief—"
"No!"
She tried to pull out of his arms, but he held her
too
well. "Duncan—" she said, "—do not—"
As she
sagged he caught her and lifted her up. For a
moment
he held her close, eyes shut in a pale, gaunt face,
and
then he looked at me. "You must take her to safety-
Take
her to Homana-Mujhar." He tried to steady his voice
and
failed. "She will sleep for a long time. Do not worry
if,
when she wakes, she seems to have forgotten. It will
come
back. She will recall it all, and I do not doubt she
will
grieve deeply then. But for now ... for us both . . .
this ending
is the best."
I tried
to swallow the cramp in my throat. "What of
Tynstar?"
"Alive,"
Duncan said bleakly. "Once he had struck down
Cai—I
had nothing left but pain and helplessness." He
looked
at Alix's face again as she slept in his naked arms.
And
then he brought her to me and set her into mine.
"Love
her well, my lord Mujhar. Spare her what pain you
can."
I saw
the tears in his eyes and he moved back. Then
one
foot struck an armband on the ground, sending it
clinking
against the other, and he stopped short. He
touched
one naked arm as if he could not believe its toss,
and
then he walked away.
NINE
Donal's
young face was pinched and pale. He sat quietly
on a
stool, listening to what I said, but I doubt he really
heard
me. His mind had gone elsewhere, choosing its own
path; I
did not blame him. I had told him his father was
dead-
He
stared hard at the Hoor. His hands were in his lap.
They
gripped one another as if they could not bear to be
apart.
The skin of his knuckles was white.
"Jekana,"
he said. That only.
' Your
mother is well. She—sleeps. Your father gave her
that."
He
nodded once. No more. He seemed to understand.
And
then his right hand rose to touch his left arm, to
finger
the heavy gold. I could see it in his mind: Cheysuli,
and
bound by the lir. As much as his father had been.
Donal
looked up at me. His face was starkly remote. He
said
one word: "Tahlmorra."
He was
an eight-year-old boy. At eight, I could not have
withstood
the pain. I would have wept, cried out, even
screamed
with the grief. Donal did not. He was Cheysuli,
and he
knew the price of the ftr-bond-
1 had
thought, perhaps, to hold him. To ease what pain
I
could. To tell him how Duncan had gotten his mother
free,
to illustrate the worth of the risk undertaken. I had
thought
also to assuage his guilt and grief by sharing my
I 344 I
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 345
own
with him. But, looking at him, I saw there was no
need.
His maturity mocked my own.
Alien,
I thought, so alien. Will Homana accept you?
I
lifted Alix down from her horse. She was light in my
arms,
too light; her face was ashen-colored. She had come
home at
last to Duncan's pavilion—six weeks after his
death—and
I knew she could not face it.
I said nothing,
I simply held her. She stared at the
slate-colored
pavilion with its gold-painted hawk and re-
called
the life they had shared. She forgot even Donal,
who
slid slowly off his horse and looked to me for
reassurance.
"Go
in," I told him. "It is yours as much as his."
Donal
put out a hand and touched the doorflap. And
then he
went inside.
"Carillon,"
she said. No more. There was no need. All
the
grief was in her voice.
I put
out my arms and pulled her against my chest.
With
one hand I smoothed the heavy hair. "Now do you
see?
This is not the place for you. I would have spoken
earlier,
but I knew it would do no. good. You had to see for
yourself."
Her
arms were locked around me. Her shoulders shook
with
the tears.
"Come
back with me," I said. "Come back to Homana-
Mujhar.
Your place is there now, with me." I rocked her
gently
in my arms. "Alix—I want you to stay with me."
Her
face turned up to mine. "I cannot."
"Do
not fret because of Electra. She will not live
forever—when
she is dead I will wed you. I will make you
Queen
of Homana. Until then . . . you will have to con-
tent
yourself with being merely a princess." I smiled.
"You
are. You are my cousin. There is a rank that comes
with
that."
Slowly
she shook her head. "I cannot."
I
smoothed back the hair from her face. "All those years
ago—seven?
eight?—I was a fool, I lived in arrogance. I
saw
what I was told to see by an uncle I abhorred. But
now I
am somewhat older—older, even than that—' I
smiled
a little, thinking of my graying beard and aching
346
Jennifer Roberson
bones—"somewhat
wiser, and certainly less inclined to
heed
such things as rank and custom. I wanted you then, I
want
you now—say you will come with me."
"I
owe Duncan more than that."
"You
do not owe him personal solitude. Alix—wait you—"
I
tightened my arms as she tried to pull away. "I know
how
badly you hurt. I know how badly it bleeds. I know
how
deeply the pain has cut you. But I think he would not
be
surprised did we make a match of it." I recalled his
final
words to me and knew he expected it. "Alix—I will
not
press you. I will give you what time you need. But do
not
deny me this. Not after all these years."
"Time
does not matter." She stood stiffly in my arms.
"As
for the years—they have passed. It is done. Carillon. I
cannot
be your meijha and I cannot be your wife."
"Alix—"
"By
the gods!" she cried. "I carry Tynstar's child!"
I let
go of her at once and saw the horror in her eyes.
'Tynstar
did that to you—"
"He
did not beat me." Her voice was steady. "He did
not
harm me. He did not force me." Her eyes shut for a
moment.
"He simply took my will away and got a child
upon
me."
I
thought of Electra, banished to the Crystal Isle. Electra,
who had
lost the sorcerer's child. An heir. Not to me or to
my
title, but to all of Tynstar's might. He had lost it, and
now he
had another.
I could
not move. I wanted to put out my hands and
touch
her, to tell her I did not care, but she knew me
better
than that. I could not move. I could only think of
the
Ihlini and his bastard in her belly.
Alix
turned from me. She walked slowly to the pavilion.
She put
out one hand and drew back the doorflap, though
she did
not look inside. "Do you come in? Or do you go
back?"
I shut
my eyes a moment, still aching with the knowl-
edge.
Again, I lost her. But this time not to Duncan. Not
even to
Duncan's memory. That 1 might expect,
But not
this- Not losing her to Tynstar. To a bastard
Ihlini
child!
THE
SONG OF HOMANA 347
By all
the gods, it hurt. It hurt like a knife in my loins. I
wanted
to vomit the pain.
And
then I thought of hers.
I let
out my breath. Looking at her, I could see it hurt
her
worse. And I would not increase the pain by swearing
useless
vows of vengeance. There was already that be-
tween
Tynstar and me; one day, we would end it.
I went
to her. I took the doorflap out of her hands and
motioned
her inside. And then we both turned to go in
and I
saw Finn beside the fire.
The
light was stark on his face. I saw again the livid scar
that
marred cheek and jaw, the silver in his hair. Then he
rose
and I saw he had'grown thin. The gold seemed
heavier
on his arms.
"Meijha,"
he said, "I am sorry. But a tahlnwrra cannot
be
refused. Not by an honorable man. And my rujho was
ever
that."
Alix
stood very still but her breath was loud in the tent,
"You
knew—?"
"I
knew he would die. So did he. Not how. Not when.
Not the
name of the man who would cause it. Merely that
it
would happen." He paused. "Meijhana, I am sorry. I
would
give him back to you, could I do it."
She
moved to him. I saw the hesitation in her steps. I
saw how
he put his arms around her and set his scarred
cheek
against her hair. I saw her grief reflected in his face.
"When
a tir is lost," he said, "the others know at once.
Storr
told me ... but I could come no sooner. There was
a thing
I had to do."
1 was
wrung out with all the emotions. I needed to sit
down.
But I did not, I stood there, waiting, and saw
Donal
in the shadows. He sat between two wolves; one a
ruddy
young male, the other older, wiser, amber-eyed
Storr.
Aiix
pulled out of Finn's arms but she did not move
away. I
saw how one of his hands lingered in her hair, as
if he
could not let it go. An odd possessiveness, in view of
his
actions with Torry. But then I could not blame him;
Alix
needed comfort. From Finn, it would undoubtedly be
best,
He was her brother, but also Duncan's. The bloodlink
was
closer than that which cousins shared-
348
Jennifer Roberson
I
sighed- "Electra has been banished. She lives on the
Crystal
Isle. There is no question about her complicity in
Tynstar's
attempt to slay me. Did you wish it—you could
take up
your place again."
He did
not smile. 'That time is done. A blood-oath,
once
broken, is never healed. I come home, aye, to live in
the
Keep again—but nothing more than that. My place is
here,
now. They have named me Cheysuli clan-leader."
Alix
looked at him sharply. "You? In Duncan's place?"
She
caught her breath, then went on. "I thought such
things
were not for you."
"Such
things were for my rujho," he agreed, his gravity
an
ironic measure of Duncan's, "but things change. People
change.
Torry has made me different." He shrugged. "I
have—learned
a little peace." He used the Homanan word.
1 liked
shansu better.
"I
am sorry," I said, "for the time you lost. I should
never
have sent you away."
He
shook his head. "You had no choice. I saw that,
when
Torry made me. I do not blame you for it. You let
her go
with me. You might have made her stay."
"So
you could take her from me?" I shook my head.
"No.
I knew the folly in trying to stop you."
"You
should have tried," he said. "You should have kept
her by
you. You should have wed her to the Ellasian
prince
. . . because then she would still be alive."
I felt
the air go out of my chest. The pavilion spun
around
me. The firecairn was merely a blot of light inside
my
skull. "Torry is—dead?"
"Aye.
Two days before Duncan lost his lir. It was why I
could
come no sooner."
"Finn,"
Alix said, "oh, Finn—no—"
"Aye,"
he said roughly, and I saw the new pain in his
eyes.
It mirrored that in my own.
I
turned to go out. I could not stay. I could not bear to
see
him, knowing how she had loved him. I could not bear
the
grief. I had to deal with it alone.
And
then I heard the baby cry, and the sound cut
through
me like a knife.
Finn
let go of Alix- He turned and pulled the tapestry
aside.
I saw him kneel down and gather a bundle from the
THE
SONG OF HOMANA
349
pallet.
He was gentle. More gentle than I had ever seen
him.
Incongruous, in him. But it seemed to fit him well
once I
got over the shock.
He
brought the bundle to us and pulled away the wrap-
pings
from a face. "Her name is Meghan," he said. "She is
four
months old ... and hungry. Torry—could not feed
her, so
I became a thief." Briefly he smiled. "The cows
were
not always willing to be milked."
Meghan
continued to cry. Finn frowned and shifted her
in his
arms, trying to settle her more comfortably, but it
was
Alix who intervened. She took the baby from his arms
and
sent Donal to find a woman with an infant. She cast a
glance
back at Finn before she followed Donal out. "No
more
the milk-thief, rujho. I will save your pride by
finding
her a wetnurse."
I saw a
shadow of his familiar grin as she slipped outside
the
pavilion. It took the hardness from his face and less-
ened
the pain in his eyes. I saw it now, where I had not
before.
He had lost more than a brother.
And I
had lost a sister, "Gods," I said, "what happened?
How did
Torry die? Why . . . why?"
The
smile dropped away. Finn sat down slowly and
motioned
me down as well. After ten months, too long a
time,
we shared company again. "She was not bred for
privation,"
he said. "She had pride and strength and de-
termination,
but she was not bred for privation. And car-
rying a
child—" He shook his head. "I saw she was ill
some
three months after we left Homana-Mujhar. She
claimed
it was nothing; a fever breeding women some-
times
get. I thought perhaps it was; how was I to know
differently?
I did not expect her to lie." He threaded one
hand
through his hair and stripped it from his face. He
was gaunt,
too thin; privation agreed with him no more
than it
had with her.
"Say
on," I said hollowly.
"When
I saw she got no better, I took her to a village. I
I
thought she needed the companionship of women as well
'. as a
shelter better than the rude pavilion I provided.
t
But—they would not have me. They called me shape-
\
changer. They called me demon. They called her whore
and the
child demon's-spawn. Sorcerer's get." The anger
350
Jennifer Roberson
was in
his eyes and I saw the beast again, if only for a
moment.
But I also saw the guilt he had placed upon
himself.
"Shaine is dead and the qu'mahlin ended . . but
many
prefer to observe it. And so she bore Meghan in
what
shelter I could provide, and weakened each day
thereafter."
He shut his eyes. "The gods would not hear
my
petition, even when I offered myself. So I gave her
Cheysuli
passing when she was dead, and brought her
daughter
home."
I
thought of lorry, weak and ill. I thought of Torry
bearing
the child. I thought of the Homanans who had
cursed
her because of Finn. Because of Shame's qu'mahlin.
And I
thought how helpless a king I was to stop my uncle's
purge.
"I
am sorry, Carillon," Finn said. "I did not mean you
to lose
her twice."
"Blame
Shaine," I said wearily. "My uncle slew my
sister."
I looked at him across the fire. "Do you mean to
keep
Meghan here?"
"This
is her home," he repeated. "Where else would
Meghan
live?"
"At
Homana-Mujhar," I said. "She is a princess of
Homana."
He
stared at me. "Have you learned nothing? Are you
still
chained by such things as rank? By the gods. Caril-
lon, I
thought by now you might have learned—"
"I
have,' I said. "I have. I do not mean to take her. I
merely
wanted you to think. You have admitted Torry
died because
the privation was too hard. Do you give the
same
life to your daughter?"
"I
give her a Keep," he said softly. "I give her what her
blood
demands: the heritage of a Cheysuli."
I
smiled. "Who speaks now of rank? You have ever
believed
yourself better than a Homanan."
He
shrugged. "We are as the gods have made us."
I
laughed. I pushed to my feet and popped my knees,
trying
to ease my joints. The ride had tried my strength.
Finn
rose as well, saying nothing. He merely waited.
"Privation
has rendered you less than what you should
be,"
I said gruffly. "Have Alix put flesh on your bones.
You
look older the way you are.*
THE
SONG OF HOMANA I 351
His
black brows rose. "Who speaks of age should look in
the
silver plate."
"I
have," I said, "and turned it to the wall." I grinned
and put
out my arm, clasping his again. "Tend Meghan
well,
and bring her to me often. She has other blood
besides
the shapechanger taint, and I would have her
know
it."
Finn's
grip was firm. "I doubt not your daughter will
need a
companion. As for the Mujhar of Homana, he
requires
no single liege man. He has all the Cheysuh clans
to
render him aid when he needs it."
"Nonetheless,"
I said, "I would have you take the knife
back."
I slipped it from the sheath. The gold hilt gleamed
softly
in the light from the firecaim: rampant Homanan
lion
and a blade of purest steel.
I
thought he would not take it. Another was in his
sheath,
one of Cheysuli craftsmanship. But he put out his
hand
and accepted it, though there was no blood-oath to
accompany
the acceptance.
"Ja'hai-na,"
he said quietly.
I went
silently out of the tent.
My
horse still waited. I took up the reins but did not
mount
at once. I thought of Alix, tending to Meghan, and
the child
within her belly. She would need Finn. She
would
need Meghan. She would need all the strength of
the
Cheysuli when Tynstar's child was born. And I knew
she
would have it in abundance.
I
waited a moment, aware of something familiar. I could
not put
name to what it was, and then suddenly I knew. It
H- was
a flute, a sweet-toned Cheysuli pipe. The melody was
quite
simple, and yet I knew it well. The last time I had
heard
it, it had been upon a harp, with a master's hands
upon
the strings. Lachlan's hands, and the song The Song
of
Homana. And now it had come to the Keep.
I
grinned. Then I laughed. I mounted my horse and
turned
him, ready to go at last, but Donal was in my way.
He put
up his hand and touched the stallion's nose as I
reined
him to a halt. Lorn sat at his left side.
"Cousin,"
Donal said, "may I come?"
"I
go back to Homana-Mujhar."
352 I
Jennifer Rob«rson
"Jehana
has said I may go." He grinned a grin I had
seen
before."
I
leaned down and stretched out my hand, swinging
him up
as he jumped. He settled behind the saddle.
"Hold
on," I said, "the royal mount may throw us."
Donal
leaned forward against my back. "Make him try."
I
laughed. "Would you like to see me tumble?"
"You
would not. You are the Mujhar of Homana."
'The
horse does not know titles. He knows only your
substantial
weight." I kneed the stallion out and felt the
arching
of his back. But after a moment he settled.
"Do
you see?" Donal asked, as the wolf trotted beside
the
horse. I looked for Taj and found him, a dot against
the
sky.
"I
see," I admitted. "Shall we gallop?"
"Aye!"
he agreed, and we did.